Quotations.ch
  Directory : House of Mirth
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of House of Mirth, by Edith Wharton
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: House of Mirth
  • Author: Edith Wharton
  • Release Date: April 3, 2008 [EBook #284]
  • [Last updated: January 12, 2014]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HOUSE OF MIRTH ***
  • The House of Mirth
  • BY
  • EDITH WHARTON
  • BOOK ONE
  • Chapter 1
  • Selden paused in surprise. In the afternoon rush of the Grand Central
  • Station his eyes had been refreshed by the sight of Miss Lily Bart.
  • It was a Monday in early September, and he was returning to his work from
  • a hurried dip into the country; but what was Miss Bart doing in town at
  • that season? If she had appeared to be catching a train, he might have
  • inferred that he had come on her in the act of transition between one and
  • another of the country-houses which disputed her presence after the close
  • of the Newport season; but her desultory air perplexed him. She stood
  • apart from the crowd, letting it drift by her to the platform or the
  • street, and wearing an air of irresolution which might, as he surmised,
  • be the mask of a very definite purpose. It struck him at once that she
  • was waiting for some one, but he hardly knew why the idea arrested him.
  • There was nothing new about Lily Bart, yet he could never see her without
  • a faint movement of interest: it was characteristic of her that she
  • always roused speculation, that her simplest acts seemed the result of
  • far-reaching intentions.
  • An impulse of curiosity made him turn out of his direct line to the door,
  • and stroll past her. He knew that if she did not wish to be seen she
  • would contrive to elude him; and it amused him to think of putting her
  • skill to the test.
  • "Mr. Selden--what good luck!"
  • She came forward smiling, eager almost, in her resolve to intercept him.
  • One or two persons, in brushing past them, lingered to look; for Miss
  • Bart was a figure to arrest even the suburban traveller rushing to his
  • last train.
  • Selden had never seen her more radiant. Her vivid head, relieved against
  • the dull tints of the crowd, made her more conspicuous than in a
  • ball-room, and under her dark hat and veil she regained the girlish
  • smoothness, the purity of tint, that she was beginning to lose after
  • eleven years of late hours and indefatigable dancing. Was it really
  • eleven years, Selden found himself wondering, and had she indeed reached
  • the nine-and-twentieth birthday with which her rivals credited her?
  • "What luck!" she repeated. "How nice of you to come to my rescue!"
  • He responded joyfully that to do so was his mission in life, and asked
  • what form the rescue was to take.
  • "Oh, almost any--even to sitting on a bench and talking to me. One sits
  • out a cotillion--why not sit out a train? It isn't a bit hotter here than
  • in Mrs. Van Osburgh's conservatory--and some of the women are not a bit
  • uglier." She broke off, laughing, to explain that she had come up to
  • town from Tuxedo, on her way to the Gus Trenors' at Bellomont, and had
  • missed the three-fifteen train to Rhinebeck. "And there isn't another
  • till half-past five." She consulted the little jewelled watch among her
  • laces. "Just two hours to wait. And I don't know what to do with myself.
  • My maid came up this morning to do some shopping for me, and was to go on
  • to Bellomont at one o'clock, and my aunt's house is closed, and I don't
  • know a soul in town." She glanced plaintively about the station. "It IS
  • hotter than Mrs. Van Osburgh's, after all. If you can spare the time, do
  • take me somewhere for a breath of air."
  • He declared himself entirely at her disposal: the adventure struck him as
  • diverting. As a spectator, he had always enjoyed Lily Bart; and his
  • course lay so far out of her orbit that it amused him to be drawn for a
  • moment into the sudden intimacy which her proposal implied.
  • "Shall we go over to Sherry's for a cup of tea?"
  • She smiled assentingly, and then made a slight grimace.
  • "So many people come up to town on a Monday--one is sure to meet a lot of
  • bores. I'm as old as the hills, of course, and it ought not to make any
  • difference; but if I'M old enough, you're not," she objected gaily. "I'm
  • dying for tea--but isn't there a quieter place?"
  • He answered her smile, which rested on him vividly. Her discretions
  • interested him almost as much as her imprudences: he was so sure that
  • both were part of the same carefully-elaborated plan. In judging Miss
  • Bart, he had always made use of the "argument from design."
  • "The resources of New York are rather meagre," he said; "but I'll find a
  • hansom first, and then we'll invent something." He led her through the
  • throng of returning holiday-makers, past sallow-faced girls in
  • preposterous hats, and flat-chested women struggling with paper bundles
  • and palm-leaf fans. Was it possible that she belonged to the same race?
  • The dinginess, the crudity of this average section of womanhood made him
  • feel how highly specialized she was.
  • A rapid shower had cooled the air, and clouds still hung refreshingly
  • over the moist street.
  • "How delicious! Let us walk a little," she said as they emerged from the
  • station.
  • They turned into Madison Avenue and began to stroll northward. As she
  • moved beside him, with her long light step, Selden was conscious of
  • taking a luxurious pleasure in her nearness: in the modelling of her
  • little ear, the crisp upward wave of her hair--was it ever so slightly
  • brightened by art?--and the thick planting of her straight black lashes.
  • Everything about her was at once vigorous and exquisite, at once strong
  • and fine. He had a confused sense that she must have cost a great deal to
  • make, that a great many dull and ugly people must, in some mysterious
  • way, have been sacrificed to produce her. He was aware that the qualities
  • distinguishing her from the herd of her sex were chiefly external: as
  • though a fine glaze of beauty and fastidiousness had been applied to
  • vulgar clay. Yet the analogy left him unsatisfied, for a coarse texture
  • will not take a high finish; and was it not possible that the material
  • was fine, but that circumstance had fashioned it into a futile shape?
  • As he reached this point in his speculations the sun came out, and her
  • lifted parasol cut off his enjoyment. A moment or two later she paused
  • with a sigh.
  • "Oh, dear, I'm so hot and thirsty--and what a hideous place New York is!"
  • She looked despairingly up and down the dreary thoroughfare. "Other
  • cities put on their best clothes in summer, but New York seems to sit in
  • its shirtsleeves." Her eyes wandered down one of the side-streets.
  • "Someone has had the humanity to plant a few trees over there. Let us go
  • into the shade."
  • "I am glad my street meets with your approval," said Selden as they
  • turned the corner.
  • "Your street? Do you live here?"
  • She glanced with interest along the new brick and limestone house-fronts,
  • fantastically varied in obedience to the American craving for novelty,
  • but fresh and inviting with their awnings and flower-boxes.
  • "Ah, yes--to be sure: THE BENEDICK. What a nice-looking building! I
  • don't think I've ever seen it before." She looked across at the
  • flat-house with its marble porch and pseudo-Georgian facade. "Which are
  • your windows? Those with the awnings down?"
  • "On the top floor--yes."
  • "And that nice little balcony is yours? How cool it looks up there!"
  • He paused a moment. "Come up and see," he suggested. "I can give you a
  • cup of tea in no time--and you won't meet any bores."
  • Her colour deepened--she still had the art of blushing at the right
  • time--but she took the suggestion as lightly as it was made.
  • "Why not? It's too tempting--I'll take the risk," she declared.
  • "Oh, I'm not dangerous," he said in the same key. In truth, he had never
  • liked her as well as at that moment. He knew she had accepted without
  • afterthought: he could never be a factor in her calculations, and there
  • was a surprise, a refreshment almost, in the spontaneity of her consent.
  • On the threshold he paused a moment, feeling for his latchkey.
  • "There's no one here; but I have a servant who is supposed to come in the
  • mornings, and it's just possible he may have put out the tea-things and
  • provided some cake."
  • He ushered her into a slip of a hall hung with old prints. She noticed
  • the letters and notes heaped on the table among his gloves and sticks;
  • then she found herself in a small library, dark but cheerful, with its
  • walls of books, a pleasantly faded Turkey rug, a littered desk and, as he
  • had foretold, a tea-tray on a low table near the window. A breeze had
  • sprung up, swaying inward the muslin curtains, and bringing a fresh scent
  • of mignonette and petunias from the flower-box on the balcony.
  • Lily sank with a sigh into one of the shabby leather chairs.
  • "How delicious to have a place like this all to one's self! What a
  • miserable thing it is to be a woman." She leaned back in a luxury of
  • discontent.
  • Selden was rummaging in a cupboard for the cake.
  • "Even women," he said, "have been known to enjoy the privileges of a
  • flat."
  • "Oh, governesses--or widows. But not girls--not poor, miserable,
  • marriageable girls!"
  • "I even know a girl who lives in a flat."
  • She sat up in surprise. "You do?"
  • "I do," he assured her, emerging from the cupboard with the sought-for
  • cake.
  • "Oh, I know--you mean Gerty Farish." She smiled a little unkindly. "But I
  • said MARRIAGEABLE--and besides, she has a horrid little place, and no
  • maid, and such queer things to eat. Her cook does the washing and the
  • food tastes of soap. I should hate that, you know."
  • "You shouldn't dine with her on wash-days," said Selden, cutting the cake.
  • They both laughed, and he knelt by the table to light the lamp under the
  • kettle, while she measured out the tea into a little tea-pot of green
  • glaze. As he watched her hand, polished as a bit of old ivory, with its
  • slender pink nails, and the sapphire bracelet slipping over her wrist, he
  • was struck with the irony of suggesting to her such a life as his cousin
  • Gertrude Farish had chosen. She was so evidently the victim of the
  • civilization which had produced her, that the links of her bracelet
  • seemed like manacles chaining her to her fate.
  • She seemed to read his thought. "It was horrid of me to say that of
  • Gerty," she said with charming compunction. "I forgot she was your
  • cousin. But we're so different, you know: she likes being good, and I
  • like being happy. And besides, she is free and I am not. If I were, I
  • daresay I could manage to be happy even in her flat. It must be pure
  • bliss to arrange the furniture just as one likes, and give all the
  • horrors to the ash-man. If I could only do over my aunt's drawing-room I
  • know I should be a better woman."
  • "Is it so very bad?" he asked sympathetically.
  • She smiled at him across the tea-pot which she was holding up to be
  • filled.
  • "That shows how seldom you come there. Why don't you come oftener?"
  • "When I do come, it's not to look at Mrs. Peniston's furniture."
  • "Nonsense," she said. "You don't come at all--and yet we get on so well
  • when we meet."
  • "Perhaps that's the reason," he answered promptly. "I'm afraid I haven't
  • any cream, you know--shall you mind a slice of lemon instead?"
  • "I shall like it better." She waited while he cut the lemon and dropped a
  • thin disk into her cup. "But that is not the reason," she insisted.
  • "The reason for what?"
  • "For your never coming." She leaned forward with a shade of perplexity in
  • her charming eyes. "I wish I knew--I wish I could make you out. Of course
  • I know there are men who don't like me--one can tell that at a glance.
  • And there are others who are afraid of me: they think I want to marry
  • them." She smiled up at him frankly. "But I don't think you dislike
  • me--and you can't possibly think I want to marry you."
  • "No--I absolve you of that," he agreed.
  • "Well, then----?"
  • He had carried his cup to the fireplace, and stood leaning against the
  • chimney-piece and looking down on her with an air of indolent amusement.
  • The provocation in her eyes increased his amusement--he had not supposed
  • she would waste her powder on such small game; but perhaps she was only
  • keeping her hand in; or perhaps a girl of her type had no conversation
  • but of the personal kind. At any rate, she was amazingly pretty, and he
  • had asked her to tea and must live up to his obligations.
  • "Well, then," he said with a plunge, "perhaps THAT'S the reason."
  • "What?"
  • "The fact that you don't want to marry me. Perhaps I don't regard it as
  • such a strong inducement to go and see you." He felt a slight shiver down
  • his spine as he ventured this, but her laugh reassured him.
  • "Dear Mr. Selden, that wasn't worthy of you. It's stupid of you to make
  • love to me, and it isn't like you to be stupid." She leaned back, sipping
  • her tea with an air so enchantingly judicial that, if they had been in
  • her aunt's drawing-room, he might almost have tried to disprove her
  • deduction.
  • "Don't you see," she continued, "that there are men enough to say
  • pleasant things to me, and that what I want is a friend who won't be
  • afraid to say disagreeable ones when I need them? Sometimes I have
  • fancied you might be that friend--I don't know why, except that you are
  • neither a prig nor a bounder, and that I shouldn't have to pretend with
  • you or be on my guard against you." Her voice had dropped to a note of
  • seriousness, and she sat gazing up at him with the troubled gravity of a
  • child.
  • "You don't know how much I need such a friend," she said. "My aunt is
  • full of copy-book axioms, but they were all meant to apply to conduct in
  • the early fifties. I always feel that to live up to them would include
  • wearing book-muslin with gigot sleeves. And the other women--my best
  • friends--well, they use me or abuse me; but they don't care a straw what
  • happens to me. I've been about too long--people are getting tired of me;
  • they are beginning to say I ought to marry."
  • There was a moment's pause, during which Selden meditated one or two
  • replies calculated to add a momentary zest to the situation; but he
  • rejected them in favour of the simple question: "Well, why don't you?"
  • She coloured and laughed. "Ah, I see you ARE a friend after all, and that
  • is one of the disagreeable things I was asking for."
  • "It wasn't meant to be disagreeable," he returned amicably. "Isn't
  • marriage your vocation? Isn't it what you're all brought up for?"
  • She sighed. "I suppose so. What else is there?"
  • "Exactly. And so why not take the plunge and have it over?"
  • She shrugged her shoulders. "You speak as if I ought to marry the first
  • man who came along."
  • "I didn't mean to imply that you are as hard put to it as that. But there
  • must be some one with the requisite qualifications."
  • She shook her head wearily. "I threw away one or two good chances when I
  • first came out--I suppose every girl does; and you know I am horribly
  • poor--and very expensive. I must have a great deal of money."
  • Selden had turned to reach for a cigarette-box on the mantelpiece.
  • "What's become of Dillworth?" he asked.
  • "Oh, his mother was frightened--she was afraid I should have all the
  • family jewels reset. And she wanted me to promise that I wouldn't do over
  • the drawing-room."
  • "The very thing you are marrying for!"
  • "Exactly. So she packed him off to India."
  • "Hard luck--but you can do better than Dillworth."
  • He offered the box, and she took out three or four cigarettes, putting
  • one between her lips and slipping the others into a little gold case
  • attached to her long pearl chain.
  • "Have I time? Just a whiff, then." She leaned forward, holding the tip of
  • her cigarette to his. As she did so, he noted, with a purely impersonal
  • enjoyment, how evenly the black lashes were set in her smooth white lids,
  • and how the purplish shade beneath them melted into the pure pallour of
  • the cheek.
  • She began to saunter about the room, examining the bookshelves between
  • the puffs of her cigarette-smoke. Some of the volumes had the ripe tints
  • of good tooling and old morocco, and her eyes lingered on them
  • caressingly, not with the appreciation of the expert, but with the
  • pleasure in agreeable tones and textures that was one of her inmost
  • susceptibilities. Suddenly her expression changed from desultory
  • enjoyment to active conjecture, and she turned to Selden with a question.
  • "You collect, don't you--you know about first editions and things?"
  • "As much as a man may who has no money to spend. Now and then I pick up
  • something in the rubbish heap; and I go and look on at the big sales."
  • She had again addressed herself to the shelves, but her eyes now swept
  • them inattentively, and he saw that she was preoccupied with a new idea.
  • "And Americana--do you collect Americana?"
  • Selden stared and laughed.
  • "No, that's rather out of my line. I'm not really a collector, you see; I
  • simply like to have good editions of the books I am fond of."
  • She made a slight grimace. "And Americana are horribly dull, I suppose?"
  • "I should fancy so--except to the historian. But your real collector
  • values a thing for its rarity. I don't suppose the buyers of Americana
  • sit up reading them all night--old Jefferson Gryce certainly didn't."
  • She was listening with keen attention. "And yet they fetch fabulous
  • prices, don't they? It seems so odd to want to pay a lot for an ugly
  • badly-printed book that one is never going to read! And I suppose most
  • of the owners of Americana are not historians either?"
  • "No; very few of the historians can afford to buy them. They have to use
  • those in the public libraries or in private collections. It seems to be
  • the mere rarity that attracts the average collector."
  • He had seated himself on an arm of the chair near which she was standing,
  • and she continued to question him, asking which were the rarest volumes,
  • whether the Jefferson Gryce collection was really considered the finest
  • in the world, and what was the largest price ever fetched by a single
  • volume.
  • It was so pleasant to sit there looking up at her, as she lifted now one
  • book and then another from the shelves, fluttering the pages between her
  • fingers, while her drooping profile was outlined against the warm
  • background of old bindings, that he talked on without pausing to wonder
  • at her sudden interest in so unsuggestive a subject. But he could never
  • be long with her without trying to find a reason for what she was doing,
  • and as she replaced his first edition of La Bruyere and turned away from
  • the bookcases, he began to ask himself what she had been driving at. Her
  • next question was not of a nature to enlighten him. She paused before him
  • with a smile which seemed at once designed to admit him to her
  • familiarity, and to remind him of the restrictions it imposed.
  • "Don't you ever mind," she asked suddenly, "not being rich enough to buy
  • all the books you want?"
  • He followed her glance about the room, with its worn furniture and shabby
  • walls.
  • "Don't I just? Do you take me for a saint on a pillar?"
  • "And having to work--do you mind that?"
  • "Oh, the work itself is not so bad--I'm rather fond of the law."
  • "No; but the being tied down: the routine--don't you ever want to get
  • away, to see new places and people?"
  • "Horribly--especially when I see all my friends rushing to the steamer."
  • She drew a sympathetic breath. "But do you mind enough--to marry to get
  • out of it?"
  • Selden broke into a laugh. "God forbid!" he declared.
  • She rose with a sigh, tossing her cigarette into the grate.
  • "Ah, there's the difference--a girl must, a man may if he chooses." She
  • surveyed him critically. "Your coat's a little shabby--but who cares? It
  • doesn't keep people from asking you to dine. If I were shabby no one
  • would have me: a woman is asked out as much for her clothes as for
  • herself. The clothes are the background, the frame, if you like: they
  • don't make success, but they are a part of it. Who wants a dingy woman?
  • We are expected to be pretty and well-dressed till we drop--and if we
  • can't keep it up alone, we have to go into partnership."
  • Selden glanced at her with amusement: it was impossible, even with her
  • lovely eyes imploring him, to take a sentimental view of her case.
  • "Ah, well, there must be plenty of capital on the look-out for such an
  • investment. Perhaps you'll meet your fate tonight at the Trenors'."
  • She returned his look interrogatively.
  • "I thought you might be going there--oh, not in that capacity! But there
  • are to be a lot of your set--Gwen Van Osburgh, the Wetheralls, Lady
  • Cressida Raith--and the George Dorsets."
  • She paused a moment before the last name, and shot a query through her
  • lashes; but he remained imperturbable.
  • "Mrs. Trenor asked me; but I can't get away till the end of the week; and
  • those big parties bore me."
  • "Ah, so they do me," she exclaimed.
  • "Then why go?"
  • "It's part of the business--you forget! And besides, if I didn't, I
  • should be playing bezique with my aunt at Richfield Springs."
  • "That's almost as bad as marrying Dillworth," he agreed, and they both
  • laughed for pure pleasure in their sudden intimacy.
  • She glanced at the clock.
  • "Dear me! I must be off. It's after five."
  • She paused before the mantelpiece, studying herself in the mirror while
  • she adjusted her veil. The attitude revealed the long slope of her
  • slender sides, which gave a kind of wild-wood grace to her outline--as
  • though she were a captured dryad subdued to the conventions of the
  • drawing-room; and Selden reflected that it was the same streak of sylvan
  • freedom in her nature that lent such savour to her artificiality.
  • He followed her across the room to the entrance-hall; but on the
  • threshold she held out her hand with a gesture of leave-taking.
  • "It's been delightful; and now you will have to return my visit."
  • "But don't you want me to see you to the station?"
  • "No; good bye here, please."
  • She let her hand lie in his a moment, smiling up at him adorably.
  • "Good bye, then--and good luck at Bellomont!" he said, opening the door
  • for her.
  • On the landing she paused to look about her. There were a thousand
  • chances to one against her meeting anybody, but one could never tell, and
  • she always paid for her rare indiscretions by a violent reaction of
  • prudence. There was no one in sight, however, but a char-woman who was
  • scrubbing the stairs. Her own stout person and its surrounding implements
  • took up so much room that Lily, to pass her, had to gather up her skirts
  • and brush against the wall. As she did so, the woman paused in her work
  • and looked up curiously, resting her clenched red fists on the wet cloth
  • she had just drawn from her pail. She had a broad sallow face, slightly
  • pitted with small-pox, and thin straw-coloured hair through which her
  • scalp shone unpleasantly.
  • "I beg your pardon," said Lily, intending by her politeness to convey a
  • criticism of the other's manner.
  • The woman, without answering, pushed her pail aside, and continued to
  • stare as Miss Bart swept by with a murmur of silken linings. Lily felt
  • herself flushing under the look. What did the creature suppose? Could one
  • never do the simplest, the most harmless thing, without subjecting one's
  • self to some odious conjecture? Half way down the next flight, she smiled
  • to think that a char-woman's stare should so perturb her. The poor thing
  • was probably dazzled by such an unwonted apparition. But WERE such
  • apparitions unwonted on Selden's stairs? Miss Bart was not familiar with
  • the moral code of bachelors' flat-houses, and her colour rose again as it
  • occurred to her that the woman's persistent gaze implied a groping among
  • past associations. But she put aside the thought with a smile at her own
  • fears, and hastened downward, wondering if she should find a cab short of
  • Fifth Avenue.
  • Under the Georgian porch she paused again, scanning the street for a
  • hansom. None was in sight, but as she reached the sidewalk she ran
  • against a small glossy-looking man with a gardenia in his coat, who
  • raised his hat with a surprised exclamation.
  • "Miss Bart? Well--of all people! This IS luck," he declared; and she
  • caught a twinkle of amused curiosity between his screwed-up lids.
  • "Oh, Mr. Rosedale--how are you?" she said, perceiving that the
  • irrepressible annoyance on her face was reflected in the sudden intimacy
  • of his smile.
  • Mr. Rosedale stood scanning her with interest and approval. He was a
  • plump rosy man of the blond Jewish type, with smart London clothes
  • fitting him like upholstery, and small sidelong eyes which gave him the
  • air of appraising people as if they were bric-a-brac. He glanced up
  • interrogatively at the porch of the Benedick.
  • "Been up to town for a little shopping, I suppose?" he said, in a tone
  • which had the familiarity of a touch.
  • Miss Bart shrank from it slightly, and then flung herself into
  • precipitate explanations.
  • "Yes--I came up to see my dress-maker. I am just on my way to catch the
  • train to the Trenors'."
  • "Ah--your dress-maker; just so," he said blandly. "I didn't know there
  • were any dress-makers in the Benedick."
  • "The Benedick?" She looked gently puzzled. "Is that the name of this
  • building?"
  • "Yes, that's the name: I believe it's an old word for bachelor, isn't it?
  • I happen to own the building--that's the way I know." His smile deepened
  • as he added with increasing assurance: "But you must let me take you to
  • the station. The Trenors are at Bellomont, of course? You've barely time
  • to catch the five-forty. The dress-maker kept you waiting, I suppose."
  • Lily stiffened under the pleasantry.
  • "Oh, thanks," she stammered; and at that moment her eye caught a hansom
  • drifting down Madison Avenue, and she hailed it with a desperate gesture.
  • "You're very kind; but I couldn't think of troubling you," she said,
  • extending her hand to Mr. Rosedale; and heedless of his protestations,
  • she sprang into the rescuing vehicle, and called out a breathless order
  • to the driver.
  • Chapter 2
  • In the hansom she leaned back with a sigh. Why must a girl pay so dearly
  • for her least escape from routine? Why could one never do a natural thing
  • without having to screen it behind a structure of artifice? She had
  • yielded to a passing impulse in going to Lawrence Selden's rooms, and it
  • was so seldom that she could allow herself the luxury of an impulse! This
  • one, at any rate, was going to cost her rather more than she could
  • afford. She was vexed to see that, in spite of so many years of
  • vigilance, she had blundered twice within five minutes. That stupid story
  • about her dress-maker was bad enough--it would have been so simple to
  • tell Rosedale that she had been taking tea with Selden! The mere
  • statement of the fact would have rendered it innocuous. But, after having
  • let herself be surprised in a falsehood, it was doubly stupid to snub the
  • witness of her discomfiture. If she had had the presence of mind to let
  • Rosedale drive her to the station, the concession might have purchased
  • his silence. He had his race's accuracy in the appraisal of values, and
  • to be seen walking down the platform at the crowded afternoon hour in the
  • company of Miss Lily Bart would have been money in his pocket, as he
  • might himself have phrased it. He knew, of course, that there would be a
  • large house-party at Bellomont, and the possibility of being taken for
  • one of Mrs. Trenor's guests was doubtless included in his calculations.
  • Mr. Rosedale was still at a stage in his social ascent when it was of
  • importance to produce such impressions.
  • The provoking part was that Lily knew all this--knew how easy it would
  • have been to silence him on the spot, and how difficult it might be to do
  • so afterward. Mr. Simon Rosedale was a man who made it his business to
  • know everything about every one, whose idea of showing himself to be at
  • home in society was to display an inconvenient familiarity with the
  • habits of those with whom he wished to be thought intimate. Lily was sure
  • that within twenty-four hours the story of her visiting her dress-maker
  • at the Benedick would be in active circulation among Mr. Rosedale's
  • acquaintances. The worst of it was that she had always snubbed and
  • ignored him. On his first appearance--when her improvident cousin, Jack
  • Stepney, had obtained for him (in return for favours too easily guessed)
  • a card to one of the vast impersonal Van Osburgh "crushes"--Rosedale,
  • with that mixture of artistic sensibility and business astuteness which
  • characterizes his race, had instantly gravitated toward Miss Bart. She
  • understood his motives, for her own course was guided by as nice
  • calculations. Training and experience had taught her to be hospitable to
  • newcomers, since the most unpromising might be useful later on, and there
  • were plenty of available OUBLIETTES to swallow them if they were not. But
  • some intuitive repugnance, getting the better of years of social
  • discipline, had made her push Mr. Rosedale into his OUBLIETTE without a
  • trial. He had left behind only the ripple of amusement which his speedy
  • despatch had caused among her friends; and though later (to shift the
  • metaphor) he reappeared lower down the stream, it was only in fleeting
  • glimpses, with long submergences between.
  • Hitherto Lily had been undisturbed by scruples. In her little set Mr.
  • Rosedale had been pronounced "impossible," and Jack Stepney roundly
  • snubbed for his attempt to pay his debts in dinner invitations. Even Mrs.
  • Trenor, whose taste for variety had led her into some hazardous
  • experiments, resisted Jack's attempts to disguise Mr. Rosedale as a
  • novelty, and declared that he was the same little Jew who had been served
  • up and rejected at the social board a dozen times within her memory; and
  • while Judy Trenor was obdurate there was small chance of Mr. Rosedale's
  • penetrating beyond the outer limbo of the Van Osburgh crushes. Jack gave
  • up the contest with a laughing "You'll see," and, sticking manfully to
  • his guns, showed himself with Rosedale at the fashionable restaurants, in
  • company with the personally vivid if socially obscure ladies who are
  • available for such purposes. But the attempt had hitherto been vain, and
  • as Rosedale undoubtedly paid for the dinners, the laugh remained with his
  • debtor.
  • Mr. Rosedale, it will be seen, was thus far not a factor to be
  • feared--unless one put one's self in his power. And this was precisely
  • what Miss Bart had done. Her clumsy fib had let him see that she had
  • something to conceal; and she was sure he had a score to settle with her.
  • Something in his smile told her he had not forgotten. She turned from the
  • thought with a little shiver, but it hung on her all the way to the
  • station, and dogged her down the platform with the persistency of Mr.
  • Rosedale himself.
  • She had just time to take her seat before the train started; but having
  • arranged herself in her corner with the instinctive feeling for effect
  • which never forsook her, she glanced about in the hope of seeing some
  • other member of the Trenors' party. She wanted to get away from herself,
  • and conversation was the only means of escape that she knew.
  • Her search was rewarded by the discovery of a very blond young man with a
  • soft reddish beard, who, at the other end of the carriage, appeared to be
  • dissembling himself behind an unfolded newspaper. Lily's eye brightened,
  • and a faint smile relaxed the drawn lines of her mouth. She had known
  • that Mr. Percy Gryce was to be at Bellomont, but she had not counted on
  • the luck of having him to herself in the train; and the fact banished all
  • perturbing thoughts of Mr. Rosedale. Perhaps, after all, the day was to
  • end more favourably than it had begun.
  • She began to cut the pages of a novel, tranquilly studying her prey
  • through downcast lashes while she organized a method of attack.
  • Something in his attitude of conscious absorption told her that he was
  • aware of her presence: no one had ever been quite so engrossed in an
  • evening paper! She guessed that he was too shy to come up to her, and
  • that she would have to devise some means of approach which should not
  • appear to be an advance on her part. It amused her to think that any one
  • as rich as Mr. Percy Gryce should be shy; but she was gifted with
  • treasures of indulgence for such idiosyncrasies, and besides, his
  • timidity might serve her purpose better than too much assurance. She had
  • the art of giving self-confidence to the embarrassed, but she was not
  • equally sure of being able to embarrass the self-confident.
  • She waited till the train had emerged from the tunnel and was racing
  • between the ragged edges of the northern suburbs. Then, as it lowered its
  • speed near Yonkers, she rose from her seat and drifted slowly down the
  • carriage. As she passed Mr. Gryce, the train gave a lurch, and he was
  • aware of a slender hand gripping the back of his chair. He rose with a
  • start, his ingenuous face looking as though it had been dipped in
  • crimson: even the reddish tint in his beard seemed to deepen. The train
  • swayed again, almost flinging Miss Bart into his arms.
  • She steadied herself with a laugh and drew back; but he was enveloped in
  • the scent of her dress, and his shoulder had felt her fugitive touch.
  • "Oh, Mr. Gryce, is it you? I'm so sorry--I was trying to find the porter
  • and get some tea."
  • She held out her hand as the train resumed its level rush, and they stood
  • exchanging a few words in the aisle. Yes--he was going to Bellomont. He
  • had heard she was to be of the party--he blushed again as he admitted it.
  • And was he to be there for a whole week? How delightful!
  • But at this point one or two belated passengers from the last station
  • forced their way into the carriage, and Lily had to retreat to her seat.
  • "The chair next to mine is empty--do take it," she said over her
  • shoulder; and Mr. Gryce, with considerable embarrassment, succeeded in
  • effecting an exchange which enabled him to transport himself and his bags
  • to her side.
  • "Ah--and here is the porter, and perhaps we can have some tea."
  • She signalled to that official, and in a moment, with the ease that
  • seemed to attend the fulfilment of all her wishes, a little table had
  • been set up between the seats, and she had helped Mr. Gryce to bestow his
  • encumbering properties beneath it.
  • When the tea came he watched her in silent fascination while her hands
  • flitted above the tray, looking miraculously fine and slender in contrast
  • to the coarse china and lumpy bread. It seemed wonderful to him that any
  • one should perform with such careless ease the difficult task of making
  • tea in public in a lurching train. He would never have dared to order it
  • for himself, lest he should attract the notice of his fellow-passengers;
  • but, secure in the shelter of her conspicuousness, he sipped the inky
  • draught with a delicious sense of exhilaration.
  • Lily, with the flavour of Selden's caravan tea on her lips, had no great
  • fancy to drown it in the railway brew which seemed such nectar to her
  • companion; but, rightly judging that one of the charms of tea is the fact
  • of drinking it together, she proceeded to give the last touch to Mr.
  • Gryce's enjoyment by smiling at him across her lifted cup.
  • "Is it quite right--I haven't made it too strong?" she asked
  • solicitously; and he replied with conviction that he had never tasted
  • better tea.
  • "I daresay it is true," she reflected; and her imagination was fired by
  • the thought that Mr. Gryce, who might have sounded the depths of the most
  • complex self-indulgence, was perhaps actually taking his first journey
  • alone with a pretty woman.
  • It struck her as providential that she should be the instrument of his
  • initiation. Some girls would not have known how to manage him. They would
  • have over-emphasized the novelty of the adventure, trying to make him
  • feel in it the zest of an escapade. But Lily's methods were more
  • delicate. She remembered that her cousin Jack Stepney had once defined
  • Mr. Gryce as the young man who had promised his mother never to go out in
  • the rain without his overshoes; and acting on this hint, she resolved to
  • impart a gently domestic air to the scene, in the hope that her
  • companion, instead of feeling that he was doing something reckless or
  • unusual, would merely be led to dwell on the advantage of always having a
  • companion to make one's tea in the train.
  • But in spite of her efforts, conversation flagged after the tray had been
  • removed, and she was driven to take a fresh measurement of Mr. Gryce's
  • limitations. It was not, after all, opportunity but imagination that he
  • lacked: he had a mental palate which would never learn to distinguish
  • between railway tea and nectar. There was, however, one topic she could
  • rely on: one spring that she had only to touch to set his simple
  • machinery in motion. She had refrained from touching it because it was a
  • last resource, and she had relied on other arts to stimulate other
  • sensations; but as a settled look of dulness began to creep over his
  • candid features, she saw that extreme measures were necessary.
  • "And how," she said, leaning forward, "are you getting on with your
  • Americana?"
  • His eye became a degree less opaque: it was as though an incipient film
  • had been removed from it, and she felt the pride of a skilful operator.
  • "I've got a few new things," he said, suffused with pleasure, but
  • lowering his voice as though he feared his fellow-passengers might be in
  • league to despoil him.
  • She returned a sympathetic enquiry, and gradually he was drawn on to talk
  • of his latest purchases. It was the one subject which enabled him to
  • forget himself, or allowed him, rather, to remember himself without
  • constraint, because he was at home in it, and could assert a superiority
  • that there were few to dispute. Hardly any of his acquaintances cared for
  • Americana, or knew anything about them; and the consciousness of this
  • ignorance threw Mr. Gryce's knowledge into agreeable relief. The only
  • difficulty was to introduce the topic and to keep it to the front; most
  • people showed no desire to have their ignorance dispelled, and Mr. Gryce
  • was like a merchant whose warehouses are crammed with an unmarketable
  • commodity.
  • But Miss Bart, it appeared, really did want to know about Americana; and
  • moreover, she was already sufficiently informed to make the task of
  • farther instruction as easy as it was agreeable. She questioned him
  • intelligently, she heard him submissively; and, prepared for the look of
  • lassitude which usually crept over his listeners' faces, he grew eloquent
  • under her receptive gaze. The "points" she had had the presence of mind
  • to glean from Selden, in anticipation of this very contingency, were
  • serving her to such good purpose that she began to think her visit to him
  • had been the luckiest incident of the day. She had once more shown her
  • talent for profiting by the unexpected, and dangerous theories as to the
  • advisability of yielding to impulse were germinating under the surface of
  • smiling attention which she continued to present to her companion.
  • Mr. Gryce's sensations, if less definite, were equally agreeable. He
  • felt the confused titillation with which the lower organisms welcome the
  • gratification of their needs, and all his senses floundered in a vague
  • well-being, through which Miss Bart's personality was dimly but
  • pleasantly perceptible.
  • Mr. Gryce's interest in Americana had not originated with himself: it was
  • impossible to think of him as evolving any taste of his own. An uncle had
  • left him a collection already noted among bibliophiles; the existence of
  • the collection was the only fact that had ever shed glory on the name of
  • Gryce, and the nephew took as much pride in his inheritance as though it
  • had been his own work. Indeed, he gradually came to regard it as such,
  • and to feel a sense of personal complacency when he chanced on any
  • reference to the Gryce Americana. Anxious as he was to avoid personal
  • notice, he took, in the printed mention of his name, a pleasure so
  • exquisite and excessive that it seemed a compensation for his shrinking
  • from publicity.
  • To enjoy the sensation as often as possible, he subscribed to all the
  • reviews dealing with book-collecting in general, and American history in
  • particular, and as allusions to his library abounded in the pages of
  • these journals, which formed his only reading, he came to regard himself
  • as figuring prominently in the public eye, and to enjoy the thought of
  • the interest which would be excited if the persons he met in the street,
  • or sat among in travelling, were suddenly to be told that he was the
  • possessor of the Gryce Americana.
  • Most timidities have such secret compensations, and Miss Bart was
  • discerning enough to know that the inner vanity is generally in
  • proportion to the outer self-depreciation. With a more confident person
  • she would not have dared to dwell so long on one topic, or to show such
  • exaggerated interest in it; but she had rightly guessed that Mr. Gryce's
  • egoism was a thirsty soil, requiring constant nurture from without. Miss
  • Bart had the gift of following an undercurrent of thought while she
  • appeared to be sailing on the surface of conversation; and in this case
  • her mental excursion took the form of a rapid survey of Mr. Percy Gryce's
  • future as combined with her own. The Gryces were from Albany, and but
  • lately introduced to the metropolis, where the mother and son had come,
  • after old Jefferson Gryce's death, to take possession of his house in
  • Madison Avenue--an appalling house, all brown stone without and black
  • walnut within, with the Gryce library in a fire-proof annex that looked
  • like a mausoleum. Lily, however, knew all about them: young Mr. Gryce's
  • arrival had fluttered the maternal breasts of New York, and when a girl
  • has no mother to palpitate for her she must needs be on the alert for
  • herself. Lily, therefore, had not only contrived to put herself in the
  • young man's way, but had made the acquaintance of Mrs. Gryce, a
  • monumental woman with the voice of a pulpit orator and a mind preoccupied
  • with the iniquities of her servants, who came sometimes to sit with Mrs.
  • Peniston and learn from that lady how she managed to prevent the
  • kitchen-maid's smuggling groceries out of the house. Mrs. Gryce had a
  • kind of impersonal benevolence: cases of individual need she regarded
  • with suspicion, but she subscribed to Institutions when their annual
  • reports showed an impressive surplus. Her domestic duties were manifold,
  • for they extended from furtive inspections of the servants' bedrooms to
  • unannounced descents to the cellar; but she had never allowed herself
  • many pleasures. Once, however, she had had a special edition of the Sarum
  • Rule printed in rubric and presented to every clergyman in the diocese;
  • and the gilt album in which their letters of thanks were pasted formed
  • the chief ornament of her drawing-room table.
  • Percy had been brought up in the principles which so excellent a woman
  • was sure to inculcate. Every form of prudence and suspicion had been
  • grafted on a nature originally reluctant and cautious, with the result
  • that it would have seemed hardly needful for Mrs. Gryce to extract his
  • promise about the overshoes, so little likely was he to hazard himself
  • abroad in the rain. After attaining his majority, and coming into the
  • fortune which the late Mr. Gryce had made out of a patent device for
  • excluding fresh air from hotels, the young man continued to live with his
  • mother in Albany; but on Jefferson Gryce's death, when another large
  • property passed into her son's hands, Mrs. Gryce thought that what she
  • called his "interests" demanded his presence in New York. She accordingly
  • installed herself in the Madison Avenue house, and Percy, whose sense of
  • duty was not inferior to his mother's, spent all his week days in the
  • handsome Broad Street office where a batch of pale men on small salaries
  • had grown grey in the management of the Gryce estate, and where he was
  • initiated with becoming reverence into every detail of the art of
  • accumulation.
  • As far as Lily could learn, this had hitherto been Mr. Gryce's only
  • occupation, and she might have been pardoned for thinking it not too hard
  • a task to interest a young man who had been kept on such low diet. At
  • any rate, she felt herself so completely in command of the situation that
  • she yielded to a sense of security in which all fear of Mr. Rosedale, and
  • of the difficulties on which that fear was contingent, vanished beyond
  • the edge of thought.
  • The stopping of the train at Garrisons would not have distracted her from
  • these thoughts, had she not caught a sudden look of distress in her
  • companion's eye. His seat faced toward the door, and she guessed that he
  • had been perturbed by the approach of an acquaintance; a fact confirmed
  • by the turning of heads and general sense of commotion which her own
  • entrance into a railway-carriage was apt to produce.
  • She knew the symptoms at once, and was not surprised to be hailed by the
  • high notes of a pretty woman, who entered the train accompanied by a
  • maid, a bull-terrier, and a footman staggering under a load of bags and
  • dressing-cases.
  • "Oh, Lily--are you going to Bellomont? Then you can't let me have your
  • seat, I suppose? But I MUST have a seat in this carriage--porter, you
  • must find me a place at once. Can't some one be put somewhere else? I
  • want to be with my friends. Oh, how do you do, Mr. Gryce? Do please make
  • him understand that I must have a seat next to you and Lily."
  • Mrs. George Dorset, regardless of the mild efforts of a traveller with a
  • carpet-bag, who was doing his best to make room for her by getting out of
  • the train, stood in the middle of the aisle, diffusing about her that
  • general sense of exasperation which a pretty woman on her travels not
  • infrequently creates.
  • She was smaller and thinner than Lily Bart, with a restless pliability of
  • pose, as if she could have been crumpled up and run through a ring, like
  • the sinuous draperies she affected. Her small pale face seemed the mere
  • setting of a pair of dark exaggerated eyes, of which the visionary gaze
  • contrasted curiously with her self-assertive tone and gestures; so that,
  • as one of her friends observed, she was like a disembodied spirit who
  • took up a great deal of room.
  • Having finally discovered that the seat adjoining Miss Bart's was at her
  • disposal, she possessed herself of it with a farther displacement of her
  • surroundings, explaining meanwhile that she had come across from Mount
  • Kisco in her motor-car that morning, and had been kicking her heels for
  • an hour at Garrisons, without even the alleviation of a cigarette, her
  • brute of a husband having neglected to replenish her case before they
  • parted that morning.
  • "And at this hour of the day I don't suppose you've a single one left,
  • have you, Lily?" she plaintively concluded.
  • Miss Bart caught the startled glance of Mr. Percy Gryce, whose own lips
  • were never defiled by tobacco.
  • "What an absurd question, Bertha!" she exclaimed, blushing at the thought
  • of the store she had laid in at Lawrence Selden's.
  • "Why, don't you smoke? Since when have you given it up? What--you
  • never---- And you don't either, Mr. Gryce? Ah, of course--how stupid of
  • me--I understand."
  • And Mrs. Dorset leaned back against her travelling cushions with a smile
  • which made Lily wish there had been no vacant seat beside her own.
  • Chapter 3
  • Bridge at Bellomont usually lasted till the small hours; and when Lily
  • went to bed that night she had played too long for her own good.
  • Feeling no desire for the self-communion which awaited her in her room,
  • she lingered on the broad stairway, looking down into the hall below,
  • where the last card-players were grouped about the tray of tall glasses
  • and silver-collared decanters which the butler had just placed on a low
  • table near the fire.
  • The hall was arcaded, with a gallery supported on columns of pale yellow
  • marble. Tall clumps of flowering plants were grouped against a background
  • of dark foliage in the angles of the walls. On the crimson carpet a
  • deer-hound and two or three spaniels dozed luxuriously before the fire,
  • and the light from the great central lantern overhead shed a brightness
  • on the women's hair and struck sparks from their jewels as they moved.
  • There were moments when such scenes delighted Lily, when they gratified
  • her sense of beauty and her craving for the external finish of life;
  • there were others when they gave a sharper edge to the meagreness of her
  • own opportunities. This was one of the moments when the sense of contrast
  • was uppermost, and she turned away impatiently as Mrs. George Dorset,
  • glittering in serpentine spangles, drew Percy Gryce in her wake to a
  • confidential nook beneath the gallery.
  • It was not that Miss Bart was afraid of losing her newly-acquired hold
  • over Mr. Gryce. Mrs. Dorset might startle or dazzle him, but she had
  • neither the skill nor the patience to effect his capture. She was too
  • self-engrossed to penetrate the recesses of his shyness, and besides, why
  • should she care to give herself the trouble? At most it might amuse her
  • to make sport of his simplicity for an evening--after that he would be
  • merely a burden to her, and knowing this, she was far too experienced to
  • encourage him. But the mere thought of that other woman, who could take a
  • man up and toss him aside as she willed, without having to regard him as
  • a possible factor in her plans, filled Lily Bart with envy. She had been
  • bored all the afternoon by Percy Gryce--the mere thought seemed to waken
  • an echo of his droning voice--but she could not ignore him on the morrow,
  • she must follow up her success, must submit to more boredom, must be
  • ready with fresh compliances and adaptabilities, and all on the bare
  • chance that he might ultimately decide to do her the honour of boring her
  • for life.
  • It was a hateful fate--but how escape from it? What choice had she? To be
  • herself, or a Gerty Farish. As she entered her bedroom, with its
  • softly-shaded lights, her lace dressing-gown lying across the silken
  • bedspread, her little embroidered slippers before the fire, a vase of
  • carnations filling the air with perfume, and the last novels and
  • magazines lying uncut on a table beside the reading-lamp, she had a
  • vision of Miss Farish's cramped flat, with its cheap conveniences and
  • hideous wall-papers. No; she was not made for mean and shabby
  • surroundings, for the squalid compromises of poverty. Her whole being
  • dilated in an atmosphere of luxury; it was the background she required,
  • the only climate she could breathe in. But the luxury of others was not
  • what she wanted. A few years ago it had sufficed her: she had taken her
  • daily meed of pleasure without caring who provided it. Now she was
  • beginning to chafe at the obligations it imposed, to feel herself a mere
  • pensioner on the splendour which had once seemed to belong to her. There
  • were even moments when she was conscious of having to pay her way.
  • For a long time she had refused to play bridge. She knew she could not
  • afford it, and she was afraid of acquiring so expensive a taste. She had
  • seen the danger exemplified in more than one of her associates--in young
  • Ned Silverton, for instance, the charming fair boy now seated in abject
  • rapture at the elbow of Mrs. Fisher, a striking divorcee with eyes and
  • gowns as emphatic as the head-lines of her "case." Lily could remember
  • when young Silverton had stumbled into their circle, with the air of a
  • strayed Arcadian who has published charming sonnets in his college journal.
  • Since then he had developed a taste for Mrs. Fisher and bridge, and the
  • latter at least had involved him in expenses from which he had been more
  • than once rescued by harassed maiden sisters, who treasured the sonnets,
  • and went without sugar in their tea to keep their darling afloat. Ned's
  • case was familiar to Lily: she had seen his charming eyes--which had a
  • good deal more poetry in them than the sonnets--change from surprise to
  • amusement, and from amusement to anxiety, as he passed under the spell
  • of the terrible god of chance; and she was afraid of discovering the
  • same symptoms in her own case.
  • For in the last year she had found that her hostesses expected her to
  • take a place at the card-table. It was one of the taxes she had to pay
  • for their prolonged hospitality, and for the dresses and trinkets which
  • occasionally replenished her insufficient wardrobe. And since she had
  • played regularly the passion had grown on her. Once or twice of late she
  • had won a large sum, and instead of keeping it against future losses, had
  • spent it in dress or jewelry; and the desire to atone for this
  • imprudence, combined with the increasing exhilaration of the game, drove
  • her to risk higher stakes at each fresh venture. She tried to excuse
  • herself on the plea that, in the Trenor set, if one played at all one
  • must either play high or be set down as priggish or stingy; but she knew
  • that the gambling passion was upon her, and that in her present
  • surroundings there was small hope of resisting it.
  • Tonight the luck had been persistently bad, and the little gold purse
  • which hung among her trinkets was almost empty when she returned to her
  • room. She unlocked the wardrobe, and taking out her jewel-case, looked
  • under the tray for the roll of bills from which she had replenished the
  • purse before going down to dinner. Only twenty dollars were left: the
  • discovery was so startling that for a moment she fancied she must have
  • been robbed. Then she took paper and pencil, and seating herself at the
  • writing-table, tried to reckon up what she had spent during the day. Her
  • head was throbbing with fatigue, and she had to go over the figures again
  • and again; but at last it became clear to her that she had lost three
  • hundred dollars at cards. She took out her cheque-book to see if her
  • balance was larger than she remembered, but found she had erred in the
  • other direction. Then she returned to her calculations; but figure as she
  • would, she could not conjure back the vanished three hundred dollars. It
  • was the sum she had set aside to pacify her dress-maker--unless she
  • should decide to use it as a sop to the jeweller. At any rate, she had so
  • many uses for it that its very insufficiency had caused her to play high
  • in the hope of doubling it. But of course she had lost--she who needed
  • every penny, while Bertha Dorset, whose husband showered money on her,
  • must have pocketed at least five hundred, and Judy Trenor, who could have
  • afforded to lose a thousand a night, had left the table clutching such a
  • heap of bills that she had been unable to shake hands with her guests
  • when they bade her good night.
  • A world in which such things could be seemed a miserable place to Lily
  • Bart; but then she had never been able to understand the laws of a
  • universe which was so ready to leave her out of its calculations.
  • She began to undress without ringing for her maid, whom she had sent to
  • bed. She had been long enough in bondage to other people's pleasure to be
  • considerate of those who depended on hers, and in her bitter moods it
  • sometimes struck her that she and her maid were in the same position,
  • except that the latter received her wages more regularly.
  • As she sat before the mirror brushing her hair, her face looked hollow
  • and pale, and she was frightened by two little lines near her mouth,
  • faint flaws in the smooth curve of the cheek.
  • "Oh, I must stop worrying!" she exclaimed. "Unless it's the electric
  • light----" she reflected, springing up from her seat and lighting the
  • candles on the dressing-table.
  • She turned out the wall-lights, and peered at herself between the
  • candle-flames. The white oval of her face swam out waveringly from a
  • background of shadows, the uncertain light blurring it like a haze; but
  • the two lines about the mouth remained.
  • Lily rose and undressed in haste.
  • "It is only because I am tired and have such odious things to think
  • about," she kept repeating; and it seemed an added injustice that petty
  • cares should leave a trace on the beauty which was her only defence
  • against them.
  • But the odious things were there, and remained with her. She returned
  • wearily to the thought of Percy Gryce, as a wayfarer picks up a heavy
  • load and toils on after a brief rest. She was almost sure she had
  • "landed" him: a few days' work and she would win her reward. But the
  • reward itself seemed unpalatable just then: she could get no zest from
  • the thought of victory. It would be a rest from worry, no more--and how
  • little that would have seemed to her a few years earlier! Her ambitions
  • had shrunk gradually in the desiccating air of failure. But why had she
  • failed? Was it her own fault or that of destiny?
  • She remembered how her mother, after they had lost their money, used to
  • say to her with a kind of fierce vindictiveness: "But you'll get it all
  • back--you'll get it all back, with your face." . . . The remembrance
  • roused a whole train of association, and she lay in the darkness
  • reconstructing the past out of which her present had grown.
  • A house in which no one ever dined at home unless there was "company"; a
  • door-bell perpetually ringing; a hall-table showered with square
  • envelopes which were opened in haste, and oblong envelopes which were
  • allowed to gather dust in the depths of a bronze jar; a series of French
  • and English maids giving warning amid a chaos of hurriedly-ransacked
  • wardrobes and dress-closets; an equally changing dynasty of nurses and
  • footmen; quarrels in the pantry, the kitchen and the drawing-room;
  • precipitate trips to Europe, and returns with gorged trunks and days of
  • interminable unpacking; semi-annual discussions as to where the summer
  • should be spent, grey interludes of economy and brilliant reactions of
  • expense--such was the setting of Lily Bart's first memories.
  • Ruling the turbulent element called home was the vigorous and determined
  • figure of a mother still young enough to dance her ball-dresses to rags,
  • while the hazy outline of a neutral-tinted father filled an intermediate
  • space between the butler and the man who came to wind the clocks. Even to
  • the eyes of infancy, Mrs. Hudson Bart had appeared young; but Lily could
  • not recall the time when her father had not been bald and slightly
  • stooping, with streaks of grey in his hair, and a tired walk. It was a
  • shock to her to learn afterward that he was but two years older than her
  • mother.
  • Lily seldom saw her father by daylight. All day he was "down town"; and
  • in winter it was long after nightfall when she heard his fagged step on
  • the stairs and his hand on the school-room door. He would kiss her in
  • silence, and ask one or two questions of the nurse or the governess; then
  • Mrs. Bart's maid would come to remind him that he was dining out, and he
  • would hurry away with a nod to Lily. In summer, when he joined them for a
  • Sunday at Newport or Southampton, he was even more effaced and silent
  • than in winter. It seemed to tire him to rest, and he would sit for hours
  • staring at the sea-line from a quiet corner of the verandah, while the
  • clatter of his wife's existence went on unheeded a few feet off.
  • Generally, however, Mrs. Bart and Lily went to Europe for the summer, and
  • before the steamer was half way over Mr. Bart had dipped below the
  • horizon. Sometimes his daughter heard him denounced for having neglected
  • to forward Mrs. Bart's remittances; but for the most part he was never
  • mentioned or thought of till his patient stooping figure presented itself
  • on the New York dock as a buffer between the magnitude of his wife's
  • luggage and the restrictions of the American custom-house.
  • In this desultory yet agitated fashion life went on through Lily's teens:
  • a zig-zag broken course down which the family craft glided on a rapid
  • current of amusement, tugged at by the underflow of a perpetual need--the
  • need of more money. Lily could not recall the time when there had been
  • money enough, and in some vague way her father seemed always to blame for
  • the deficiency. It could certainly not be the fault of Mrs. Bart, who
  • was spoken of by her friends as a "wonderful manager." Mrs. Bart was
  • famous for the unlimited effect she produced on limited means; and to the
  • lady and her acquaintances there was something heroic in living as though
  • one were much richer than one's bank-book denoted.
  • Lily was naturally proud of her mother's aptitude in this line: she had
  • been brought up in the faith that, whatever it cost, one must have a good
  • cook, and be what Mrs. Bart called "decently dressed." Mrs. Bart's worst
  • reproach to her husband was to ask him if he expected her to "live like a
  • pig"; and his replying in the negative was always regarded as a
  • justification for cabling to Paris for an extra dress or two, and
  • telephoning to the jeweller that he might, after all, send home the
  • turquoise bracelet which Mrs. Bart had looked at that morning.
  • Lily knew people who "lived like pigs," and their appearance and
  • surroundings justified her mother's repugnance to that form of existence.
  • They were mostly cousins, who inhabited dingy houses with engravings from
  • Cole's Voyage of Life on the drawing-room walls, and slatternly
  • parlour-maids who said "I'll go and see" to visitors calling at an hour
  • when all right-minded persons are conventionally if not actually out. The
  • disgusting part of it was that many of these cousins were rich, so that
  • Lily imbibed the idea that if people lived like pigs it was from choice,
  • and through the lack of any proper standard of conduct. This gave her a
  • sense of reflected superiority, and she did not need Mrs. Bart's comments
  • on the family frumps and misers to foster her naturally lively taste for
  • splendour.
  • Lily was nineteen when circumstances caused her to revise her view of the
  • universe.
  • The previous year she had made a dazzling debut fringed by a heavy
  • thunder-cloud of bills. The light of the debut still lingered on the
  • horizon, but the cloud had thickened; and suddenly it broke. The
  • suddenness added to the horror; and there were still times when Lily
  • relived with painful vividness every detail of the day on which the blow
  • fell. She and her mother had been seated at the luncheon-table, over the
  • CHAUFROIX and cold salmon of the previous night's dinner: it was one of
  • Mrs. Bart's few economies to consume in private the expensive remnants of
  • her hospitality. Lily was feeling the pleasant languor which is youth's
  • penalty for dancing till dawn; but her mother, in spite of a few lines
  • about the mouth, and under the yellow waves on her temples, was as alert,
  • determined and high in colour as if she had risen from an untroubled
  • sleep.
  • In the centre of the table, between the melting MARRONS GLACES and
  • candied cherries, a pyramid of American Beauties lifted their vigorous
  • stems; they held their heads as high as Mrs. Bart, but their rose-colour
  • had turned to a dissipated purple, and Lily's sense of fitness was
  • disturbed by their reappearance on the luncheon-table.
  • "I really think, mother," she said reproachfully, "we might afford a few
  • fresh flowers for luncheon. Just some jonquils or lilies-of-the-valley--"
  • Mrs. Bart stared. Her own fastidiousness had its eye fixed on the world,
  • and she did not care how the luncheon-table looked when there was no one
  • present at it but the family. But she smiled at her daughter's innocence.
  • "Lilies-of-the-valley," she said calmly, "cost two dollars a dozen at
  • this season."
  • Lily was not impressed. She knew very little of the value of money.
  • "It would not take more than six dozen to fill that bowl," she argued.
  • "Six dozen what?" asked her father's voice in the doorway.
  • The two women looked up in surprise; though it was a Saturday, the sight
  • of Mr. Bart at luncheon was an unwonted one. But neither his wife nor his
  • daughter was sufficiently interested to ask an explanation.
  • Mr. Bart dropped into a chair, and sat gazing absently at the fragment of
  • jellied salmon which the butler had placed before him.
  • "I was only saying," Lily began, "that I hate to see faded flowers at
  • luncheon; and mother says a bunch of lilies-of-the-valley would not cost
  • more than twelve dollars. Mayn't I tell the florist to send a few every
  • day?"
  • She leaned confidently toward her father: he seldom refused her anything,
  • and Mrs. Bart had taught her to plead with him when her own entreaties
  • failed.
  • Mr. Bart sat motionless, his gaze still fixed on the salmon, and his
  • lower jaw dropped; he looked even paler than usual, and his thin hair lay
  • in untidy streaks on his forehead. Suddenly he looked at his daughter and
  • laughed. The laugh was so strange that Lily coloured under it: she
  • disliked being ridiculed, and her father seemed to see something
  • ridiculous in the request. Perhaps he thought it foolish that she should
  • trouble him about such a trifle.
  • "Twelve dollars--twelve dollars a day for flowers? Oh, certainly, my
  • dear--give him an order for twelve hundred." He continued to laugh.
  • Mrs. Bart gave him a quick glance.
  • "You needn't wait, Poleworth--I will ring for you," she said to the
  • butler.
  • The butler withdrew with an air of silent disapproval, leaving the
  • remains of the CHAUFROIX on the sideboard.
  • "What is the matter, Hudson? Are you ill?" said Mrs. Bart severely.
  • She had no tolerance for scenes which were not of her own making, and it
  • was odious to her that her husband should make a show of himself before
  • the servants.
  • "Are you ill?" she repeated.
  • "Ill?---- No, I'm ruined," he said.
  • Lily made a frightened sound, and Mrs. Bart rose to her feet.
  • "Ruined----?" she cried; but controlling herself instantly, she turned a
  • calm face to Lily.
  • "Shut the pantry door," she said.
  • Lily obeyed, and when she turned back into the room her father was
  • sitting with both elbows on the table, the plate of salmon between them,
  • and his head bowed on his hands.
  • Mrs. Bart stood over him with a white face which made her hair
  • unnaturally yellow. She looked at Lily as the latter approached: her look
  • was terrible, but her voice was modulated to a ghastly cheerfulness.
  • "Your father is not well--he doesn't know what he is saying. It is
  • nothing--but you had better go upstairs; and don't talk to the servants,"
  • she added.
  • Lily obeyed; she always obeyed when her mother spoke in that voice. She
  • had not been deceived by Mrs. Bart's words: she knew at once that they
  • were ruined. In the dark hours which followed, that awful fact
  • overshadowed even her father's slow and difficult dying. To his wife he
  • no longer counted: he had become extinct when he ceased to fulfil his
  • purpose, and she sat at his side with the provisional air of a traveller
  • who waits for a belated train to start. Lily's feelings were softer: she
  • pitied him in a frightened ineffectual way. But the fact that he was for
  • the most part unconscious, and that his attention, when she stole into
  • the room, drifted away from her after a moment, made him even more of a
  • stranger than in the nursery days when he had never come home till after
  • dark. She seemed always to have seen him through a blur--first of
  • sleepiness, then of distance and indifference--and now the fog had
  • thickened till he was almost indistinguishable. If she could have
  • performed any little services for him, or have exchanged with him a few
  • of those affecting words which an extensive perusal of fiction had led
  • her to connect with such occasions, the filial instinct might have
  • stirred in her; but her pity, finding no active expression, remained in a
  • state of spectatorship, overshadowed by her mother's grim unflagging
  • resentment. Every look and act of Mrs. Bart's seemed to say: "You are
  • sorry for him now--but you will feel differently when you see what he has
  • done to us."
  • It was a relief to Lily when her father died.
  • Then a long winter set in. There was a little money left, but to Mrs.
  • Bart it seemed worse than nothing--the mere mockery of what she was
  • entitled to. What was the use of living if one had to live like a pig?
  • She sank into a kind of furious apathy, a state of inert anger against
  • fate. Her faculty for "managing" deserted her, or she no longer took
  • sufficient pride in it to exert it. It was well enough to "manage" when
  • by so doing one could keep one's own carriage; but when one's best
  • contrivance did not conceal the fact that one had to go on foot, the
  • effort was no longer worth making.
  • Lily and her mother wandered from place to place, now paying long visits
  • to relations whose house-keeping Mrs. Bart criticized, and who deplored
  • the fact that she let Lily breakfast in bed when the girl had no
  • prospects before her, and now vegetating in cheap continental refuges,
  • where Mrs. Bart held herself fiercely aloof from the frugal tea-tables of
  • her companions in misfortune. She was especially careful to avoid her old
  • friends and the scenes of her former successes. To be poor seemed to her
  • such a confession of failure that it amounted to disgrace; and she
  • detected a note of condescension in the friendliest advances.
  • Only one thought consoled her, and that was the contemplation of Lily's
  • beauty. She studied it with a kind of passion, as though it were some
  • weapon she had slowly fashioned for her vengeance. It was the last asset
  • in their fortunes, the nucleus around which their life was to be rebuilt.
  • She watched it jealously, as though it were her own property and Lily its
  • mere custodian; and she tried to instil into the latter a sense of the
  • responsibility that such a charge involved. She followed in imagination
  • the career of other beauties, pointing out to her daughter what might be
  • achieved through such a gift, and dwelling on the awful warning of those
  • who, in spite of it, had failed to get what they wanted: to Mrs. Bart,
  • only stupidity could explain the lamentable denouement of some of her
  • examples. She was not above the inconsistency of charging fate, rather
  • than herself, with her own misfortunes; but she inveighed so
  • acrimoniously against love-matches that Lily would have fancied her own
  • marriage had been of that nature, had not Mrs. Bart frequently assured
  • her that she had been "talked into it"--by whom, she never made clear.
  • Lily was duly impressed by the magnitude of her opportunities. The
  • dinginess of her present life threw into enchanting relief the existence
  • to which she felt herself entitled. To a less illuminated intelligence
  • Mrs. Bart's counsels might have been dangerous; but Lily understood that
  • beauty is only the raw material of conquest, and that to convert it into
  • success other arts are required. She knew that to betray any sense of
  • superiority was a subtler form of the stupidity her mother denounced, and
  • it did not take her long to learn that a beauty needs more tact than the
  • possessor of an average set of features.
  • Her ambitions were not as crude as Mrs. Bart's. It had been among that
  • lady's grievances that her husband--in the early days, before he was too
  • tired--had wasted his evenings in what she vaguely described as "reading
  • poetry"; and among the effects packed off to auction after his death were
  • a score or two of dingy volumes which had struggled for existence among
  • the boots and medicine bottles of his dressing-room shelves. There was in
  • Lily a vein of sentiment, perhaps transmitted from this source, which
  • gave an idealizing touch to her most prosaic purposes. She liked to think
  • of her beauty as a power for good, as giving her the opportunity to
  • attain a position where she should make her influence felt in the vague
  • diffusion of refinement and good taste. She was fond of pictures and
  • flowers, and of sentimental fiction, and she could not help thinking that
  • the possession of such tastes ennobled her desire for worldly advantages.
  • She would not indeed have cared to marry a man who was merely rich: she
  • was secretly ashamed of her mother's crude passion for money. Lily's
  • preference would have been for an English nobleman with political
  • ambitions and vast estates; or, for second choice, an Italian prince with
  • a castle in the Apennines and an hereditary office in the Vatican. Lost
  • causes had a romantic charm for her, and she liked to picture herself as
  • standing aloof from the vulgar press of the Quirinal, and sacrificing her
  • pleasure to the claims of an immemorial tradition. . . .
  • How long ago and how far off it all seemed! Those ambitions were hardly
  • more futile and childish than the earlier ones which had centred about
  • the possession of a French jointed doll with real hair. Was it only ten
  • years since she had wavered in imagination between the English earl and
  • the Italian prince? Relentlessly her mind travelled on over the dreary
  • interval. . . .
  • After two years of hungry roaming Mrs. Bart had died----died of a deep
  • disgust. She had hated dinginess, and it was her fate to be dingy. Her
  • visions of a brilliant marriage for Lily had faded after the first year.
  • "People can't marry you if they don't see you--and how can they see you
  • in these holes where we're stuck?" That was the burden of her lament; and
  • her last adjuration to her daughter was to escape from dinginess if she
  • could.
  • "Don't let it creep up on you and drag you down. Fight your way out of it
  • somehow--you're young and can do it," she insisted.
  • She had died during one of their brief visits to New York, and there Lily
  • at once became the centre of a family council composed of the wealthy
  • relatives whom she had been taught to despise for living like pigs. It
  • may be that they had an inkling of the sentiments in which she had been
  • brought up, for none of them manifested a very lively desire for her
  • company; indeed, the question threatened to remain unsolved till Mrs.
  • Peniston with a sigh announced: "I'll try her for a year."
  • Every one was surprised, but one and all concealed their surprise, lest
  • Mrs. Peniston should be alarmed by it into reconsidering her decision.
  • Mrs. Peniston was Mr. Bart's widowed sister, and if she was by no means
  • the richest of the family group, its other members nevertheless abounded
  • in reasons why she was clearly destined by Providence to assume the
  • charge of Lily. In the first place she was alone, and it would be
  • charming for her to have a young companion. Then she sometimes travelled,
  • and Lily's familiarity with foreign customs--deplored as a misfortune by
  • her more conservative relatives--would at least enable her to act as a
  • kind of courier. But as a matter of fact Mrs. Peniston had not been
  • affected by these considerations. She had taken the girl simply because
  • no one else would have her, and because she had the kind of moral
  • MAUVAISE HONTE which makes the public display of selfishness difficult,
  • though it does not interfere with its private indulgence. It would have
  • been impossible for Mrs. Peniston to be heroic on a desert island, but
  • with the eyes of her little world upon her she took a certain pleasure in
  • her act.
  • She reaped the reward to which disinterestedness is entitled, and found
  • an agreeable companion in her niece. She had expected to find Lily
  • headstrong, critical and "foreign"--for even Mrs. Peniston, though she
  • occasionally went abroad, had the family dread of foreignness--but the
  • girl showed a pliancy, which, to a more penetrating mind than her aunt's,
  • might have been less reassuring than the open selfishness of youth.
  • Misfortune had made Lily supple instead of hardening her, and a pliable
  • substance is less easy to break than a stiff one.
  • Mrs. Peniston, however, did not suffer from her niece's adaptability.
  • Lily had no intention of taking advantage of her aunt's good nature. She
  • was in truth grateful for the refuge offered her: Mrs. Peniston's opulent
  • interior was at least not externally dingy. But dinginess is a quality
  • which assumes all manner of disguises; and Lily soon found that it was as
  • latent in the expensive routine of her aunt's life as in the makeshift
  • existence of a continental pension.
  • Mrs. Peniston was one of the episodical persons who form the padding of
  • life. It was impossible to believe that she had herself ever been a focus
  • of activities. The most vivid thing about her was the fact that her
  • grandmother had been a Van Alstyne. This connection with the well-fed and
  • industrious stock of early New York revealed itself in the glacial
  • neatness of Mrs. Peniston's drawing-room and in the excellence of her
  • cuisine. She belonged to the class of old New Yorkers who have always
  • lived well, dressed expensively, and done little else; and to these
  • inherited obligations Mrs. Peniston faithfully conformed. She had always
  • been a looker-on at life, and her mind resembled one of those little
  • mirrors which her Dutch ancestors were accustomed to affix to their upper
  • windows, so that from the depths of an impenetrable domesticity they
  • might see what was happening in the street.
  • Mrs. Peniston was the owner of a country-place in New Jersey, but she had
  • never lived there since her husband's death--a remote event, which
  • appeared to dwell in her memory chiefly as a dividing point in the
  • personal reminiscences that formed the staple of her conversation. She
  • was a woman who remembered dates with intensity, and could tell at a
  • moment's notice whether the drawing-room curtains had been renewed before
  • or after Mr. Peniston's last illness.
  • Mrs. Peniston thought the country lonely and trees damp, and cherished a
  • vague fear of meeting a bull. To guard against such contingencies she
  • frequented the more populous watering-places, where she installed herself
  • impersonally in a hired house and looked on at life through the matting
  • screen of her verandah. In the care of such a guardian, it soon became
  • clear to Lily that she was to enjoy only the material advantages of good
  • food and expensive clothing; and, though far from underrating these, she
  • would gladly have exchanged them for what Mrs. Bart had taught her to
  • regard as opportunities. She sighed to think what her mother's fierce
  • energies would have accomplished, had they been coupled with Mrs.
  • Peniston's resources. Lily had abundant energy of her own, but it was
  • restricted by the necessity of adapting herself to her aunt's habits. She
  • saw that at all costs she must keep Mrs. Peniston's favour till, as Mrs.
  • Bart would have phrased it, she could stand on her own legs. Lily had no
  • mind for the vagabond life of the poor relation, and to adapt herself to
  • Mrs. Peniston she had, to some degree, to assume that lady's passive
  • attitude. She had fancied at first that it would be easy to draw her aunt
  • into the whirl of her own activities, but there was a static force in
  • Mrs. Peniston against which her niece's efforts spent themselves in vain.
  • To attempt to bring her into active relation with life was like tugging
  • at a piece of furniture which has been screwed to the floor. She did not,
  • indeed, expect Lily to remain equally immovable: she had all the American
  • guardian's indulgence for the volatility of youth.
  • She had indulgence also for certain other habits of her niece's. It
  • seemed to her natural that Lily should spend all her money on dress, and
  • she supplemented the girl's scanty income by occasional "handsome
  • presents" meant to be applied to the same purpose. Lily, who was
  • intensely practical, would have preferred a fixed allowance; but Mrs.
  • Peniston liked the periodical recurrence of gratitude evoked by
  • unexpected cheques, and was perhaps shrewd enough to perceive that such a
  • method of giving kept alive in her niece a salutary sense of dependence.
  • Beyond this, Mrs. Peniston had not felt called upon to do anything for
  • her charge: she had simply stood aside and let her take the field. Lily
  • had taken it, at first with the confidence of assured possessorship, then
  • with gradually narrowing demands, till now she found herself actually
  • struggling for a foothold on the broad space which had once seemed her
  • own for the asking. How it happened she did not yet know. Sometimes she
  • thought it was because Mrs. Peniston had been too passive, and again she
  • feared it was because she herself had not been passive enough. Had she
  • shown an undue eagerness for victory? Had she lacked patience, pliancy
  • and dissimulation? Whether she charged herself with these faults or
  • absolved herself from them, made no difference in the sum-total of her
  • failure. Younger and plainer girls had been married off by dozens, and
  • she was nine-and-twenty, and still Miss Bart.
  • She was beginning to have fits of angry rebellion against fate, when she
  • longed to drop out of the race and make an independent life for herself.
  • But what manner of life would it be? She had barely enough money to pay
  • her dress-makers' bills and her gambling debts; and none of the desultory
  • interests which she dignified with the name of tastes was pronounced
  • enough to enable her to live contentedly in obscurity. Ah, no--she was
  • too intelligent not to be honest with herself. She knew that she hated
  • dinginess as much as her mother had hated it, and to her last breath she
  • meant to fight against it, dragging herself up again and again above its
  • flood till she gained the bright pinnacles of success which presented
  • such a slippery surface to her clutch.
  • Chapter 4
  • The next morning, on her breakfast tray, Miss Bart found a note from her
  • hostess.
  • "Dearest Lily," it ran, "if it is not too much of a bore to be down by
  • ten, will you come to my sitting-room to help me with some tiresome
  • things?"
  • Lily tossed aside the note and subsided on her pillows with a sigh. It
  • WAS a bore to be down by ten--an hour regarded at Bellomont as vaguely
  • synchronous with sunrise--and she knew too well the nature of the
  • tiresome things in question. Miss Pragg, the secretary, had been called
  • away, and there would be notes and dinner-cards to write, lost addresses
  • to hunt up, and other social drudgery to perform. It was understood that
  • Miss Bart should fill the gap in such emergencies, and she usually
  • recognized the obligation without a murmur.
  • Today, however, it renewed the sense of servitude which the previous
  • night's review of her cheque-book had produced. Everything in her
  • surroundings ministered to feelings of ease and amenity. The windows
  • stood open to the sparkling freshness of the September morning, and
  • between the yellow boughs she caught a perspective of hedges and
  • parterres leading by degrees of lessening formality to the free
  • undulations of the park. Her maid had kindled a little fire on the
  • hearth, and it contended cheerfully with the sunlight which slanted
  • across the moss-green carpet and caressed the curved sides of an old
  • marquetry desk. Near the bed stood a table holding her breakfast tray,
  • with its harmonious porcelain and silver, a handful of violets in a
  • slender glass, and the morning paper folded beneath her letters. There
  • was nothing new to Lily in these tokens of a studied luxury; but, though
  • they formed a part of her atmosphere, she never lost her sensitiveness to
  • their charm. Mere display left her with a sense of superior distinction;
  • but she felt an affinity to all the subtler manifestations of wealth.
  • Mrs. Trenor's summons, however, suddenly recalled her state of
  • dependence, and she rose and dressed in a mood of irritability that she
  • was usually too prudent to indulge. She knew that such emotions leave
  • lines on the face as well as in the character, and she had meant to take
  • warning by the little creases which her midnight survey had revealed.
  • The matter-of-course tone of Mrs. Trenor's greeting deepened her
  • irritation. If one did drag one's self out of bed at such an hour, and
  • come down fresh and radiant to the monotony of note-writing, some special
  • recognition of the sacrifice seemed fitting. But Mrs. Trenor's tone
  • showed no consciousness of the fact.
  • "Oh, Lily, that's nice of you," she merely sighed across the chaos of
  • letters, bills and other domestic documents which gave an incongruously
  • commercial touch to the slender elegance of her writing-table.
  • "There are such lots of horrors this morning," she added, clearing a
  • space in the centre of the confusion and rising to yield her seat to Miss
  • Bart.
  • Mrs. Trenor was a tall fair woman, whose height just saved her from
  • redundancy. Her rosy blondness had survived some forty years of futile
  • activity without showing much trace of ill-usage except in a diminished
  • play of feature. It was difficult to define her beyond saying that she
  • seemed to exist only as a hostess, not so much from any exaggerated
  • instinct of hospitality as because she could not sustain life except in a
  • crowd. The collective nature of her interests exempted her from the
  • ordinary rivalries of her sex, and she knew no more personal emotion than
  • that of hatred for the woman who presumed to give bigger dinners or have
  • more amusing house-parties than herself. As her social talents, backed by
  • Mr. Trenor's bank-account, almost always assured her ultimate triumph in
  • such competitions, success had developed in her an unscrupulous good
  • nature toward the rest of her sex, and in Miss Bart's utilitarian
  • classification of her friends, Mrs. Trenor ranked as the woman who was
  • least likely to "go back" on her.
  • "It was simply inhuman of Pragg to go off now," Mrs. Trenor declared, as
  • her friend seated herself at the desk. "She says her sister is going to
  • have a baby--as if that were anything to having a house-party! I'm sure I
  • shall get most horribly mixed up and there will be some awful rows. When
  • I was down at Tuxedo I asked a lot of people for next week, and I've
  • mislaid the list and can't remember who is coming. And this week is going
  • to be a horrid failure too--and Gwen Van Osburgh will go back and tell
  • her mother how bored people were. I did mean to ask the Wetheralls--that
  • was a blunder of Gus's. They disapprove of Carry Fisher, you know. As if
  • one could help having Carry Fisher! It WAS foolish of her to get that
  • second divorce--Carry always overdoes things--but she said the only way
  • to get a penny out of Fisher was to divorce him and make him pay alimony.
  • And poor Carry has to consider every dollar. It's really absurd of Alice
  • Wetherall to make such a fuss about meeting her, when one thinks of what
  • society is coming to. Some one said the other day that there was a
  • divorce and a case of appendicitis in every family one knows. Besides,
  • Carry is the only person who can keep Gus in a good humour when we have
  • bores in the house. Have you noticed that ALL the husbands like her? All,
  • I mean, except her own. It's rather clever of her to have made a
  • specialty of devoting herself to dull people--the field is such a large
  • one, and she has it practically to herself. She finds compensations, no
  • doubt--I know she borrows money of Gus--but then I'd PAY her to keep him
  • in a good humour, so I can't complain, after all."
  • Mrs. Trenor paused to enjoy the spectacle of Miss Bart's efforts to
  • unravel her tangled correspondence.
  • "But it is only the Wetheralls and Carry," she resumed, with a fresh note
  • of lament. "The truth is, I'm awfully disappointed in Lady Cressida
  • Raith."
  • "Disappointed? Had you known her before?"
  • "Mercy, no--never saw her till yesterday. Lady Skiddaw sent her over with
  • letters to the Van Osburghs, and I heard that Maria Van Osburgh was
  • asking a big party to meet her this week, so I thought it would be fun to
  • get her away, and Jack Stepney, who knew her in India, managed it for me.
  • Maria was furious, and actually had the impudence to make Gwen invite
  • herself here, so that they shouldn't be QUITE out of it--if I'd known
  • what Lady Cressida was like, they could have had her and welcome! But I
  • thought any friend of the Skiddaws' was sure to be amusing. You remember
  • what fun Lady Skiddaw was? There were times when I simply had to send the
  • girls out of the room. Besides, Lady Cressida is the Duchess of
  • Beltshire's sister, and I naturally supposed she was the same sort; but
  • you never can tell in those English families. They are so big that
  • there's room for all kinds, and it turns out that Lady Cressida is the
  • moral one--married a clergy-man and does missionary work in the East End.
  • Think of my taking such a lot of trouble about a clergyman's wife, who
  • wears Indian jewelry and botanizes! She made Gus take her all through the
  • glass-houses yesterday, and bothered him to death by asking him the names
  • of the plants. Fancy treating Gus as if he were the gardener!"
  • Mrs. Trenor brought this out in a CRESCENDO of indignation.
  • "Oh, well, perhaps Lady Cressida will reconcile the Wetheralls to meeting
  • Carry Fisher," said Miss Bart pacifically.
  • "I'm sure I hope so! But she is boring all the men horribly, and if she
  • takes to distributing tracts, as I hear she does, it will be too
  • depressing. The worst of it is that she would have been so useful at the
  • right time. You know we have to have the Bishop once a year, and she
  • would have given just the right tone to things. I always have horrid luck
  • about the Bishop's visits," added Mrs. Trenor, whose present misery was
  • being fed by a rapidly rising tide of reminiscence; "last year, when he
  • came, Gus forgot all about his being here, and brought home the Ned
  • Wintons and the Farleys--five divorces and six sets of children between
  • them!"
  • "When is Lady Cressida going?" Lily enquired.
  • Mrs. Trenor cast up her eyes in despair. "My dear, if one only knew! I
  • was in such a hurry to get her away from Maria that I actually forgot to
  • name a date, and Gus says she told some one she meant to stop here all
  • winter."
  • "To stop here? In this house?"
  • "Don't be silly--in America. But if no one else asks her--you know they
  • NEVER go to hotels."
  • "Perhaps Gus only said it to frighten you."
  • "No--I heard her tell Bertha Dorset that she had six months to put in
  • while her husband was taking the cure in the Engadine. You should have
  • seen Bertha look vacant! But it's no joke, you know--if she stays here
  • all the autumn she'll spoil everything, and Maria Van Osburgh will simply
  • exult."
  • At this affecting vision Mrs. Trenor's voice trembled with self-pity.
  • "Oh, Judy--as if any one were ever bored at Bellomont!" Miss Bart
  • tactfully protested. "You know perfectly well that, if Mrs. Van Osburgh
  • were to get all the right people and leave you with all the wrong ones,
  • you'd manage to make things go off, and she wouldn't."
  • Such an assurance would usually have restored Mrs. Trenor's complacency;
  • but on this occasion it did not chase the cloud from her brow.
  • "It isn't only Lady Cressida," she lamented. "Everything has gone wrong
  • this week. I can see that Bertha Dorset is furious with me."
  • "Furious with you? Why?"
  • "Because I told her that Lawrence Selden was coming; but he wouldn't,
  • after all, and she's quite unreasonable enough to think it's my fault."
  • Miss Bart put down her pen and sat absently gazing at the note she had
  • begun.
  • "I thought that was all over," she said.
  • "So it is, on his side. And of course Bertha has been idle since. But I
  • fancy she's out of a job just at present--and some one gave me a hint
  • that I had better ask Lawrence. Well, I DID ask him--but I couldn't make
  • him come; and now I suppose she'll take it out of me by being perfectly
  • nasty to every one else."
  • "Oh, she may take it out of HIM by being perfectly charming--to some one
  • else."
  • Mrs. Trenor shook her head dolefully. "She knows he wouldn't mind. And
  • who else is there? Alice Wetherall won't let Lucius out of her sight.
  • Ned Silverton can't take his eyes off Carry Fisher--poor boy! Gus is
  • bored by Bertha, Jack Stepney knows her too well--and--well, to be sure,
  • there's Percy Gryce!"
  • She sat up smiling at the thought.
  • Miss Bart's countenance did not reflect the smile.
  • "Oh, she and Mr. Gryce would not be likely to hit it off."
  • "You mean that she'd shock him and he'd bore her? Well, that's not such a
  • bad beginning, you know. But I hope she won't take it into her head to be
  • nice to him, for I asked him here on purpose for you."
  • Lily laughed. "MERCI DU COMPLIMENT! I should certainly have no show
  • against Bertha."
  • "Do you think I am uncomplimentary? I'm not really, you know. Every one
  • knows you're a thousand times handsomer and cleverer than Bertha; but
  • then you're not nasty. And for always getting what she wants in the long
  • run, commend me to a nasty woman."
  • Miss Bart stared in affected reproval. "I thought you were so fond of
  • Bertha."
  • "Oh, I am--it's much safer to be fond of dangerous people. But she IS
  • dangerous--and if I ever saw her up to mischief it's now. I can tell by
  • poor George's manner. That man is a perfect barometer--he always knows
  • when Bertha is going to----"
  • "To fall?" Miss Bart suggested.
  • "Don't be shocking! You know he believes in her still. And of course I
  • don't say there's any real harm in Bertha. Only she delights in making
  • people miserable, and especially poor George."
  • "Well, he seems cut out for the part--I don't wonder she likes more
  • cheerful companionship."
  • "Oh, George is not as dismal as you think. If Bertha did worry him he
  • would be quite different. Or if she'd leave him alone, and let him
  • arrange his life as he pleases. But she doesn't dare lose her hold of him
  • on account of the money, and so when HE isn't jealous she pretends to be."
  • Miss Bart went on writing in silence, and her hostess sat following her
  • train of thought with frowning intensity.
  • "Do you know," she exclaimed after a long pause, "I believe I'll call up
  • Lawrence on the telephone and tell him he simply MUST come?"
  • "Oh, don't," said Lily, with a quick suffusion of colour. The blush
  • surprised her almost as much as it did her hostess, who, though not
  • commonly observant of facial changes, sat staring at her with puzzled
  • eyes.
  • "Good gracious, Lily, how handsome you are! Why? Do you dislike him so
  • much?"
  • "Not at all; I like him. But if you are actuated by the benevolent
  • intention of protecting me from Bertha--I don't think I need your
  • protection."
  • Mrs. Trenor sat up with an exclamation. "Lily!----PERCY? Do you mean to
  • say you've actually done it?"
  • Miss Bart smiled. "I only mean to say that Mr. Gryce and I are getting to
  • be very good friends."
  • "H'm--I see." Mrs. Trenor fixed a rapt eye upon her. "You know they say
  • he has eight hundred thousand a year--and spends nothing, except on some
  • rubbishy old books. And his mother has heart-disease and will leave him a
  • lot more. OH, LILY, DO GO SLOWLY," her friend adjured her.
  • Miss Bart continued to smile without annoyance. "I shouldn't, for
  • instance," she remarked, "be in any haste to tell him that he had a lot
  • of rubbishy old books."
  • "No, of course not; I know you're wonderful about getting up people's
  • subjects. But he's horribly shy, and easily shocked, and--and----"
  • "Why don't you say it, Judy? I have the reputation of being on the hunt
  • for a rich husband?"
  • "Oh, I don't mean that; he wouldn't believe it of you--at first," said
  • Mrs. Trenor, with candid shrewdness. "But you know things are rather
  • lively here at times--I must give Jack and Gus a hint--and if he thought
  • you were what his mother would call fast--oh, well, you know what I mean.
  • Don't wear your scarlet CREPE-DE-CHINE for dinner, and don't smoke if you
  • can help it, Lily dear!"
  • Lily pushed aside her finished work with a dry smile. "You're very kind,
  • Judy: I'll lock up my cigarettes and wear that last year's dress you sent
  • me this morning. And if you are really interested in my career, perhaps
  • you'll be kind enough not to ask me to play bridge again this evening."
  • "Bridge? Does he mind bridge, too? Oh, Lily, what an awful life you'll
  • lead! But of course I won't--why didn't you give me a hint last night?
  • There's nothing I wouldn't do, you poor duck, to see you happy!"
  • And Mrs. Trenor, glowing with her sex's eagerness to smooth the course of
  • true love, enveloped Lily in a long embrace.
  • "You're quite sure," she added solicitously, as the latter extricated
  • herself, "that you wouldn't like me to telephone for Lawrence Selden?"
  • "Quite sure," said Lily.
  • The next three days demonstrated to her own complete satisfaction Miss
  • Bart's ability to manage her affairs without extraneous aid.
  • As she sat, on the Saturday afternoon, on the terrace at Bellomont, she
  • smiled at Mrs. Trenor's fear that she might go too fast. If such a
  • warning had ever been needful, the years had taught her a salutary
  • lesson, and she flattered herself that she now knew how to adapt her pace
  • to the object of pursuit. In the case of Mr. Gryce she had found it well
  • to flutter ahead, losing herself elusively and luring him on from depth
  • to depth of unconscious intimacy. The surrounding atmosphere was
  • propitious to this scheme of courtship. Mrs. Trenor, true to her word,
  • had shown no signs of expecting Lily at the bridge-table, and had even
  • hinted to the other card-players that they were to betray no surprise at
  • her unwonted defection. In consequence of this hint, Lily found herself
  • the centre of that feminine solicitude which envelops a young woman in
  • the mating season. A solitude was tacitly created for her in the crowded
  • existence of Bellomont, and her friends could not have shown a greater
  • readiness for self-effacement had her wooing been adorned with all the
  • attributes of romance. In Lily's set this conduct implied a sympathetic
  • comprehension of her motives, and Mr. Gryce rose in her esteem as she saw
  • the consideration he inspired.
  • The terrace at Bellomont on a September afternoon was a spot propitious
  • to sentimental musings, and as Miss Bart stood leaning against the
  • balustrade above the sunken garden, at a little distance from the
  • animated group about the tea-table, she might have been lost in the mazes
  • of an inarticulate happiness. In reality, her thoughts were finding
  • definite utterance in the tranquil recapitulation of the blessings in
  • store for her. From where she stood she could see them embodied in the
  • form of Mr. Gryce, who, in a light overcoat and muffler, sat somewhat
  • nervously on the edge of his chair, while Carry Fisher, with all the
  • energy of eye and gesture with which nature and art had combined to endow
  • her, pressed on him the duty of taking part in the task of municipal
  • reform.
  • Mrs. Fisher's latest hobby was municipal reform. It had been preceded by
  • an equal zeal for socialism, which had in turn replaced an energetic
  • advocacy of Christian Science. Mrs. Fisher was small, fiery and dramatic;
  • and her hands and eyes were admirable instruments in the service of
  • whatever causes she happened to espouse. She had, however, the fault
  • common to enthusiasts of ignoring any slackness of response on the part
  • of her hearers, and Lily was amused by her unconsciousness of the
  • resistance displayed in every angle of Mr. Gryce's attitude. Lily
  • herself knew that his mind was divided between the dread of catching cold
  • if he remained out of doors too long at that hour, and the fear that, if
  • he retreated to the house, Mrs. Fisher might follow him up with a paper
  • to be signed. Mr. Gryce had a constitutional dislike to what he called
  • "committing himself," and tenderly as he cherished his health, he
  • evidently concluded that it was safer to stay out of reach of pen and ink
  • till chance released him from Mrs. Fisher's toils. Meanwhile he cast
  • agonized glances in the direction of Miss Bart, whose only response was
  • to sink into an attitude of more graceful abstraction. She had learned
  • the value of contrast in throwing her charms into relief, and was fully
  • aware of the extent to which Mrs. Fisher's volubility was enhancing her
  • own repose.
  • She was roused from her musings by the approach of her cousin Jack
  • Stepney who, at Gwen Van Osburgh's side, was returning across the garden
  • from the tennis court.
  • The couple in question were engaged in the same kind of romance in which
  • Lily figured, and the latter felt a certain annoyance in contemplating
  • what seemed to her a caricature of her own situation. Miss Van Osburgh
  • was a large girl with flat surfaces and no high lights: Jack Stepney had
  • once said of her that she was as reliable as roast mutton. His own taste
  • was in the line of less solid and more highly-seasoned diet; but hunger
  • makes any fare palatable, and there had been times when Mr. Stepney had
  • been reduced to a crust.
  • Lily considered with interest the expression of their faces: the girl's
  • turned toward her companion's like an empty plate held up to be filled,
  • while the man lounging at her side already betrayed the encroaching
  • boredom which would presently crack the thin veneer of his smile.
  • "How impatient men are!" Lily reflected. "All Jack has to do to get
  • everything he wants is to keep quiet and let that girl marry him; whereas
  • I have to calculate and contrive, and retreat and advance, as if I were
  • going through an intricate dance, where one misstep would throw me
  • hopelessly out of time."
  • As they drew nearer she was whimsically struck by a kind of family
  • likeness between Miss Van Osburgh and Percy Gryce. There was no
  • resemblance of feature. Gryce was handsome in a didactic way--he looked
  • like a clever pupil's drawing from a plaster-cast--while Gwen's
  • countenance had no more modelling than a face painted on a toy balloon.
  • But the deeper affinity was unmistakable: the two had the same prejudices
  • and ideals, and the same quality of making other standards non-existent
  • by ignoring them. This attribute was common to most of Lily's set: they
  • had a force of negation which eliminated everything beyond their own
  • range of perception. Gryce and Miss Van Osburgh were, in short, made for
  • each other by every law of moral and physical correspondence----"Yet they
  • wouldn't look at each other," Lily mused, "they never do. Each of them
  • wants a creature of a different race, of Jack's race and mine, with all
  • sorts of intuitions, sensations and perceptions that they don't even
  • guess the existence of. And they always get what they want."
  • She stood talking with her cousin and Miss Van Osburgh, till a slight
  • cloud on the latter's brow advised her that even cousinly amenities were
  • subject to suspicion, and Miss Bart, mindful of the necessity of not
  • exciting enmities at this crucial point of her career, dropped aside
  • while the happy couple proceeded toward the tea-table.
  • Seating herself on the upper step of the terrace, Lily leaned her head
  • against the honeysuckles wreathing the balustrade. The fragrance of the
  • late blossoms seemed an emanation of the tranquil scene, a landscape
  • tutored to the last degree of rural elegance. In the foreground glowed
  • the warm tints of the gardens. Beyond the lawn, with its pyramidal
  • pale-gold maples and velvety firs, sloped pastures dotted with cattle;
  • and through a long glade the river widened like a lake under the silver
  • light of September. Lily did not want to join the circle about the
  • tea-table. They represented the future she had chosen, and she was
  • content with it, but in no haste to anticipate its joys. The certainty
  • that she could marry Percy Gryce when she pleased had lifted a heavy load
  • from her mind, and her money troubles were too recent for their removal
  • not to leave a sense of relief which a less discerning intelligence might
  • have taken for happiness. Her vulgar cares were at an end. She would be
  • able to arrange her life as she pleased, to soar into that empyrean of
  • security where creditors cannot penetrate. She would have smarter gowns
  • than Judy Trenor, and far, far more jewels than Bertha Dorset. She would
  • be free forever from the shifts, the expedients, the humiliations of the
  • relatively poor. Instead of having to flatter, she would be flattered;
  • instead of being grateful, she would receive thanks. There were old
  • scores she could pay off as well as old benefits she could return. And
  • she had no doubts as to the extent of her power. She knew that Mr. Gryce
  • was of the small chary type most inaccessible to impulses and emotions.
  • He had the kind of character in which prudence is a vice, and good advice
  • the most dangerous nourishment. But Lily had known the species before:
  • she was aware that such a guarded nature must find one huge outlet of
  • egoism, and she determined to be to him what his Americana had hitherto
  • been: the one possession in which he took sufficient pride to spend money
  • on it. She knew that this generosity to self is one of the forms of
  • meanness, and she resolved so to identify herself with her husband's
  • vanity that to gratify her wishes would be to him the most exquisite form
  • of self-indulgence. The system might at first necessitate a resort to
  • some of the very shifts and expedients from which she intended it should
  • free her; but she felt sure that in a short time she would be able to
  • play the game in her own way. How should she have distrusted her powers?
  • Her beauty itself was not the mere ephemeral possession it might have
  • been in the hands of inexperience: her skill in enhancing it, the care
  • she took of it, the use she made of it, seemed to give it a kind of
  • permanence. She felt she could trust it to carry her through to the end.
  • And the end, on the whole, was worthwhile. Life was not the mockery she
  • had thought it three days ago. There was room for her, after all, in this
  • crowded selfish world of pleasure whence, so short a time since, her
  • poverty had seemed to exclude her. These people whom she had ridiculed
  • and yet envied were glad to make a place for her in the charmed circle
  • about which all her desires revolved. They were not as brutal and
  • self-engrossed as she had fancied--or rather, since it would no longer be
  • necessary to flatter and humour them, that side of their nature became
  • less conspicuous. Society is a revolving body which is apt to be judged
  • according to its place in each man's heaven; and at present it was
  • turning its illuminated face to Lily.
  • In the rosy glow it diffused her companions seemed full of amiable
  • qualities. She liked their elegance, their lightness, their lack of
  • emphasis: even the self-assurance which at times was so like obtuseness
  • now seemed the natural sign of social ascendency. They were lords of the
  • only world she cared for, and they were ready to admit her to their ranks
  • and let her lord it with them. Already she felt within her a stealing
  • allegiance to their standards, an acceptance of their limitations, a
  • disbelief in the things they did not believe in, a contemptuous pity for
  • the people who were not able to live as they lived.
  • The early sunset was slanting across the park. Through the boughs of the
  • long avenue beyond the gardens she caught the flash of wheels, and
  • divined that more visitors were approaching. There was a movement behind
  • her, a scattering of steps and voices: it was evident that the party
  • about the tea-table was breaking up. Presently she heard a tread behind
  • her on the terrace. She supposed that Mr. Gryce had at last found means
  • to escape from his predicament, and she smiled at the significance of his
  • coming to join her instead of beating an instant retreat to the fire-side.
  • She turned to give him the welcome which such gallantry deserved; but her
  • greeting wavered into a blush of wonder, for the man who had approached
  • her was Lawrence Selden.
  • "You see I came after all," he said; but before she had time to answer,
  • Mrs. Dorset, breaking away from a lifeless colloquy with her host, had
  • stepped between them with a little gesture of appropriation.
  • Chapter 5
  • The observance of Sunday at Bellomont was chiefly marked by the punctual
  • appearance of the smart omnibus destined to convey the household to the
  • little church at the gates. Whether any one got into the omnibus or not
  • was a matter of secondary importance, since by standing there it not only
  • bore witness to the orthodox intentions of the family, but made Mrs.
  • Trenor feel, when she finally heard it drive away, that she had somehow
  • vicariously made use of it.
  • It was Mrs. Trenor's theory that her daughters actually did go to church
  • every Sunday; but their French governess's convictions calling her to the
  • rival fane, and the fatigues of the week keeping their mother in her room
  • till luncheon, there was seldom any one present to verify the fact. Now
  • and then, in a spasmodic burst of virtue--when the house had been too
  • uproarious over night--Gus Trenor forced his genial bulk into a tight
  • frock-coat and routed his daughters from their slumbers; but habitually,
  • as Lily explained to Mr. Gryce, this parental duty was forgotten till the
  • church bells were ringing across the park, and the omnibus had driven
  • away empty.
  • Lily had hinted to Mr. Gryce that this neglect of religious observances
  • was repugnant to her early traditions, and that during her visits to
  • Bellomont she regularly accompanied Muriel and Hilda to church. This
  • tallied with the assurance, also confidentially imparted, that, never
  • having played bridge before, she had been "dragged into it" on the night
  • of her arrival, and had lost an appalling amount of money in consequence
  • of her ignorance of the game and of the rules of betting. Mr. Gryce was
  • undoubtedly enjoying Bellomont. He liked the ease and glitter of the
  • life, and the lustre conferred on him by being a member of this group of
  • rich and conspicuous people. But he thought it a very materialistic
  • society; there were times when he was frightened by the talk of the men
  • and the looks of the ladies, and he was glad to find that Miss Bart, for
  • all her ease and self-possession, was not at home in so ambiguous an
  • atmosphere. For this reason he had been especially pleased to learn that
  • she would, as usual, attend the young Trenors to church on Sunday
  • morning; and as he paced the gravel sweep before the door, his light
  • overcoat on his arm and his prayer-book in one carefully-gloved hand, he
  • reflected agreeably on the strength of character which kept her true to
  • her early training in surroundings so subversive to religious principles.
  • For a long time Mr. Gryce and the omnibus had the gravel sweep to
  • themselves; but, far from regretting this deplorable indifference on the
  • part of the other guests, he found himself nourishing the hope that Miss
  • Bart might be unaccompanied. The precious minutes were flying, however;
  • the big chestnuts pawed the ground and flecked their impatient sides with
  • foam; the coachman seemed to be slowly petrifying on the box, and the
  • groom on the doorstep; and still the lady did not come. Suddenly,
  • however, there was a sound of voices and a rustle of skirts in the
  • doorway, and Mr. Gryce, restoring his watch to his pocket, turned with a
  • nervous start; but it was only to find himself handing Mrs. Wetherall
  • into the carriage.
  • The Wetheralls always went to church. They belonged to the vast group of
  • human automata who go through life without neglecting to perform a single
  • one of the gestures executed by the surrounding puppets. It is true that
  • the Bellomont puppets did not go to church; but others equally important
  • did--and Mr. and Mrs. Wetherall's circle was so large that God was
  • included in their visiting-list. They appeared, therefore, punctual and
  • resigned, with the air of people bound for a dull "At Home," and after
  • them Hilda and Muriel straggled, yawning and pinning each other's veils
  • and ribbons as they came. They had promised Lily to go to church with
  • her, they declared, and Lily was such a dear old duck that they didn't
  • mind doing it to please her, though they couldn't fancy what had put the
  • idea in her head, and though for their own part they would much rather
  • have played lawn tennis with Jack and Gwen, if she hadn't told them she
  • was coming. The Misses Trenor were followed by Lady Cressida Raith, a
  • weather-beaten person in Liberty silk and ethnological trinkets, who, on
  • seeing the omnibus, expressed her surprise that they were not to walk
  • across the park; but at Mrs. Wetherall's horrified protest that the
  • church was a mile away, her ladyship, after a glance at the height of the
  • other's heels, acquiesced in the necessity of driving, and poor Mr. Gryce
  • found himself rolling off between four ladies for whose spiritual welfare
  • he felt not the least concern.
  • It might have afforded him some consolation could he have known that Miss
  • Bart had really meant to go to church. She had even risen earlier than
  • usual in the execution of her purpose. She had an idea that the sight of
  • her in a grey gown of devotional cut, with her famous lashes drooped
  • above a prayer-book, would put the finishing touch to Mr. Gryce's
  • subjugation, and render inevitable a certain incident which she had
  • resolved should form a part of the walk they were to take together after
  • luncheon. Her intentions in short had never been more definite; but poor
  • Lily, for all the hard glaze of her exterior, was inwardly as malleable
  • as wax. Her faculty for adapting herself, for entering into other
  • people's feelings, if it served her now and then in small contingencies,
  • hampered her in the decisive moments of life. She was like a water-plant
  • in the flux of the tides, and today the whole current of her mood was
  • carrying her toward Lawrence Selden. Why had he come? Was it to see
  • herself or Bertha Dorset? It was the last question which, at that
  • moment, should have engaged her. She might better have contented herself
  • with thinking that he had simply responded to the despairing summons of
  • his hostess, anxious to interpose him between herself and the ill-humour
  • of Mrs. Dorset. But Lily had not rested till she learned from Mrs. Trenor
  • that Selden had come of his own accord. "He didn't even wire me--he just
  • happened to find the trap at the station. Perhaps it's not over with
  • Bertha after all," Mrs. Trenor musingly concluded; and went away to
  • arrange her dinner-cards accordingly.
  • Perhaps it was not, Lily reflected; but it should be soon, unless she had
  • lost her cunning. If Selden had come at Mrs. Dorset's call, it was at her
  • own that he would stay. So much the previous evening had told her. Mrs.
  • Trenor, true to her simple principle of making her married friends happy,
  • had placed Selden and Mrs. Dorset next to each other at dinner; but, in
  • obedience to the time-honoured traditions of the match-maker, she had
  • separated Lily and Mr. Gryce, sending in the former with George Dorset,
  • while Mr. Gryce was coupled with Gwen Van Osburgh.
  • George Dorset's talk did not interfere with the range of his neighbour's
  • thoughts. He was a mournful dyspeptic, intent on finding out the
  • deleterious ingredients of every dish and diverted from this care only by
  • the sound of his wife's voice. On this occasion, however, Mrs. Dorset
  • took no part in the general conversation. She sat talking in low murmurs
  • with Selden, and turning a contemptuous and denuded shoulder toward her
  • host, who, far from resenting his exclusion, plunged into the excesses of
  • the MENU with the joyous irresponsibility of a free man. To Mr. Dorset,
  • however, his wife's attitude was a subject of such evident concern that,
  • when he was not scraping the sauce from his fish, or scooping the moist
  • bread-crumbs from the interior of his roll, he sat straining his thin
  • neck for a glimpse of her between the lights.
  • Mrs. Trenor, as it chanced, had placed the husband and wife on opposite
  • sides of the table, and Lily was therefore able to observe Mrs. Dorset
  • also, and by carrying her glance a few feet farther, to set up a rapid
  • comparison between Lawrence Selden and Mr. Gryce. It was that comparison
  • which was her undoing. Why else had she suddenly grown interested in
  • Selden? She had known him for eight years or more: ever since her return
  • to America he had formed a part of her background. She had always been
  • glad to sit next to him at dinner, had found him more agreeable than most
  • men, and had vaguely wished that he possessed the other qualities needful
  • to fix her attention; but till now she had been too busy with her own
  • affairs to regard him as more than one of the pleasant accessories of
  • life. Miss Bart was a keen reader of her own heart, and she saw that her
  • sudden preoccupation with Selden was due to the fact that his presence
  • shed a new light on her surroundings. Not that he was notably brilliant
  • or exceptional; in his own profession he was surpassed by more than one
  • man who had bored Lily through many a weary dinner. It was rather that he
  • had preserved a certain social detachment, a happy air of viewing the
  • show objectively, of having points of contact outside the great gilt cage
  • in which they were all huddled for the mob to gape at. How alluring the
  • world outside the cage appeared to Lily, as she heard its door clang on
  • her! In reality, as she knew, the door never clanged: it stood always
  • open; but most of the captives were like flies in a bottle, and having
  • once flown in, could never regain their freedom. It was Selden's
  • distinction that he had never forgotten the way out.
  • That was the secret of his way of readjusting her vision. Lily, turning
  • her eyes from him, found herself scanning her little world through his
  • retina: it was as though the pink lamps had been shut off and the dusty
  • daylight let in. She looked down the long table, studying its occupants
  • one by one, from Gus Trenor, with his heavy carnivorous head sunk between
  • his shoulders, as he preyed on a jellied plover, to his wife, at the
  • opposite end of the long bank of orchids, suggestive, with her glaring
  • good-looks, of a jeweller's window lit by electricity. And between the
  • two, what a long stretch of vacuity! How dreary and trivial these people
  • were! Lily reviewed them with a scornful impatience: Carry Fisher, with
  • her shoulders, her eyes, her divorces, her general air of embodying a
  • "spicy paragraph"; young Silverton, who had meant to live on
  • proof-reading and write an epic, and who now lived on his friends and had
  • become critical of truffles; Alice Wetherall, an animated visiting-list,
  • whose most fervid convictions turned on the wording of invitations and
  • the engraving of dinner-cards; Wetherall, with his perpetual nervous nod
  • of acquiescence, his air of agreeing with people before he knew what they
  • were saying; Jack Stepney, with his confident smile and anxious eyes,
  • half way between the sheriff and an heiress; Gwen Van Osburgh, with all
  • the guileless confidence of a young girl who has always been told that
  • there is no one richer than her father.
  • Lily smiled at her classification of her friends. How different they had
  • seemed to her a few hours ago! Then they had symbolized what she was
  • gaining, now they stood for what she was giving up. That very afternoon
  • they had seemed full of brilliant qualities; now she saw that they were
  • merely dull in a loud way. Under the glitter of their opportunities she
  • saw the poverty of their achievement. It was not that she wanted them to
  • be more disinterested; but she would have liked them to be more
  • picturesque. And she had a shamed recollection of the way in which, a few
  • hours since, she had felt the centripetal force of their standards. She
  • closed her eyes an instant, and the vacuous routine of the life she had
  • chosen stretched before her like a long white road without dip or
  • turning: it was true she was to roll over it in a carriage instead of
  • trudging it on foot, but sometimes the pedestrian enjoys the diversion of
  • a short cut which is denied to those on wheels.
  • She was roused by a chuckle which Mr. Dorset seemed to eject from the
  • depths of his lean throat.
  • "I say, do look at her," he exclaimed, turning to Miss Bart with
  • lugubrious merriment--"I beg your pardon, but do just look at my wife
  • making a fool of that poor devil over there! One would really suppose she
  • was gone on him--and it's all the other way round, I assure you."
  • Thus adjured, Lily turned her eyes on the spectacle which was affording
  • Mr. Dorset such legitimate mirth. It certainly appeared, as he said, that
  • Mrs. Dorset was the more active participant in the scene: her neighbour
  • seemed to receive her advances with a temperate zest which did not
  • distract him from his dinner. The sight restored Lily's good humour, and
  • knowing the peculiar disguise which Mr. Dorset's marital fears assumed,
  • she asked gaily: "Aren't you horribly jealous of her?"
  • Dorset greeted the sally with delight. "Oh, abominably--you've just hit
  • it--keeps me awake at night. The doctors tell me that's what has knocked
  • my digestion out--being so infernally jealous of her.--I can't eat a
  • mouthful of this stuff, you know," he added suddenly, pushing back his
  • plate with a clouded countenance; and Lily, unfailingly adaptable,
  • accorded her radiant attention to his prolonged denunciation of other
  • people's cooks, with a supplementary tirade on the toxic qualities of
  • melted butter.
  • It was not often that he found so ready an ear; and, being a man as well
  • as a dyspeptic, it may be that as he poured his grievances into it he was
  • not insensible to its rosy symmetry. At any rate he engaged Lily so long
  • that the sweets were being handed when she caught a phrase on her other
  • side, where Miss Corby, the comic woman of the company, was bantering
  • Jack Stepney on his approaching engagement. Miss Corby's role was
  • jocularity: she always entered the conversation with a handspring.
  • "And of course you'll have Sim Rosedale as best man!" Lily heard her
  • fling out as the climax of her prognostications; and Stepney responded,
  • as if struck: "Jove, that's an idea. What a thumping present I'd get out
  • of him!"
  • SIM ROSEDALE! The name, made more odious by its diminutive, obtruded
  • itself on Lily's thoughts like a leer. It stood for one of the many hated
  • possibilities hovering on the edge of life. If she did not marry Percy
  • Gryce, the day might come when she would have to be civil to such men as
  • Rosedale. IF SHE DID NOT MARRY HIM? But she meant to marry him--she was
  • sure of him and sure of herself. She drew back with a shiver from the
  • pleasant paths in which her thoughts had been straying, and set her feet
  • once more in the middle of the long white road.... When she went
  • upstairs that night she found that the late post had brought her a fresh
  • batch of bills. Mrs. Peniston, who was a conscientious woman, had
  • forwarded them all to Bellomont.
  • Miss Bart, accordingly, rose the next morning with the most earnest
  • conviction that it was her duty to go to church. She tore herself betimes
  • from the lingering enjoyment of her breakfast-tray, rang to have her grey
  • gown laid out, and despatched her maid to borrow a prayer-book from Mrs.
  • Trenor.
  • But her course was too purely reasonable not to contain the germs of
  • rebellion. No sooner were her preparations made than they roused a
  • smothered sense of resistance. A small spark was enough to kindle Lily's
  • imagination, and the sight of the grey dress and the borrowed prayer-book
  • flashed a long light down the years. She would have to go to church with
  • Percy Gryce every Sunday. They would have a front pew in the most
  • expensive church in New York, and his name would figure handsomely in the
  • list of parish charities. In a few years, when he grew stouter, he would
  • be made a warden. Once in the winter the rector would come to dine, and
  • her husband would beg her to go over the list and see that no DIVORCEES
  • were included, except those who had showed signs of penitence by being
  • re-married to the very wealthy. There was nothing especially arduous in
  • this round of religious obligations; but it stood for a fraction of that
  • great bulk of boredom which loomed across her path. And who could consent
  • to be bored on such a morning? Lily had slept well, and her bath had
  • filled her with a pleasant glow, which was becomingly reflected in the
  • clear curve of her cheek. No lines were visible this morning, or else the
  • glass was at a happier angle.
  • And the day was the accomplice of her mood: it was a day for impulse and
  • truancy. The light air seemed full of powdered gold; below the dewy bloom
  • of the lawns the woodlands blushed and smouldered, and the hills across
  • the river swam in molten blue. Every drop of blood in Lily's veins
  • invited her to happiness.
  • The sound of wheels roused her from these musings, and leaning behind her
  • shutters she saw the omnibus take up its freight. She was too late,
  • then--but the fact did not alarm her. A glimpse of Mr. Gryce's
  • crestfallen face even suggested that she had done wisely in absenting
  • herself, since the disappointment he so candidly betrayed would surely
  • whet his appetite for the afternoon walk. That walk she did not mean to
  • miss; one glance at the bills on her writing-table was enough to recall
  • its necessity. But meanwhile she had the morning to herself, and could
  • muse pleasantly on the disposal of its hours. She was familiar enough
  • with the habits of Bellomont to know that she was likely to have a free
  • field till luncheon. She had seen the Wetheralls, the Trenor girls and
  • Lady Cressida packed safely into the omnibus; Judy Trenor was sure to be
  • having her hair shampooed; Carry Fisher had doubtless carried off her
  • host for a drive; Ned Silverton was probably smoking the cigarette of
  • young despair in his bedroom; and Kate Corby was certain to be playing
  • tennis with Jack Stepney and Miss Van Osburgh. Of the ladies, this left
  • only Mrs. Dorset unaccounted for, and Mrs. Dorset never came down till
  • luncheon: her doctors, she averred, had forbidden her to expose herself
  • to the crude air of the morning.
  • To the remaining members of the party Lily gave no special thought;
  • wherever they were, they were not likely to interfere with her plans.
  • These, for the moment, took the shape of assuming a dress somewhat more
  • rustic and summerlike in style than the garment she had first selected,
  • and rustling downstairs, sunshade in hand, with the disengaged air of a
  • lady in quest of exercise. The great hall was empty but for the knot of
  • dogs by the fire, who, taking in at a glance the outdoor aspect of Miss
  • Bart, were upon her at once with lavish offers of companionship. She put
  • aside the ramming paws which conveyed these offers, and assuring the
  • joyous volunteers that she might presently have a use for their company,
  • sauntered on through the empty drawing-room to the library at the end of
  • the house. The library was almost the only surviving portion of the old
  • manor-house of Bellomont: a long spacious room, revealing the traditions
  • of the mother-country in its classically-cased doors, the Dutch tiles of
  • the chimney, and the elaborate hob-grate with its shining brass urns. A
  • few family portraits of lantern-jawed gentlemen in tie-wigs, and ladies
  • with large head-dresses and small bodies, hung between the shelves lined
  • with pleasantly-shabby books: books mostly contemporaneous with the
  • ancestors in question, and to which the subsequent Trenors had made no
  • perceptible additions. The library at Bellomont was in fact never used
  • for reading, though it had a certain popularity as a smoking-room or a
  • quiet retreat for flirtation. It had occurred to Lily, however, that it
  • might on this occasion have been resorted to by the only member of the
  • party in the least likely to put it to its original use. She advanced
  • noiselessly over the dense old rug scattered with easy-chairs, and before
  • she reached the middle of the room she saw that she had not been
  • mistaken. Lawrence Selden was in fact seated at its farther end; but
  • though a book lay on his knee, his attention was not engaged with it, but
  • directed to a lady whose lace-clad figure, as she leaned back in an
  • adjoining chair, detached itself with exaggerated slimness against the
  • dusky leather upholstery.
  • Lily paused as she caught sight of the group; for a moment she seemed
  • about to withdraw, but thinking better of this, she announced her
  • approach by a slight shake of her skirts which made the couple raise
  • their heads, Mrs. Dorset with a look of frank displeasure, and Selden
  • with his usual quiet smile. The sight of his composure had a disturbing
  • effect on Lily; but to be disturbed was in her case to make a more
  • brilliant effort at self-possession.
  • "Dear me, am I late?" she asked, putting a hand in his as he advanced to
  • greet her.
  • "Late for what?" enquired Mrs. Dorset tartly. "Not for luncheon,
  • certainly--but perhaps you had an earlier engagement?"
  • "Yes, I had," said Lily confidingly.
  • "Really? Perhaps I am in the way, then? But Mr. Selden is entirely at
  • your disposal." Mrs. Dorset was pale with temper, and her antagonist felt
  • a certain pleasure in prolonging her distress.
  • "Oh, dear, no--do stay," she said good-humouredly. "I don't in the least
  • want to drive you away."
  • "You're awfully good, dear, but I never interfere with Mr. Selden's
  • engagements."
  • The remark was uttered with a little air of proprietorship not lost on
  • its object, who concealed a faint blush of annoyance by stooping to pick
  • up the book he had dropped at Lily's approach. The latter's eyes widened
  • charmingly and she broke into a light laugh.
  • "But I have no engagement with Mr. Selden! My engagement was to go to
  • church; and I'm afraid the omnibus has started without me. HAS it
  • started, do you know?"
  • She turned to Selden, who replied that he had heard it drive away some
  • time since.
  • "Ah, then I shall have to walk; I promised Hilda and Muriel to go to
  • church with them. It's too late to walk there, you say? Well, I shall
  • have the credit of trying, at any rate--and the advantage of escaping
  • part of the service. I'm not so sorry for myself, after all!"
  • And with a bright nod to the couple on whom she had intruded, Miss Bart
  • strolled through the glass doors and carried her rustling grace down the
  • long perspective of the garden walk.
  • She was taking her way churchward, but at no very quick pace; a fact not
  • lost on one of her observers, who stood in the doorway looking after her
  • with an air of puzzled amusement. The truth is that she was conscious of
  • a somewhat keen shock of disappointment. All her plans for the day had
  • been built on the assumption that it was to see her that Selden had come
  • to Bellomont. She had expected, when she came downstairs, to find him on
  • the watch for her; and she had found him, instead, in a situation which
  • might well denote that he had been on the watch for another lady. Was it
  • possible, after all, that he had come for Bertha Dorset? The latter had
  • acted on the assumption to the extent of appearing at an hour when she
  • never showed herself to ordinary mortals, and Lily, for the moment, saw
  • no way of putting her in the wrong. It did not occur to her that Selden
  • might have been actuated merely by the desire to spend a Sunday out of
  • town: women never learn to dispense with the sentimental motive in their
  • judgments of men. But Lily was not easily disconcerted; competition put
  • her on her mettle, and she reflected that Selden's coming, if it did not
  • declare him to be still in Mrs. Dorset's toils, showed him to be so
  • completely free from them that he was not afraid of her proximity.
  • These thoughts so engaged her that she fell into a gait hardly likely to
  • carry her to church before the sermon, and at length, having passed from
  • the gardens to the wood-path beyond, so far forgot her intention as to
  • sink into a rustic seat at a bend of the walk. The spot was charming, and
  • Lily was not insensible to the charm, or to the fact that her presence
  • enhanced it; but she was not accustomed to taste the joys of solitude
  • except in company, and the combination of a handsome girl and a romantic
  • scene struck her as too good to be wasted. No one, however, appeared to
  • profit by the opportunity; and after a half hour of fruitless waiting she
  • rose and wandered on. She felt a stealing sense of fatigue as she walked;
  • the sparkle had died out of her, and the taste of life was stale on her
  • lips. She hardly knew what she had been seeking, or why the failure to
  • find it had so blotted the light from her sky: she was only aware of a
  • vague sense of failure, of an inner isolation deeper than the loneliness
  • about her.
  • Her footsteps flagged, and she stood gazing listlessly ahead, digging the
  • ferny edge of the path with the tip of her sunshade. As she did so a
  • step sounded behind her, and she saw Selden at her side.
  • "How fast you walk!" he remarked. "I thought I should never catch up with
  • you."
  • She answered gaily: "You must be quite breathless! I've been sitting
  • under that tree for an hour."
  • "Waiting for me, I hope?" he rejoined; and she said with a vague laugh:
  • "Well--waiting to see if you would come."
  • "I seize the distinction, but I don't mind it, since doing the one
  • involved doing the other. But weren't you sure that I should come?"
  • "If I waited long enough--but you see I had only a limited time to give
  • to the experiment."
  • "Why limited? Limited by luncheon?"
  • "No; by my other engagement."
  • "Your engagement to go to church with Muriel and Hilda?"
  • "No; but to come home from church with another person."
  • "Ah, I see; I might have known you were fully provided with alternatives.
  • And is the other person coming home this way?"
  • Lily laughed again. "That's just what I don't know; and to find out, it
  • is my business to get to church before the service is over."
  • "Exactly; and it is my business to prevent your doing so; in which case
  • the other person, piqued by your absence, will form the desperate resolve
  • of driving back in the omnibus."
  • Lily received this with fresh appreciation; his nonsense was like the
  • bubbling of her inner mood. "Is that what you would do in such an
  • emergency?" she enquired.
  • Selden looked at her with solemnity. "I am here to prove to you," he
  • cried, "what I am capable of doing in an emergency!"
  • "Walking a mile in an hour--you must own that the omnibus would be
  • quicker!"
  • "Ah--but will he find you in the end? That's the only test of success."
  • They looked at each other with the same luxury of enjoyment that they had
  • felt in exchanging absurdities over his tea-table; but suddenly Lily's
  • face changed, and she said: "Well, if it is, he has succeeded."
  • Selden, following her glance, perceived a party of people advancing
  • toward them from the farther bend of the path. Lady Cressida had
  • evidently insisted on walking home, and the rest of the church-goers had
  • thought it their duty to accompany her. Lily's companion looked rapidly
  • from one to the other of the two men of the party; Wetherall walking
  • respectfully at Lady Cressida's side with his little sidelong look of
  • nervous attention, and Percy Gryce bringing up the rear with Mrs.
  • Wetherall and the Trenors.
  • "Ah--now I see why you were getting up your Americana!" Selden exclaimed
  • with a note of the freest admiration but the blush with which the sally
  • was received checked whatever amplifications he had meant to give it.
  • That Lily Bart should object to being bantered about her suitors, or even
  • about her means of attracting them, was so new to Selden that he had a
  • momentary flash of surprise, which lit up a number of possibilities; but
  • she rose gallantly to the defence of her confusion, by saying, as its
  • object approached: "That was why I was waiting for you--to thank you for
  • having given me so many points!"
  • "Ah, you can hardly do justice to the subject in such a short time," said
  • Selden, as the Trenor girls caught sight of Miss Bart; and while she
  • signalled a response to their boisterous greeting, he added quickly:
  • "Won't you devote your afternoon to it? You know I must be off tomorrow
  • morning. We'll take a walk, and you can thank me at your leisure."
  • Chapter 6
  • The afternoon was perfect. A deeper stillness possessed the air, and the
  • glitter of the American autumn was tempered by a haze which diffused the
  • brightness without dulling it.
  • In the woody hollows of the park there was already a faint chill; but as
  • the ground rose the air grew lighter, and ascending the long slopes
  • beyond the high-road, Lily and her companion reached a zone of lingering
  • summer. The path wound across a meadow with scattered trees; then it
  • dipped into a lane plumed with asters and purpling sprays of bramble,
  • whence, through the light quiver of ash-leaves, the country unrolled
  • itself in pastoral distances.
  • Higher up, the lane showed thickening tufts of fern and of the creeping
  • glossy verdure of shaded slopes; trees began to overhang it, and the
  • shade deepened to the checkered dusk of a beech-grove. The boles of the
  • trees stood well apart, with only a light feathering of undergrowth; the
  • path wound along the edge of the wood, now and then looking out on a
  • sunlit pasture or on an orchard spangled with fruit.
  • Lily had no real intimacy with nature, but she had a passion for the
  • appropriate and could be keenly sensitive to a scene which was the
  • fitting background of her own sensations. The landscape outspread below
  • her seemed an enlargement of her present mood, and she found something of
  • herself in its calmness, its breadth, its long free reaches. On the
  • nearer slopes the sugar-maples wavered like pyres of light; lower down
  • was a massing of grey orchards, and here and there the lingering green of
  • an oak-grove. Two or three red farm-houses dozed under the apple-trees,
  • and the white wooden spire of a village church showed beyond the shoulder
  • of the hill; while far below, in a haze of dust, the high-road ran
  • between the fields.
  • "Let us sit here," Selden suggested, as they reached an open ledge of
  • rock above which the beeches rose steeply between mossy boulders.
  • Lily dropped down on the rock, glowing with her long climb. She sat
  • quiet, her lips parted by the stress of the ascent, her eyes wandering
  • peacefully over the broken ranges of the landscape. Selden stretched
  • himself on the grass at her feet, tilting his hat against the level
  • sun-rays, and clasping his hands behind his head, which rested against
  • the side of the rock. He had no wish to make her talk; her
  • quick-breathing silence seemed a part of the general hush and harmony of
  • things. In his own mind there was only a lazy sense of pleasure, veiling
  • the sharp edges of sensation as the September haze veiled the scene at
  • their feet. But Lily, though her attitude was as calm as his, was
  • throbbing inwardly with a rush of thoughts. There were in her at the
  • moment two beings, one drawing deep breaths of freedom and exhilaration,
  • the other gasping for air in a little black prison-house of fears. But
  • gradually the captive's gasps grew fainter, or the other paid less heed
  • to them: the horizon expanded, the air grew stronger, and the free spirit
  • quivered for flight.
  • She could not herself have explained the sense of buoyancy which seemed
  • to lift and swing her above the sun-suffused world at her feet. Was it
  • love, she wondered, or a mere fortuitous combination of happy thoughts
  • and sensations? How much of it was owing to the spell of the perfect
  • afternoon, the scent of the fading woods, the thought of the dulness she
  • had fled from? Lily had no definite experience by which to test the
  • quality of her feelings. She had several times been in love with
  • fortunes or careers, but only once with a man. That was years ago, when
  • she first came out, and had been smitten with a romantic passion for a
  • young gentleman named Herbert Melson, who had blue eyes and a little wave
  • in his hair. Mr. Melson, who was possessed of no other negotiable
  • securities, had hastened to employ these in capturing the eldest Miss Van
  • Osburgh: since then he had grown stout and wheezy, and was given to
  • telling anecdotes about his children. If Lily recalled this early emotion
  • it was not to compare it with that which now possessed her; the only
  • point of comparison was the sense of lightness, of emancipation, which
  • she remembered feeling, in the whirl of a waltz or the seclusion of a
  • conservatory, during the brief course of her youthful romance. She had
  • not known again till today that lightness, that glow of freedom; but now
  • it was something more than a blind groping of the blood. The peculiar
  • charm of her feeling for Selden was that she understood it; she could put
  • her finger on every link of the chain that was drawing them together.
  • Though his popularity was of the quiet kind, felt rather than actively
  • expressed among his friends, she had never mistaken his inconspicuousness
  • for obscurity. His reputed cultivation was generally regarded as a slight
  • obstacle to easy intercourse, but Lily, who prided herself on her
  • broad-minded recognition of literature, and always carried an Omar Khayam
  • in her travelling-bag, was attracted by this attribute, which she felt
  • would have had its distinction in an older society. It was, moreover, one
  • of his gifts to look his part; to have a height which lifted his head
  • above the crowd, and the keenly-modelled dark features which, in a land
  • of amorphous types, gave him the air of belonging to a more specialized
  • race, of carrying the impress of a concentrated past. Expansive persons
  • found him a little dry, and very young girls thought him sarcastic; but
  • this air of friendly aloofness, as far removed as possible from any
  • assertion of personal advantage, was the quality which piqued Lily's
  • interest. Everything about him accorded with the fastidious element in
  • her taste, even to the light irony with which he surveyed what seemed to
  • her most sacred. She admired him most of all, perhaps, for being able to
  • convey as distinct a sense of superiority as the richest man she had ever
  • met.
  • It was the unconscious prolongation of this thought which led her to say
  • presently, with a laugh: "I have broken two engagements for you today.
  • How many have you broken for me?"
  • "None," said Selden calmly. "My only engagement at Bellomont was with
  • you."
  • She glanced down at him, faintly smiling.
  • "Did you really come to Bellomont to see me?"
  • "Of course I did."
  • Her look deepened meditatively. "Why?" she murmured, with an accent which
  • took all tinge of coquetry from the question.
  • "Because you're such a wonderful spectacle: I always like to see what you
  • are doing."
  • "How do you know what I should be doing if you were not here?"
  • Selden smiled. "I don't flatter myself that my coming has deflected your
  • course of action by a hair's breadth."
  • "That's absurd--since, if you were not here, I could obviously not be
  • taking a walk with you."
  • "No; but your taking a walk with me is only another way of making use of
  • your material. You are an artist and I happen to be the bit of colour you
  • are using today. It's a part of your cleverness to be able to produce
  • premeditated effects extemporaneously."
  • Lily smiled also: his words were too acute not to strike her sense of
  • humour. It was true that she meant to use the accident of his presence as
  • part of a very definite effect; or that, at least, was the secret pretext
  • she had found for breaking her promise to walk with Mr. Gryce. She had
  • sometimes been accused of being too eager--even Judy Trenor had warned
  • her to go slowly. Well, she would not be too eager in this case; she
  • would give her suitor a longer taste of suspense. Where duty and
  • inclination jumped together, it was not in Lily's nature to hold them
  • asunder. She had excused herself from the walk on the plea of a headache:
  • the horrid headache which, in the morning, had prevented her venturing to
  • church. Her appearance at luncheon justified the excuse. She looked
  • languid, full of a suffering sweetness; she carried a scent-bottle in her
  • hand. Mr. Gryce was new to such manifestations; he wondered rather
  • nervously if she were delicate, having far-reaching fears about the
  • future of his progeny. But sympathy won the day, and he besought her not
  • to expose herself: he always connected the outer air with ideas of
  • exposure.
  • Lily had received his sympathy with languid gratitude, urging him, since
  • she should be such poor company, to join the rest of the party who, after
  • luncheon, were starting in automobiles on a visit to the Van Osburghs at
  • Peekskill. Mr. Gryce was touched by her disinterestedness, and, to escape
  • from the threatened vacuity of the afternoon, had taken her advice and
  • departed mournfully, in a dust-hood and goggles: as the motor-car plunged
  • down the avenue she smiled at his resemblance to a baffled beetle. Selden
  • had watched her manoeuvres with lazy amusement. She had made no reply to
  • his suggestion that they should spend the afternoon together, but as her
  • plan unfolded itself he felt fairly confident of being included in it.
  • The house was empty when at length he heard her step on the stair and
  • strolled out of the billiard-room to join her.
  • She had on a hat and walking-dress, and the dogs were bounding at her
  • feet.
  • "I thought, after all, the air might do me good," she explained; and he
  • agreed that so simple a remedy was worth trying.
  • The excursionists would be gone at least four hours; Lily and Selden had
  • the whole afternoon before them, and the sense of leisure and safety gave
  • the last touch of lightness to her spirit. With so much time to talk, and
  • no definite object to be led up to, she could taste the rare joys of
  • mental vagrancy.
  • She felt so free from ulterior motives that she took up his charge with a
  • touch of resentment.
  • "I don't know," she said, "why you are always accusing me of
  • premeditation."
  • "I thought you confessed to it: you told me the other day that you had to
  • follow a certain line--and if one does a thing at all it is a merit to do
  • it thoroughly."
  • "If you mean that a girl who has no one to think for her is obliged to
  • think for herself, I am quite willing to accept the imputation. But you
  • must find me a dismal kind of person if you suppose that I never yield to
  • an impulse."
  • "Ah, but I don't suppose that: haven't I told you that your genius lies
  • in converting impulses into intentions?"
  • "My genius?" she echoed with a sudden note of weariness. "Is there any
  • final test of genius but success? And I certainly haven't succeeded."
  • Selden pushed his hat back and took a side-glance at her. "Success--what
  • is success? I shall be interested to have your definition."
  • "Success?" She hesitated. "Why, to get as much as one can out of life, I
  • suppose. It's a relative quality, after all. Isn't that your idea of it?"
  • "My idea of it? God forbid!" He sat up with sudden energy, resting his
  • elbows on his knees and staring out upon the mellow fields. "My idea of
  • success," he said, "is personal freedom."
  • "Freedom? Freedom from worries?"
  • "From everything--from money, from poverty, from ease and anxiety, from
  • all the material accidents. To keep a kind of republic of the
  • spirit--that's what I call success."
  • She leaned forward with a responsive flash. "I know--I know--it's
  • strange; but that's just what I've been feeling today."
  • He met her eyes with the latent sweetness of his. "Is the feeling so rare
  • with you?" he said.
  • She blushed a little under his gaze. "You think me horribly sordid, don't
  • you? But perhaps it's rather that I never had any choice. There was no
  • one, I mean, to tell me about the republic of the spirit."
  • "There never is--it's a country one has to find the way to one's self."
  • "But I should never have found my way there if you hadn't told me."
  • "Ah, there are sign-posts--but one has to know how to read them."
  • "Well, I have known, I have known!" she cried with a glow of eagerness.
  • "Whenever I see you, I find myself spelling out a letter of the sign--and
  • yesterday--last evening at dinner--I suddenly saw a little way into your
  • republic."
  • Selden was still looking at her, but with a changed eye. Hitherto he had
  • found, in her presence and her talk, the aesthetic amusement which a
  • reflective man is apt to seek in desultory intercourse with pretty women.
  • His attitude had been one of admiring spectatorship, and he would have
  • been almost sorry to detect in her any emotional weakness which should
  • interfere with the fulfilment of her aims. But now the hint of this
  • weakness had become the most interesting thing about her. He had come on
  • her that morning in a moment of disarray; her face had been pale and
  • altered, and the diminution of her beauty had lent her a poignant charm.
  • THAT IS HOW SHE LOOKS WHEN SHE IS ALONE! had been his first thought; and
  • the second was to note in her the change which his coming produced. It
  • was the danger-point of their intercourse that he could not doubt the
  • spontaneity of her liking. From whatever angle he viewed their dawning
  • intimacy, he could not see it as part of her scheme of life; and to be
  • the unforeseen element in a career so accurately planned was stimulating
  • even to a man who had renounced sentimental experiments.
  • "Well," he said, "did it make you want to see more? Are you going to
  • become one of us?"
  • He had drawn out his cigarettes as he spoke, and she reached her hand
  • toward the case.
  • "Oh, do give me one--I haven't smoked for days!"
  • "Why such unnatural abstinence? Everybody smokes at Bellomont."
  • "Yes--but it is not considered becoming in a JEUNE FILLE A MARIER; and at
  • the present moment I am a JEUNE FILLE A MARIER."
  • "Ah, then I'm afraid we can't let you into the republic."
  • "Why not? Is it a celibate order?"
  • "Not in the least, though I'm bound to say there are not many married
  • people in it. But you will marry some one very rich, and it's as hard for
  • rich people to get into as the kingdom of heaven."
  • "That's unjust, I think, because, as I understand it, one of the
  • conditions of citizenship is not to think too much about money, and the
  • only way not to think about money is to have a great deal of it."
  • "You might as well say that the only way not to think about air is to
  • have enough to breathe. That is true enough in a sense; but your lungs
  • are thinking about the air, if you are not. And so it is with your rich
  • people--they may not be thinking of money, but they're breathing it all
  • the while; take them into another element and see how they squirm and
  • gasp!"
  • Lily sat gazing absently through the blue rings of her cigarette-smoke.
  • "It seems to me," she said at length, "that you spend a good deal of your
  • time in the element you disapprove of."
  • Selden received this thrust without discomposure. "Yes; but I have tried
  • to remain amphibious: it's all right as long as one's lungs can work in
  • another air. The real alchemy consists in being able to turn gold back
  • again into something else; and that's the secret that most of your
  • friends have lost."
  • Lily mused. "Don't you think," she rejoined after a moment, "that the
  • people who find fault with society are too apt to regard it as an end and
  • not a means, just as the people who despise money speak as if its only
  • use were to be kept in bags and gloated over? Isn't it fairer to look at
  • them both as opportunities, which may be used either stupidly or
  • intelligently, according to the capacity of the user?"
  • "That is certainly the sane view; but the queer thing about society is
  • that the people who regard it as an end are those who are in it, and not
  • the critics on the fence. It's just the other way with most shows--the
  • audience may be under the illusion, but the actors know that real life is
  • on the other side of the footlights. The people who take society as an
  • escape from work are putting it to its proper use; but when it becomes
  • the thing worked for it distorts all the relations of life." Selden
  • raised himself on his elbow. "Good heavens!" he went on, "I don't
  • underrate the decorative side of life. It seems to me the sense of
  • splendour has justified itself by what it has produced. The worst of it
  • is that so much human nature is used up in the process. If we're all the
  • raw stuff of the cosmic effects, one would rather be the fire that
  • tempers a sword than the fish that dyes a purple cloak. And a society
  • like ours wastes such good material in producing its little patch of
  • purple! Look at a boy like Ned Silverton--he's really too good to be used
  • to refurbish anybody's social shabbiness. There's a lad just setting out
  • to discover the universe: isn't it a pity he should end by finding it in
  • Mrs. Fisher's drawing-room?"
  • "Ned is a dear boy, and I hope he will keep his illusions long enough to
  • write some nice poetry about them; but do you think it is only in society
  • that he is likely to lose them?"
  • Selden answered her with a shrug. "Why do we call all our generous ideas
  • illusions, and the mean ones truths? Isn't it a sufficient condemnation
  • of society to find one's self accepting such phraseology? I very nearly
  • acquired the jargon at Silverton's age, and I know how names can alter
  • the colour of beliefs."
  • She had never heard him speak with such energy of affirmation. His
  • habitual touch was that of the eclectic, who lightly turns over and
  • compares; and she was moved by this sudden glimpse into the laboratory
  • where his faiths were formed.
  • "Ah, you are as bad as the other sectarians," she exclaimed; "why do you
  • call your republic a republic? It is a closed corporation, and you create
  • arbitrary objections in order to keep people out."
  • "It is not MY republic; if it were, I should have a COUP D'ETAT and seat
  • you on the throne."
  • "Whereas, in reality, you think I can never even get my foot across the
  • threshold? Oh, I understand what you mean. You despise my ambitions--you
  • think them unworthy of me!"
  • Selden smiled, but not ironically. "Well, isn't that a tribute? I think
  • them quite worthy of most of the people who live by them."
  • She had turned to gaze on him gravely. "But isn't it possible that, if I
  • had the opportunities of these people, I might make a better use of them?
  • Money stands for all kinds of things--its purchasing quality isn't
  • limited to diamonds and motor-cars."
  • "Not in the least: you might expiate your enjoyment of them by founding a
  • hospital."
  • "But if you think they are what I should really enjoy, you must think my
  • ambitions are good enough for me."
  • Selden met this appeal with a laugh. "Ah, my dear Miss Bart, I am not
  • divine Providence, to guarantee your enjoying the things you are trying
  • to get!"
  • "Then the best you can say for me is, that after struggling to get them I
  • probably shan't like them?" She drew a deep breath. "What a miserable
  • future you foresee for me!"
  • "Well--have you never foreseen it for yourself?" The slow colour rose to
  • her cheek, not a blush of excitement but drawn from the deep wells of
  • feeling; it was as if the effort of her spirit had produced it.
  • "Often and often," she said. "But it looks so much darker when you show
  • it to me!"
  • He made no answer to this exclamation, and for a while they sat silent,
  • while something throbbed between them in the wide quiet of the air.
  • But suddenly she turned on him with a kind of vehemence. "Why do you do
  • this to me?" she cried. "Why do you make the things I have chosen seem
  • hateful to me, if you have nothing to give me instead?"
  • The words roused Selden from the musing fit into which he had fallen. He
  • himself did not know why he had led their talk along such lines; it was
  • the last use he would have imagined himself making of an afternoon's
  • solitude with Miss Bart. But it was one of those moments when neither
  • seemed to speak deliberately, when an indwelling voice in each called to
  • the other across unsounded depths of feeling.
  • "No, I have nothing to give you instead," he said, sitting up and turning
  • so that he faced her. "If I had, it should be yours, you know."
  • She received this abrupt declaration in a way even stranger than the
  • manner of its making: she dropped her face on her hands and he saw that
  • for a moment she wept.
  • It was for a moment only, however; for when he leaned nearer and drew
  • down her hands with a gesture less passionate than grave, she turned on
  • him a face softened but not disfigured by emotion, and he said to
  • himself, somewhat cruelly, that even her weeping was an art.
  • The reflection steadied his voice as he asked, between pity and irony:
  • "Isn't it natural that I should try to belittle all the things I can't
  • offer you?"
  • Her face brightened at this, but she drew her hand away, not with a
  • gesture of coquetry, but as though renouncing something to which she had
  • no claim.
  • "But you belittle ME, don't you," she returned gently, "in being so sure
  • they are the only things I care for?"
  • Selden felt an inner start; but it was only the last quiver of his
  • egoism. Almost at once he answered quite simply: "But you do care for
  • them, don't you? And no wishing of mine can alter that."
  • He had so completely ceased to consider how far this might carry him,
  • that he had a distinct sense of disappointment when she turned on him a
  • face sparkling with derision.
  • "Ah," she cried, "for all your fine phrases you're really as great a
  • coward as I am, for you wouldn't have made one of them if you hadn't been
  • so sure of my answer."
  • The shock of this retort had the effect of crystallizing Selden's
  • wavering intentions.
  • "I am not so sure of your answer," he said quietly. "And I do you the
  • justice to believe that you are not either."
  • It was her turn to look at him with surprise; and after a moment--"Do you
  • want to marry me?" she asked.
  • He broke into a laugh. "No, I don't want to--but perhaps I should if you
  • did!"
  • "That's what I told you--you're so sure of me that you can amuse yourself
  • with experiments." She drew back the hand he had regained, and sat
  • looking down on him sadly.
  • "I am not making experiments," he returned. "Or if I am, it is not on you
  • but on myself. I don't know what effect they are going to have on me--but
  • if marrying you is one of them, I will take the risk."
  • She smiled faintly. "It would be a great risk, certainly--I have never
  • concealed from you how great."
  • "Ah, it's you who are the coward!" he exclaimed.
  • She had risen, and he stood facing her with his eyes on hers. The soft
  • isolation of the falling day enveloped them: they seemed lifted into a
  • finer air. All the exquisite influences of the hour trembled in their
  • veins, and drew them to each other as the loosened leaves were drawn to
  • the earth.
  • "It's you who are the coward," he repeated, catching her hands in his.
  • She leaned on him for a moment, as if with a drop of tired wings: he felt
  • as though her heart were beating rather with the stress of a long flight
  • than the thrill of new distances. Then, drawing back with a little smile
  • of warning--"I shall look hideous in dowdy clothes; but I can trim my own
  • hats," she declared.
  • They stood silent for a while after this, smiling at each other like
  • adventurous children who have climbed to a forbidden height from which
  • they discover a new world. The actual world at their feet was veiling
  • itself in dimness, and across the valley a clear moon rose in the denser
  • blue.
  • Suddenly they heard a remote sound, like the hum of a giant insect, and
  • following the high-road, which wound whiter through the surrounding
  • twilight, a black object rushed across their vision.
  • Lily started from her attitude of absorption; her smile faded and she
  • began to move toward the lane.
  • "I had no idea it was so late! We shall not be back till after dark," she
  • said, almost impatiently.
  • Selden was looking at her with surprise: it took him a moment to regain
  • his usual view of her; then he said, with an uncontrollable note of
  • dryness: "That was not one of our party; the motor was going the other
  • way."
  • "I know--I know----" She paused, and he saw her redden through the
  • twilight. "But I told them I was not well--that I should not go out. Let
  • us go down!" she murmured.
  • Selden continued to look at her; then he drew his cigarette-case from his
  • pocket and slowly lit a cigarette. It seemed to him necessary, at that
  • moment, to proclaim, by some habitual gesture of this sort, his recovered
  • hold on the actual: he had an almost puerile wish to let his companion
  • see that, their flight over, he had landed on his feet.
  • She waited while the spark flickered under his curved palm; then he held
  • out the cigarettes to her.
  • She took one with an unsteady hand, and putting it to her lips, leaned
  • forward to draw her light from his. In the indistinctness the little red
  • gleam lit up the lower part of her face, and he saw her mouth tremble
  • into a smile.
  • "Were you serious?" she asked, with an odd thrill of gaiety which she
  • might have caught up, in haste, from a heap of stock inflections, without
  • having time to select the just note. Selden's voice was under better
  • control. "Why not?" he returned. "You see I took no risks in being so."
  • And as she continued to stand before him, a little pale under the retort,
  • he added quickly: "Let us go down."
  • Chapter 7
  • It spoke much for the depth of Mrs. Trenor's friendship that her voice,
  • in admonishing Miss Bart, took the same note of personal despair as if
  • she had been lamenting the collapse of a house-party.
  • "All I can say is, Lily, that I can't make you out!" She leaned back,
  • sighing, in the morning abandon of lace and muslin, turning an
  • indifferent shoulder to the heaped-up importunities of her desk, while
  • she considered, with the eye of a physician who has given up the case,
  • the erect exterior of the patient confronting her.
  • "If you hadn't told me you were going in for him seriously--but I'm sure
  • you made that plain enough from the beginning! Why else did you ask me to
  • let you off bridge, and to keep away Carry and Kate Corby? I don't
  • suppose you did it because he amused you; we could none of us imagine
  • your putting up with him for a moment unless you meant to marry him. And
  • I'm sure everybody played fair! They all wanted to help it along. Even
  • Bertha kept her hands off--I will say that--till Lawrence came down and
  • you dragged him away from her. After that she had a right to
  • retaliate--why on earth did you interfere with her? You've known Lawrence
  • Selden for years--why did you behave as if you had just discovered him?
  • If you had a grudge against Bertha it was a stupid time to show it--you
  • could have paid her back just as well after you were married! I told you
  • Bertha was dangerous. She was in an odious mood when she came here, but
  • Lawrence's turning up put her in a good humour, and if you'd only let her
  • think he came for HER it would have never occurred to her to play you
  • this trick. Oh, Lily, you'll never do anything if you're not serious!"
  • Miss Bart accepted this exhortation in a spirit of the purest
  • impartiality. Why should she have been angry? It was the voice of her own
  • conscience which spoke to her through Mrs. Trenor's reproachful accents.
  • But even to her own conscience she must trump up a semblance of defence.
  • "I only took a day off--I thought he meant to stay on all this week, and
  • I knew Mr. Selden was leaving this morning."
  • Mrs. Trenor brushed aside the plea with a gesture which laid bare its
  • weakness.
  • "He did mean to stay--that's the worst of it. It shows that he's run away
  • from you; that Bertha's done her work and poisoned him thoroughly."
  • Lily gave a slight laugh. "Oh, if he's running I'll overtake him!"
  • Her friend threw out an arresting hand. "Whatever you do, Lily, do
  • nothing!"
  • Miss Bart received the warning with a smile. "I don't mean, literally, to
  • take the next train. There are ways----" But she did not go on to specify
  • them.
  • Mrs. Trenor sharply corrected the tense. "There WERE ways--plenty of
  • them! I didn't suppose you needed to have them pointed out. But don't
  • deceive yourself--he's thoroughly frightened. He has run straight home to
  • his mother, and she'll protect him!"
  • "Oh, to the death," Lily agreed, dimpling at the vision.
  • "How you can LAUGH----" her friend rebuked her; and she dropped back to a
  • soberer perception of things with the question: "What was it Bertha
  • really told him?"
  • "Don't ask me--horrors! She seemed to have raked up everything. Oh, you
  • know what I mean--of course there isn't anything, REALLY; but I suppose
  • she brought in Prince Varigliano--and Lord Hubert--and there was some
  • story of your having borrowed money of old Ned Van Alstyne: did you ever?"
  • "He is my father's cousin," Miss Bart interposed.
  • "Well, of course she left THAT out. It seems Ned told Carry Fisher; and
  • she told Bertha, naturally. They're all alike, you know: they hold their
  • tongues for years, and you think you're safe, but when their opportunity
  • comes they remember everything."
  • Lily had grown pale: her voice had a harsh note in it. "It was some money
  • I lost at bridge at the Van Osburghs'. I repaid it, of course."
  • "Ah, well, they wouldn't remember that; besides, it was the idea of the
  • gambling debt that frightened Percy. Oh, Bertha knew her man--she knew
  • just what to tell him!"
  • In this strain Mrs. Trenor continued for nearly an hour to admonish her
  • friend. Miss Bart listened with admirable equanimity. Her naturally good
  • temper had been disciplined by years of enforced compliance, since she
  • had almost always had to attain her ends by the circuitous path of other
  • people's; and, being naturally inclined to face unpleasant facts as soon
  • as they presented themselves, she was not sorry to hear an impartial
  • statement of what her folly was likely to cost, the more so as her own
  • thoughts were still insisting on the other side of the case. Presented
  • in the light of Mrs. Trenor's vigorous comments, the reckoning was
  • certainly a formidable one, and Lily, as she listened, found herself
  • gradually reverting to her friend's view of the situation. Mrs. Trenor's
  • words were moreover emphasized for her hearer by anxieties which she
  • herself could scarcely guess. Affluence, unless stimulated by a keen
  • imagination, forms but the vaguest notion of the practical strain of
  • poverty. Judy knew it must be "horrid" for poor Lily to have to stop to
  • consider whether she could afford real lace on her petticoats, and not to
  • have a motor-car and a steam-yacht at her orders; but the daily friction
  • of unpaid bills, the daily nibble of small temptations to expenditure,
  • were trials as far out of her experience as the domestic problems of the
  • char-woman. Mrs. Trenor's unconsciousness of the real stress of the
  • situation had the effect of making it more galling to Lily. While her
  • friend reproached her for missing the opportunity to eclipse her rivals,
  • she was once more battling in imagination with the mounting tide of
  • indebtedness from which she had so nearly escaped. What wind of folly had
  • driven her out again on those dark seas?
  • If anything was needed to put the last touch to her self-abasement it was
  • the sense of the way her old life was opening its ruts again to receive
  • her. Yesterday her fancy had fluttered free pinions above a choice of
  • occupations; now she had to drop to the level of the familiar routine, in
  • which moments of seeming brilliancy and freedom alternated with long
  • hours of subjection.
  • She laid a deprecating hand on her friend's. "Dear Judy! I'm sorry to
  • have been such a bore, and you are very good to me. But you must have
  • some letters for me to answer--let me at least be useful."
  • She settled herself at the desk, and Mrs. Trenor accepted her resumption
  • of the morning's task with a sigh which implied that, after all, she had
  • proved herself unfit for higher uses.
  • The luncheon table showed a depleted circle. All the men but Jack Stepney
  • and Dorset had returned to town (it seemed to Lily a last touch of irony
  • that Selden and Percy Gryce should have gone in the same train), and Lady
  • Cressida and the attendant Wetheralls had been despatched by motor to
  • lunch at a distant country-house. At such moments of diminished interest
  • it was usual for Mrs. Dorset to keep her room till the afternoon; but on
  • this occasion she drifted in when luncheon was half over, hollowed-eyed
  • and drooping, but with an edge of malice under her indifference.
  • She raised her eyebrows as she looked about the table. "How few of us are
  • left! I do so enjoy the quiet--don't you, Lily? I wish the men would
  • always stop away--it's really much nicer without them. Oh, you don't
  • count, George: one doesn't have to talk to one's husband. But I thought
  • Mr. Gryce was to stay for the rest of the week?" she added enquiringly.
  • "Didn't he intend to, Judy? He's such a nice boy--I wonder what drove
  • him away? He is rather shy, and I'm afraid we may have shocked him: he
  • has been brought up in such an old-fashioned way. Do you know, Lily, he
  • told me he had never seen a girl play cards for money till he saw you
  • doing it the other night? And he lives on the interest of his income, and
  • always has a lot left over to invest!"
  • Mrs. Fisher leaned forward eagerly. "I do believe it is some one's duty
  • to educate that young man. It is shocking that he has never been made to
  • realize his duties as a citizen. Every wealthy man should be compelled to
  • study the laws of his country."
  • Mrs. Dorset glanced at her quietly. "I think he HAS studied the divorce
  • laws. He told me he had promised the Bishop to sign some kind of a
  • petition against divorce."
  • Mrs. Fisher reddened under her powder, and Stepney said with a laughing
  • glance at Miss Bart: "I suppose he is thinking of marriage, and wants to
  • tinker up the old ship before he goes aboard."
  • His betrothed looked shocked at the metaphor, and George Dorset exclaimed
  • with a sardonic growl: "Poor devil! It isn't the ship that will do for
  • him, it's the crew."
  • "Or the stowaways," said Miss Corby brightly. "If I contemplated a voyage
  • with him I should try to start with a friend in the hold."
  • Miss Van Osburgh's vague feeling of pique was struggling for appropriate
  • expression. "I'm sure I don't see why you laugh at him; I think he's very
  • nice," she exclaimed; "and, at any rate, a girl who married him would
  • always have enough to be comfortable."
  • She looked puzzled at the redoubled laughter which hailed her words, but
  • it might have consoled her to know how deeply they had sunk into the
  • breast of one of her hearers.
  • Comfortable! At that moment the word was more eloquent to Lily Bart than
  • any other in the language. She could not even pause to smile over the
  • heiress's view of a colossal fortune as a mere shelter against want: her
  • mind was filled with the vision of what that shelter might have been to
  • her. Mrs. Dorset's pin-pricks did not smart, for her own irony cut
  • deeper: no one could hurt her as much as she was hurting herself, for no
  • one else--not even Judy Trenor--knew the full magnitude of her folly.
  • She was roused from these unprofitable considerations by a whispered
  • request from her hostess, who drew her apart as they left the
  • luncheon-table.
  • "Lily, dear, if you've nothing special to do, may I tell Carry Fisher
  • that you intend to drive to the station and fetch Gus? He will be back at
  • four, and I know she has it in her mind to meet him. Of course I'm very
  • glad to have him amused, but I happen to know that she has bled him
  • rather severely since she's been here, and she is so keen about going to
  • fetch him that I fancy she must have got a lot more bills this morning.
  • It seems to me," Mrs. Trenor feelingly concluded, "that most of her
  • alimony is paid by other women's husbands!"
  • Miss Bart, on her way to the station, had leisure to muse over her
  • friend's words, and their peculiar application to herself. Why should
  • she have to suffer for having once, for a few hours, borrowed money of an
  • elderly cousin, when a woman like Carry Fisher could make a living
  • unrebuked from the good-nature of her men friends and the tolerance of
  • their wives? It all turned on the tiresome distinction between what a
  • married woman might, and a girl might not, do. Of course it was shocking
  • for a married woman to borrow money--and Lily was expertly aware of the
  • implication involved--but still, it was the mere MALUM PROHIBITUM which
  • the world decries but condones, and which, though it may be punished by
  • private vengeance, does not provoke the collective disapprobation of
  • society. To Miss Bart, in short, no such opportunities were possible. She
  • could of course borrow from her women friends--a hundred here or there,
  • at the utmost--but they were more ready to give a gown or a trinket, and
  • looked a little askance when she hinted her preference for a cheque.
  • Women are not generous lenders, and those among whom her lot was cast
  • were either in the same case as herself, or else too far removed from it
  • to understand its necessities. The result of her meditations was the
  • decision to join her aunt at Richfield. She could not remain at Bellomont
  • without playing bridge, and being involved in other expenses; and to
  • continue her usual series of autumn visits would merely prolong the same
  • difficulties. She had reached a point where abrupt retrenchment was
  • necessary, and the only cheap life was a dull life. She would start the
  • next morning for Richfield.
  • At the station she thought Gus Trenor seemed surprised, and not wholly
  • unrelieved, to see her. She yielded up the reins of the light runabout in
  • which she had driven over, and as he climbed heavily to her side,
  • crushing her into a scant third of the seat, he said: "Halloo! It isn't
  • often you honour me. You must have been uncommonly hard up for something
  • to do."
  • The afternoon was warm, and propinquity made her more than usually
  • conscious that he was red and massive, and that beads of moisture had
  • caused the dust of the train to adhere unpleasantly to the broad expanse
  • of cheek and neck which he turned to her; but she was aware also, from
  • the look in his small dull eyes, that the contact with her freshness and
  • slenderness was as agreeable to him as the sight of a cooling beverage.
  • The perception of this fact helped her to answer gaily: "It's not often I
  • have the chance. There are too many ladies to dispute the privilege with
  • me."
  • "The privilege of driving me home? Well, I'm glad you won the race,
  • anyhow. But I know what really happened--my wife sent you. Now didn't
  • she?"
  • He had the dull man's unexpected flashes of astuteness, and Lily could
  • not help joining in the laugh with which he had pounced on the truth.
  • "You see, Judy thinks I'm the safest person for you to be with; and she's
  • quite right," she rejoined.
  • "Oh, is she, though? If she is, it's because you wouldn't waste your time
  • on an old hulk like me. We married men have to put up with what we can
  • get: all the prizes are for the clever chaps who've kept a free foot. Let
  • me light a cigar, will you? I've had a beastly day of it."
  • He drew up in the shade of the village street, and passed the reins to
  • her while he held a match to his cigar. The little flame under his hand
  • cast a deeper crimson on his puffing face, and Lily averted her eyes with
  • a momentary feeling of repugnance. And yet some women thought him
  • handsome!
  • As she handed back the reins, she said sympathetically: "Did you have
  • such a lot of tiresome things to do?"
  • "I should say so--rather!" Trenor, who was seldom listened to, either by
  • his wife or her friends, settled down into the rare enjoyment of a
  • confidential talk. "You don't know how a fellow has to hustle to keep
  • this kind of thing going." He waved his whip in the direction of the
  • Bellomont acres, which lay outspread before them in opulent undulations.
  • "Judy has no idea of what she spends--not that there isn't plenty to keep
  • the thing going," he interrupted himself, "but a man has got to keep his
  • eyes open and pick up all the tips he can. My father and mother used to
  • live like fighting-cocks on their income, and put by a good bit of it
  • too--luckily for me--but at the pace we go now, I don't know where I
  • should be if it weren't for taking a flyer now and then. The women all
  • think--I mean Judy thinks--I've nothing to do but to go down town once a
  • month and cut off coupons, but the truth is it takes a devilish lot of
  • hard work to keep the machinery running. Not that I ought to complain
  • to-day, though," he went on after a moment, "for I did a very neat stroke
  • of business, thanks to Stepney's friend Rosedale: by the way, Miss Lily,
  • I wish you'd try to persuade Judy to be decently civil to that chap. He's
  • going to be rich enough to buy us all out one of these days, and if she'd
  • only ask him to dine now and then I could get almost anything out of him.
  • The man is mad to know the people who don't want to know him, and when a
  • fellow's in that state there is nothing he won't do for the first woman
  • who takes him up."
  • Lily hesitated a moment. The first part of her companion's discourse had
  • started an interesting train of thought, which was rudely interrupted by
  • the mention of Mr. Rosedale's name. She uttered a faint protest.
  • "But you know Jack did try to take him about, and he was impossible."
  • "Oh, hang it--because he's fat and shiny, and has a sloppy manner! Well,
  • all I can say is that the people who are clever enough to be civil to him
  • now will make a mighty good thing of it. A few years from now he'll be in
  • it whether we want him or not, and then he won't be giving away a
  • half-a-million tip for a dinner."
  • Lily's mind had reverted from the intrusive personality of Mr. Rosedale
  • to the train of thought set in motion by Trenor's first words. This vast
  • mysterious Wall Street world of "tips" and "deals"--might she not find in
  • it the means of escape from her dreary predicament? She had often heard
  • of women making money in this way through their friends: she had no more
  • notion than most of her sex of the exact nature of the transaction, and
  • its vagueness seemed to diminish its indelicacy. She could not, indeed,
  • imagine herself, in any extremity, stooping to extract a "tip" from Mr.
  • Rosedale; but at her side was a man in possession of that precious
  • commodity, and who, as the husband of her dearest friend, stood to her in
  • a relation of almost fraternal intimacy.
  • In her inmost heart Lily knew it was not by appealing to the fraternal
  • instinct that she was likely to move Gus Trenor; but this way of
  • explaining the situation helped to drape its crudity, and she was always
  • scrupulous about keeping up appearances to herself. Her personal
  • fastidiousness had a moral equivalent, and when she made a tour of
  • inspection in her own mind there were certain closed doors she did not
  • open.
  • As they reached the gates of Bellomont she turned to Trenor with a smile.
  • "The afternoon is so perfect--don't you want to drive me a little
  • farther? I've been rather out of spirits all day, and it's so restful to
  • be away from people, with some one who won't mind if I'm a little dull."
  • She looked so plaintively lovely as she proffered the request, so
  • trustfully sure of his sympathy and understanding, that Trenor felt
  • himself wishing that his wife could see how other women treated him--not
  • battered wire-pullers like Mrs. Fisher, but a girl that most men would
  • have given their boots to get such a look from.
  • "Out of spirits? Why on earth should you ever be out of spirits? Is your
  • last box of Doucet dresses a failure, or did Judy rook you out of
  • everything at bridge last night?"
  • Lily shook her head with a sigh. "I have had to give up Doucet; and
  • bridge too--I can't afford it. In fact I can't afford any of the things
  • my friends do, and I am afraid Judy often thinks me a bore because I
  • don't play cards any longer, and because I am not as smartly dressed as
  • the other women. But you will think me a bore too if I talk to you about
  • my worries, and I only mention them because I want you to do me a
  • favour--the very greatest of favours."
  • Her eyes sought his once more, and she smiled inwardly at the tinge of
  • apprehension that she read in them.
  • "Why, of course--if it's anything I can manage----" He broke off, and she
  • guessed that his enjoyment was disturbed by the remembrance of Mrs.
  • Fisher's methods.
  • "The greatest of favours," she rejoined gently. "The fact is, Judy is
  • angry with me, and I want you to make my peace."
  • "Angry with you? Oh, come, nonsense----" his relief broke through in a
  • laugh. "Why, you know she's devoted to you."
  • "She is the best friend I have, and that is why I mind having to vex her.
  • But I daresay you know what she has wanted me to do. She has set her
  • heart--poor dear--on my marrying--marrying a great deal of money."
  • She paused with a slight falter of embarrassment, and Trenor, turning
  • abruptly, fixed on her a look of growing intelligence.
  • "A great deal of money? Oh, by Jove--you don't mean Gryce? What--you do?
  • Oh, no, of course I won't mention it--you can trust me to keep my mouth
  • shut--but Gryce--good Lord, GRYCE! Did Judy really think you could bring
  • yourself to marry that portentous little ass? But you couldn't, eh? And
  • so you gave him the sack, and that's the reason why he lit out by the
  • first train this morning?" He leaned back, spreading himself farther
  • across the seat, as if dilated by the joyful sense of his own
  • discernment. "How on earth could Judy think you would do such a thing? I
  • could have told her you'd never put up with such a little milksop!"
  • Lily sighed more deeply. "I sometimes think," she murmured, "that men
  • understand a woman's motives better than other women do."
  • "Some men--I'm certain of it! I could have TOLD Judy," he repeated,
  • exulting in the implied superiority over his wife.
  • "I thought you would understand; that's why I wanted to speak to you,"
  • Miss Bart rejoined. "I can't make that kind of marriage; it's impossible.
  • But neither can I go on living as all the women in my set do. I am almost
  • entirely dependent on my aunt, and though she is very kind to me she
  • makes me no regular allowance, and lately I've lost money at cards, and I
  • don't dare tell her about it. I have paid my card debts, of course, but
  • there is hardly anything left for my other expenses, and if I go on with
  • my present life I shall be in horrible difficulties. I have a tiny income
  • of my own, but I'm afraid it's badly invested, for it seems to bring in
  • less every year, and I am so ignorant of money matters that I don't know
  • if my aunt's agent, who looks after it, is a good adviser." She paused a
  • moment, and added in a lighter tone: "I didn't mean to bore you with all
  • this, but I want your help in making Judy understand that I can't, at
  • present, go on living as one must live among you all. I am going away
  • tomorrow to join my aunt at Richfield, and I shall stay there for the
  • rest of the autumn, and dismiss my maid and learn how to mend my own
  • clothes."
  • At this picture of loveliness in distress, the pathos of which was
  • heightened by the light touch with which it was drawn, a murmur of
  • indignant sympathy broke from Trenor. Twenty-four hours earlier, if his
  • wife had consulted him on the subject of Miss Bart's future, he would
  • have said that a girl with extravagant tastes and no money had better
  • marry the first rich man she could get; but with the subject of
  • discussion at his side, turning to him for sympathy, making him feel that
  • he understood her better than her dearest friends, and confirming the
  • assurance by the appeal of her exquisite nearness, he was ready to swear
  • that such a marriage was a desecration, and that, as a man of honour, he
  • was bound to do all he could to protect her from the results of her
  • disinterestedness. This impulse was reinforced by the reflection that if
  • she had married Gryce she would have been surrounded by flattery and
  • approval, whereas, having refused to sacrifice herself to expediency, she
  • was left to bear the whole cost of her resistance. Hang it, if he could
  • find a way out of such difficulties for a professional sponge like Carry
  • Fisher, who was simply a mental habit corresponding to the physical
  • titillations of the cigarette or the cock-tail, he could surely do as
  • much for a girl who appealed to his highest sympathies, and who brought
  • her troubles to him with the trustfulness of a child.
  • Trenor and Miss Bart prolonged their drive till long after sunset; and
  • before it was over he had tried, with some show of success, to prove to
  • her that, if she would only trust him, he could make a handsome sum of
  • money for her without endangering the small amount she possessed. She was
  • too genuinely ignorant of the manipulations of the stock-market to
  • understand his technical explanations, or even perhaps to perceive that
  • certain points in them were slurred; the haziness enveloping the
  • transaction served as a veil for her embarrassment, and through the
  • general blur her hopes dilated like lamps in a fog. She understood only
  • that her modest investments were to be mysteriously multiplied without
  • risk to herself; and the assurance that this miracle would take place
  • within a short time, that there would be no tedious interval for suspense
  • and reaction, relieved her of her lingering scruples.
  • Again she felt the lightening of her load, and with it the release of
  • repressed activities. Her immediate worries conjured, it was easy to
  • resolve that she would never again find herself in such straits, and as
  • the need of economy and self-denial receded from her foreground she felt
  • herself ready to meet any other demand which life might make. Even the
  • immediate one of letting Trenor, as they drove homeward, lean a little
  • nearer and rest his hand reassuringly on hers, cost her only a momentary
  • shiver of reluctance. It was part of the game to make him feel that her
  • appeal had been an uncalculated impulse, provoked by the liking he
  • inspired; and the renewed sense of power in handling men, while it
  • consoled her wounded vanity, helped also to obscure the thought of the
  • claim at which his manner hinted. He was a coarse dull man who, under all
  • his show of authority, was a mere supernumerary in the costly show for
  • which his money paid: surely, to a clever girl, it would be easy to hold
  • him by his vanity, and so keep the obligation on his side.
  • Chapter 8
  • The first thousand dollar cheque which Lily received with a blotted
  • scrawl from Gus Trenor strengthened her self-confidence in the exact
  • degree to which it effaced her debts.
  • The transaction had justified itself by its results: she saw now how
  • absurd it would have been to let any primitive scruple deprive her of
  • this easy means of appeasing her creditors. Lily felt really virtuous as
  • she dispensed the sum in sops to her tradesmen, and the fact that a fresh
  • order accompanied each payment did not lessen her sense of
  • disinterestedness. How many women, in her place, would have given the
  • orders without making the payment!
  • She had found it reassuringly easy to keep Trenor in a good humour. To
  • listen to his stories, to receive his confidences and laugh at his jokes,
  • seemed for the moment all that was required of her, and the complacency
  • with which her hostess regarded these attentions freed them of the least
  • hint of ambiguity. Mrs. Trenor evidently assumed that Lily's growing
  • intimacy with her husband was simply an indirect way of returning her own
  • kindness.
  • "I'm so glad you and Gus have become such good friends," she said
  • approvingly. "It's too delightful of you to be so nice to him, and put up
  • with all his tiresome stories. I know what they are, because I had to
  • listen to them when we were engaged--I'm sure he is telling the same ones
  • still. And now I shan't always have to be asking Carry Fisher here to
  • keep him in a good-humour. She's a perfect vulture, you know; and she
  • hasn't the least moral sense. She is always getting Gus to speculate for
  • her, and I'm sure she never pays when she loses."
  • Miss Bart could shudder at this state of things without the embarrassment
  • of a personal application. Her own position was surely quite different.
  • There could be no question of her not paying when she lost, since Trenor
  • had assured her that she was certain not to lose. In sending her the
  • cheque he had explained that he had made five thousand for her out of
  • Rosedale's "tip," and had put four thousand back in the same venture, as
  • there was the promise of another "big rise"; she understood therefore
  • that he was now speculating with her own money, and that she consequently
  • owed him no more than the gratitude which such a trifling service
  • demanded. She vaguely supposed that, to raise the first sum, he had
  • borrowed on her securities; but this was a point over which her curiosity
  • did not linger. It was concentrated, for the moment, on the probable date
  • of the next "big rise."
  • The news of this event was received by her some weeks later, on the
  • occasion of Jack Stepney's marriage to Miss Van Osburgh. As a cousin of
  • the bridegroom, Miss Bart had been asked to act as bridesmaid; but she
  • had declined on the plea that, since she was much taller than the other
  • attendant virgins, her presence might mar the symmetry of the group. The
  • truth was, she had attended too many brides to the altar: when next seen
  • there she meant to be the chief figure in the ceremony. She knew the
  • pleasantries made at the expense of young girls who have been too long
  • before the public, and she was resolved to avoid such assumptions of
  • youthfulness as might lead people to think her older than she really was.
  • The Van Osburgh marriage was celebrated in the village church near the
  • paternal estate on the Hudson. It was the "simple country wedding" to
  • which guests are convoyed in special trains, and from which the hordes of
  • the uninvited have to be fended off by the intervention of the police.
  • While these sylvan rites were taking place, in a church packed with
  • fashion and festooned with orchids, the representatives of the press were
  • threading their way, note-book in hand, through the labyrinth of wedding
  • presents, and the agent of a cinematograph syndicate was setting up his
  • apparatus at the church door. It was the kind of scene in which Lily had
  • often pictured herself as taking the principal part, and on this occasion
  • the fact that she was once more merely a casual spectator, instead of the
  • mystically veiled figure occupying the centre of attention, strengthened
  • her resolve to assume the latter part before the year was over. The fact
  • that her immediate anxieties were relieved did not blind her to a
  • possibility of their recurrence; it merely gave her enough buoyancy to
  • rise once more above her doubts and feel a renewed faith in her beauty,
  • her power, and her general fitness to attract a brilliant destiny. It
  • could not be that one conscious of such aptitudes for mastery and
  • enjoyment was doomed to a perpetuity of failure; and her mistakes looked
  • easily reparable in the light of her restored self-confidence.
  • A special appositeness was given to these reflections by the discovery,
  • in a neighbouring pew, of the serious profile and neatly-trimmed beard of
  • Mr. Percy Gryce. There was something almost bridal in his own aspect: his
  • large white gardenia had a symbolic air that struck Lily as a good omen.
  • After all, seen in an assemblage of his kind he was not
  • ridiculous-looking: a friendly critic might have called his heaviness
  • weighty, and he was at his best in the attitude of vacant passivity which
  • brings out the oddities of the restless. She fancied he was the kind of
  • man whose sentimental associations would be stirred by the conventional
  • imagery of a wedding, and she pictured herself, in the seclusion of the
  • Van Osburgh conservatories, playing skillfully upon sensibilities thus
  • prepared for her touch. In fact, when she looked at the other women about
  • her, and recalled the image she had brought away from her own glass, it
  • did not seem as though any special skill would be needed to repair her
  • blunder and bring him once more to her feet.
  • The sight of Selden's dark head, in a pew almost facing her, disturbed
  • for a moment the balance of her complacency. The rise of her blood as
  • their eyes met was succeeded by a contrary motion, a wave of resistance
  • and withdrawal. She did not wish to see him again, not because she feared
  • his influence, but because his presence always had the effect of
  • cheapening her aspirations, of throwing her whole world out of focus.
  • Besides, he was a living reminder of the worst mistake in her career, and
  • the fact that he had been its cause did not soften her feelings toward
  • him. She could still imagine an ideal state of existence in which, all
  • else being superadded, intercourse with Selden might be the last touch of
  • luxury; but in the world as it was, such a privilege was likely to cost
  • more than it was worth.
  • "Lily, dear, I never saw you look so lovely! You look as if something
  • delightful had just happened to you!"
  • The young lady who thus formulated her admiration of her brilliant friend
  • did not, in her own person, suggest such happy possibilities. Miss
  • Gertrude Farish, in fact, typified the mediocre and the ineffectual. If
  • there were compensating qualities in her wide frank glance and the
  • freshness of her smile, these were qualities which only the sympathetic
  • observer would perceive before noticing that her eyes were of a workaday
  • grey and her lips without haunting curves. Lily's own view of her wavered
  • between pity for her limitations and impatience at her cheerful
  • acceptance of them. To Miss Bart, as to her mother, acquiescence in
  • dinginess was evidence of stupidity; and there were moments when, in the
  • consciousness of her own power to look and to be so exactly what the
  • occasion required, she almost felt that other girls were plain and
  • inferior from choice. Certainly no one need have confessed such
  • acquiescence in her lot as was revealed in the "useful" colour of Gerty
  • Farish's gown and the subdued lines of her hat: it is almost as stupid to
  • let your clothes betray that you know you are ugly as to have them
  • proclaim that you think you are beautiful.
  • Of course, being fatally poor and dingy, it was wise of Gerty to have
  • taken up philanthropy and symphony concerts; but there was something
  • irritating in her assumption that existence yielded no higher pleasures,
  • and that one might get as much interest and excitement out of life in a
  • cramped flat as in the splendours of the Van Osburgh establishment.
  • Today, however, her chirping enthusiasms did not irritate Lily. They
  • seemed only to throw her own exceptionalness into becoming relief, and
  • give a soaring vastness to her scheme of life.
  • "Do let us go and take a peep at the presents before everyone else leaves
  • the dining-room!" suggested Miss Farish, linking her arm in her friend's.
  • It was characteristic of her to take a sentimental and unenvious interest
  • in all the details of a wedding: she was the kind of person who always
  • kept her handkerchief out during the service, and departed clutching a
  • box of wedding-cake.
  • "Isn't everything beautifully done?" she pursued, as they entered the
  • distant drawing-room assigned to the display of Miss Van Osburgh's bridal
  • spoils. "I always say no one does things better than cousin Grace! Did
  • you ever taste anything more delicious than that MOUSSE of lobster with
  • champagne sauce? I made up my mind weeks ago that I wouldn't miss this
  • wedding, and just fancy how delightfully it all came about. When Lawrence
  • Selden heard I was coming, he insisted on fetching me himself and driving
  • me to the station, and when we go back this evening I am to dine with him
  • at Sherry's. I really feel as excited as if I were getting married
  • myself!"
  • Lily smiled: she knew that Selden had always been kind to his dull
  • cousin, and she had sometimes wondered why he wasted so much time in such
  • an unremunerative manner; but now the thought gave her a vague pleasure.
  • "Do you see him often?" she asked.
  • "Yes; he is very good about dropping in on Sundays. And now and then we
  • do a play together; but lately I haven't seen much of him. He doesn't
  • look well, and he seems nervous and unsettled. The dear fellow! I do
  • wish he would marry some nice girl. I told him so today, but he said he
  • didn't care for the really nice ones, and the other kind didn't care for
  • him--but that was just his joke, of course. He could never marry a girl
  • who WASN'T nice. Oh, my dear, did you ever see such pearls?"
  • They had paused before the table on which the bride's jewels were
  • displayed, and Lily's heart gave an envious throb as she caught the
  • refraction of light from their surfaces--the milky gleam of perfectly
  • matched pearls, the flash of rubies relieved against contrasting velvet,
  • the intense blue rays of sapphires kindled into light by surrounding
  • diamonds: all these precious tints enhanced and deepened by the varied
  • art of their setting. The glow of the stones warmed Lily's veins like
  • wine. More completely than any other expression of wealth they symbolized
  • the life she longed to lead, the life of fastidious aloofness and
  • refinement in which every detail should have the finish of a jewel, and
  • the whole form a harmonious setting to her own jewel-like rareness.
  • "Oh, Lily, do look at this diamond pendant--it's as big as a
  • dinner-plate! Who can have given it?" Miss Farish bent short-sightedly
  • over the accompanying card. "MR. SIMON ROSEDALE. What, that horrid man?
  • Oh, yes--I remember he's a friend of Jack's, and I suppose cousin Grace
  • had to ask him here today; but she must rather hate having to let Gwen
  • accept such a present from him."
  • Lily smiled. She doubted Mrs. Van Osburgh's reluctance, but was aware of
  • Miss Farish's habit of ascribing her own delicacies of feeling to the
  • persons least likely to be encumbered by them.
  • "Well, if Gwen doesn't care to be seen wearing it she can always exchange
  • it for something else," she remarked.
  • "Ah, here is something so much prettier," Miss Farish continued. "Do
  • look at this exquisite white sapphire. I'm sure the person who chose it
  • must have taken particular pains. What is the name? Percy Gryce? Ah,
  • then I'm not surprised!" She smiled significantly as she replaced the
  • card. "Of course you've heard that he's perfectly devoted to Evie Van
  • Osburgh? Cousin Grace is so pleased about it--it's quite a romance! He
  • met her first at the George Dorsets', only about six weeks ago, and it's
  • just the nicest possible marriage for dear Evie. Oh, I don't mean the
  • money--of course she has plenty of her own--but she's such a quiet
  • stay-at-home kind of girl, and it seems he has just the same tastes; so
  • they are exactly suited to each other."
  • Lily stood staring vacantly at the white sapphire on its velvet bed.
  • Evie Van Osburgh and Percy Gryce? The names rang derisively through her
  • brain. EVIE VAN OSBURGH? The youngest, dumpiest, dullest of the four dull
  • and dumpy daughters whom Mrs. Van Osburgh, with unsurpassed astuteness,
  • had "placed" one by one in enviable niches of existence! Ah, lucky girls
  • who grow up in the shelter of a mother's love--a mother who knows how to
  • contrive opportunities without conceding favours, how to take advantage
  • of propinquity without allowing appetite to be dulled by habit! The
  • cleverest girl may miscalculate where her own interests are concerned,
  • may yield too much at one moment and withdraw too far at the next: it
  • takes a mother's unerring vigilance and foresight to land her daughters
  • safely in the arms of wealth and suitability.
  • Lily's passing light-heartedness sank beneath a renewed sense of failure.
  • Life was too stupid, too blundering! Why should Percy Gryce's millions be
  • joined to another great fortune, why should this clumsy girl be put in
  • possession of powers she would never know how to use?
  • She was roused from these speculations by a familiar touch on her arm,
  • and turning saw Gus Trenor beside her. She felt a thrill of vexation:
  • what right had he to touch her? Luckily Gerty Farish had wandered off to
  • the next table, and they were alone.
  • Trenor, looking stouter than ever in his tight frock-coat, and
  • unbecomingly flushed by the bridal libations, gazed at her with
  • undisguised approval.
  • "By Jove, Lily, you do look a stunner!" He had slipped insensibly into
  • the use of her Christian name, and she had never found the right moment
  • to correct him. Besides, in her set all the men and women called each
  • other by their Christian names; it was only on Trenor's lips that the
  • familiar address had an unpleasant significance.
  • "Well," he continued, still jovially impervious to her annoyance, "have
  • you made up your mind which of these little trinkets you mean to
  • duplicate at Tiffany's tomorrow? I've got a cheque for you in my pocket
  • that will go a long way in that line!"
  • Lily gave him a startled look: his voice was louder than usual, and the
  • room was beginning to fill with people. But as her glance assured her
  • that they were still beyond ear-shot a sense of pleasure replaced her
  • apprehension.
  • "Another dividend?" she asked, smiling and drawing near him in the desire
  • not to be overheard.
  • "Well, not exactly: I sold out on the rise and I've pulled off four thou'
  • for you. Not so bad for a beginner, eh? I suppose you'll begin to think
  • you're a pretty knowing speculator. And perhaps you won't think poor old
  • Gus such an awful ass as some people do."
  • "I think you the kindest of friends; but I can't thank you properly now."
  • She let her eyes shine into his with a look that made up for the
  • hand-clasp he would have claimed if they had been alone--and how glad she
  • was that they were not! The news filled her with the glow produced by a
  • sudden cessation of physical pain. The world was not so stupid and
  • blundering after all: now and then a stroke of luck came to the
  • unluckiest. At the thought her spirits began to rise: it was
  • characteristic of her that one trifling piece of good fortune should give
  • wings to all her hopes. Instantly came the reflection that Percy Gryce
  • was not irretrievably lost; and she smiled to think of the excitement of
  • recapturing him from Evie Van Osburgh. What chance could such a simpleton
  • have against her if she chose to exert herself? She glanced about, hoping
  • to catch a glimpse of Gryce; but her eyes lit instead on the glossy
  • countenance of Mr. Rosedale, who was slipping through the crowd with an
  • air half obsequious, half obtrusive, as though, the moment his presence
  • was recognized, it would swell to the dimensions of the room.
  • Not wishing to be the means of effecting this enlargement, Lily quickly
  • transferred her glance to Trenor, to whom the expression of her gratitude
  • seemed not to have brought the complete gratification she had meant it to
  • give.
  • "Hang thanking me--I don't want to be thanked, but I SHOULD like the
  • chance to say two words to you now and then," he grumbled. "I thought you
  • were going to spend the whole autumn with us, and I've hardly laid eyes
  • on you for the last month. Why can't you come back to Bellomont this
  • evening? We're all alone, and Judy is as cross as two sticks. Do come and
  • cheer a fellow up. If you say yes I'll run you over in the motor, and you
  • can telephone your maid to bring your traps from town by the next train."
  • Lily shook her head with a charming semblance of regret. "I wish I
  • could--but it's quite impossible. My aunt has come back to town, and I
  • must be with her for the next few days."
  • "Well, I've seen a good deal less of you since we've got to be such pals
  • than I used to when you were Judy's friend," he continued with
  • unconscious penetration.
  • "When I was Judy's friend? Am I not her friend still? Really, you say the
  • most absurd things! If I were always at Bellomont you would tire of me
  • much sooner than Judy--but come and see me at my aunt's the next
  • afternoon you are in town; then we can have a nice quiet talk, and you
  • can tell me how I had better invest my fortune."
  • It was true that, during the last three or four weeks, she had absented
  • herself from Bellomont on the pretext of having other visits to pay; but
  • she now began to feel that the reckoning she had thus contrived to evade
  • had rolled up interest in the interval.
  • The prospect of the nice quiet talk did not appear as all-sufficing to
  • Trenor as she had hoped, and his brows continued to lower as he said:
  • "Oh, I don't know that I can promise you a fresh tip every day. But
  • there's one thing you might do for me; and that is, just to be a little
  • civil to Rosedale. Judy has promised to ask him to dine when we get to
  • town, but I can't induce her to have him at Bellomont, and if you would
  • let me bring him up now it would make a lot of difference. I don't
  • believe two women have spoken to him this afternoon, and I can tell you
  • he's a chap it pays to be decent to."
  • Miss Bart made an impatient movement, but suppressed the words which
  • seemed about to accompany it. After all, this was an unexpectedly easy
  • way of acquitting her debt; and had she not reasons of her own for
  • wishing to be civil to Mr. Rosedale?
  • "Oh, bring him by all means," she said smiling; "perhaps I can get a tip
  • out of him on my own account."
  • Trenor paused abruptly, and his eyes fixed themselves on hers with a look
  • which made her change colour.
  • "I say, you know--you'll please remember he's a blooming bounder," he
  • said; and with a slight laugh she turned toward the open window near
  • which they had been standing.
  • The throng in the room had increased, and she felt a desire for space and
  • fresh air. Both of these she found on the terrace, where only a few men
  • were lingering over cigarettes and liqueur, while scattered couples
  • strolled across the lawn to the autumn-tinted borders of the
  • flower-garden.
  • As she emerged, a man moved toward her from the knot of smokers, and she
  • found herself face to face with Selden. The stir of the pulses which his
  • nearness always caused was increased by a slight sense of constraint.
  • They had not met since their Sunday afternoon walk at Bellomont, and that
  • episode was still so vivid to her that she could hardly believe him to be
  • less conscious of it. But his greeting expressed no more than the
  • satisfaction which every pretty woman expects to see reflected in
  • masculine eyes; and the discovery, if distasteful to her vanity, was
  • reassuring to her nerves. Between the relief of her escape from Trenor,
  • and the vague apprehension of her meeting with Rosedale, it was pleasant
  • to rest a moment on the sense of complete understanding which Lawrence
  • Selden's manner always conveyed.
  • "This is luck," he said smiling. "I was wondering if I should be able to
  • have a word with you before the special snatches us away. I came with
  • Gerty Farish, and promised not to let her miss the train, but I am sure
  • she is still extracting sentimental solace from the wedding presents. She
  • appears to regard their number and value as evidence of the disinterested
  • affection of the contracting parties."
  • There was not the least trace of embarrassment in his voice, and as he
  • spoke, leaning slightly against the jamb of the window, and letting his
  • eyes rest on her in the frank enjoyment of her grace, she felt with a
  • faint chill of regret that he had gone back without an effort to the
  • footing on which they had stood before their last talk together. Her
  • vanity was stung by the sight of his unscathed smile. She longed to be to
  • him something more than a piece of sentient prettiness, a passing
  • diversion to his eye and brain; and the longing betrayed itself in her
  • reply.
  • "Ah," she said, "I envy Gerty that power she has of dressing up with
  • romance all our ugly and prosaic arrangements! I have never recovered my
  • self-respect since you showed me how poor and unimportant my ambitions
  • were."
  • The words were hardly spoken when she realized their infelicity. It
  • seemed to be her fate to appear at her worst to Selden.
  • "I thought, on the contrary," he returned lightly, "that I had been the
  • means of proving they were more important to you than anything else."
  • It was as if the eager current of her being had been checked by a sudden
  • obstacle which drove it back upon itself. She looked at him helplessly,
  • like a hurt or frightened child: this real self of hers, which he had the
  • faculty of drawing out of the depths, was so little accustomed to go
  • alone!
  • The appeal of her helplessness touched in him, as it always did, a latent
  • chord of inclination. It would have meant nothing to him to discover that
  • his nearness made her more brilliant, but this glimpse of a twilight mood
  • to which he alone had the clue seemed once more to set him in a world
  • apart with her.
  • "At least you can't think worse things of me than you say!" she exclaimed
  • with a trembling laugh; but before he could answer, the flow of
  • comprehension between them was abruptly stayed by the reappearance of Gus
  • Trenor, who advanced with Mr. Rosedale in his wake.
  • "Hang it, Lily, I thought you'd given me the slip: Rosedale and I have
  • been hunting all over for you!"
  • His voice had a note of conjugal familiarity: Miss Bart fancied she
  • detected in Rosedale's eye a twinkling perception of the fact, and the
  • idea turned her dislike of him to repugnance.
  • She returned his profound bow with a slight nod, made more disdainful by
  • the sense of Selden's surprise that she should number Rosedale among her
  • acquaintances. Trenor had turned away, and his companion continued to
  • stand before Miss Bart, alert and expectant, his lips parted in a smile
  • at whatever she might be about to say, and his very back conscious of the
  • privilege of being seen with her.
  • It was the moment for tact; for the quick bridging over of gaps; but
  • Selden still leaned against the window, a detached observer of the scene,
  • and under the spell of his observation Lily felt herself powerless to
  • exert her usual arts. The dread of Selden's suspecting that there was any
  • need for her to propitiate such a man as Rosedale checked the trivial
  • phrases of politeness. Rosedale still stood before her in an expectant
  • attitude, and she continued to face him in silence, her glance just level
  • with his polished baldness. The look put the finishing touch to what her
  • silence implied.
  • He reddened slowly, shifting from one foot to the other, fingered the
  • plump black pearl in his tie, and gave a nervous twist to his moustache;
  • then, running his eye over her, he drew back, and said, with a
  • side-glance at Selden: "Upon my soul, I never saw a more ripping get-up.
  • Is that the last creation of the dress-maker you go to see at the
  • Benedick? If so, I wonder all the other women don't go to her too!"
  • The words were projected sharply against Lily's silence, and she saw in a
  • flash that her own act had given them their emphasis. In ordinary talk
  • they might have passed unheeded; but following on her prolonged pause
  • they acquired a special meaning. She felt, without looking, that Selden
  • had immediately seized it, and would inevitably connect the allusion with
  • her visit to himself. The consciousness increased her irritation against
  • Rosedale, but also her feeling that now, if ever, was the moment to
  • propitiate him, hateful as it was to do so in Selden's presence.
  • "How do you know the other women don't go to my dress-maker?" she
  • returned. "You see I'm not afraid to give her address to my friends!"
  • Her glance and accent so plainly included Rosedale in this privileged
  • circle that his small eyes puckered with gratification, and a knowing
  • smile drew up his moustache.
  • "By Jove, you needn't be!" he declared. "You could give 'em the whole
  • outfit and win at a canter!"
  • "Ah, that's nice of you; and it would be nicer still if you would carry
  • me off to a quiet corner, and get me a glass of lemonade or some innocent
  • drink before we all have to rush for the train."
  • She turned away as she spoke, letting him strut at her side through the
  • gathering groups on the terrace, while every nerve in her throbbed with
  • the consciousness of what Selden must have thought of the scene.
  • But under her angry sense of the perverseness of things, and the light
  • surface of her talk with Rosedale, a third idea persisted: she did not
  • mean to leave without an attempt to discover the truth about Percy Gryce.
  • Chance, or perhaps his own resolve, had kept them apart since his hasty
  • withdrawal from Bellomont; but Miss Bart was an expert in making the most
  • of the unexpected, and the distasteful incidents of the last few
  • minutes--the revelation to Selden of precisely that part of her life
  • which she most wished him to ignore--increased her longing for shelter,
  • for escape from such humiliating contingencies. Any definite situation
  • would be more tolerable than this buffeting of chances, which kept her in
  • an attitude of uneasy alertness toward every possibility of life.
  • Indoors there was a general sense of dispersal in the air, as of an
  • audience gathering itself up for departure after the principal actors had
  • left the stage; but among the remaining groups, Lily could discover
  • neither Gryce nor the youngest Miss Van Osburgh. That both should be
  • missing struck her with foreboding; and she charmed Mr. Rosedale by
  • proposing that they should make their way to the conservatories at the
  • farther end of the house. There were just enough people left in the long
  • suite of rooms to make their progress conspicuous, and Lily was aware of
  • being followed by looks of amusement and interrogation, which glanced off
  • as harmlessly from her indifference as from her companion's
  • self-satisfaction. She cared very little at that moment about being seen
  • with Rosedale: all her thoughts were centred on the object of her search.
  • The latter, however, was not discoverable in the conservatories, and
  • Lily, oppressed by a sudden conviction of failure, was casting about for
  • a way to rid herself of her now superfluous companion, when they came
  • upon Mrs. Van Osburgh, flushed and exhausted, but beaming with the
  • consciousness of duty performed.
  • She glanced at them a moment with the benign but vacant eye of the tired
  • hostess, to whom her guests have become mere whirling spots in a
  • kaleidoscope of fatigue; then her attention became suddenly fixed, and
  • she seized on Miss Bart with a confidential gesture. "My dear Lily, I
  • haven't had time for a word with you, and now I suppose you are just off.
  • Have you seen Evie? She's been looking everywhere for you: she wanted to
  • tell you her little secret; but I daresay you have guessed it already.
  • The engagement is not to be announced till next week--but you are such a
  • friend of Mr. Gryce's that they both wished you to be the first to know
  • of their happiness."
  • Chapter 9
  • In Mrs. Peniston's youth, fashion had returned to town in October;
  • therefore on the tenth day of the month the blinds of her Fifth Avenue
  • residence were drawn up, and the eyes of the Dying Gladiator in bronze
  • who occupied the drawing-room window resumed their survey of that
  • deserted thoroughfare.
  • The first two weeks after her return represented to Mrs. Peniston the
  • domestic equivalent of a religious retreat. She "went through" the linen
  • and blankets in the precise spirit of the penitent exploring the inner
  • folds of conscience; she sought for moths as the stricken soul seeks for
  • lurking infirmities. The topmost shelf of every closet was made to yield
  • up its secret, cellar and coal-bin were probed to their darkest depths
  • and, as a final stage in the lustral rites, the entire house was swathed
  • in penitential white and deluged with expiatory soapsuds.
  • It was on this phase of the proceedings that Miss Bart entered on the
  • afternoon of her return from the Van Osburgh wedding. The journey back to
  • town had not been calculated to soothe her nerves. Though Evie Van
  • Osburgh's engagement was still officially a secret, it was one of which
  • the innumerable intimate friends of the family were already possessed;
  • and the trainful of returning guests buzzed with allusions and
  • anticipations. Lily was acutely aware of her own part in this drama of
  • innuendo: she knew the exact quality of the amusement the situation
  • evoked. The crude forms in which her friends took their pleasure included
  • a loud enjoyment of such complications: the zest of surprising destiny in
  • the act of playing a practical joke. Lily knew well enough how to bear
  • herself in difficult situations. She had, to a shade, the exact manner
  • between victory and defeat: every insinuation was shed without an effort
  • by the bright indifference of her manner. But she was beginning to feel
  • the strain of the attitude; the reaction was more rapid, and she lapsed
  • to a deeper self-disgust.
  • As was always the case with her, this moral repulsion found a physical
  • outlet in a quickened distaste for her surroundings. She revolted from
  • the complacent ugliness of Mrs. Peniston's black walnut, from the
  • slippery gloss of the vestibule tiles, and the mingled odour of sapolio
  • and furniture-polish that met her at the door.
  • The stairs were still carpetless, and on the way up to her room she was
  • arrested on the landing by an encroaching tide of soapsuds. Gathering up
  • her skirts, she drew aside with an impatient gesture; and as she did so
  • she had the odd sensation of having already found herself in the same
  • situation but in different surroundings. It seemed to her that she was
  • again descending the staircase from Selden's rooms; and looking down to
  • remonstrate with the dispenser of the soapy flood, she found herself met
  • by a lifted stare which had once before confronted her under similar
  • circumstances. It was the char-woman of the Benedick who, resting on
  • crimson elbows, examined her with the same unflinching curiosity, the
  • same apparent reluctance to let her pass. On this occasion, however, Miss
  • Bart was on her own ground.
  • "Don't you see that I wish to go by? Please move your pail," she said
  • sharply.
  • The woman at first seemed not to hear; then, without a word of excuse,
  • she pushed back her pail and dragged a wet floor-cloth across the
  • landing, keeping her eyes fixed on Lily while the latter swept by. It was
  • insufferable that Mrs. Peniston should have such creatures about the
  • house; and Lily entered her room resolved that the woman should be
  • dismissed that evening.
  • Mrs. Peniston, however, was at the moment inaccessible to remonstrance:
  • since early morning she had been shut up with her maid, going over her
  • furs, a process which formed the culminating episode in the drama of
  • household renovation. In the evening also Lily found herself alone, for
  • her aunt, who rarely dined out, had responded to the summons of a Van
  • Alstyne cousin who was passing through town. The house, in its state of
  • unnatural immaculateness and order, was as dreary as a tomb, and as Lily,
  • turning from her brief repast between shrouded sideboards, wandered into
  • the newly-uncovered glare of the drawing-room she felt as though she were
  • buried alive in the stifling limits of Mrs. Peniston's existence.
  • She usually contrived to avoid being at home during the season of
  • domestic renewal. On the present occasion, however, a variety of reasons
  • had combined to bring her to town; and foremost among them was the fact
  • that she had fewer invitations than usual for the autumn. She had so long
  • been accustomed to pass from one country-house to another, till the close
  • of the holidays brought her friends to town, that the unfilled gaps of
  • time confronting her produced a sharp sense of waning popularity. It was
  • as she had said to Selden--people were tired of her. They would welcome
  • her in a new character, but as Miss Bart they knew her by heart. She
  • knew herself by heart too, and was sick of the old story. There were
  • moments when she longed blindly for anything different, anything strange,
  • remote and untried; but the utmost reach of her imagination did not go
  • beyond picturing her usual life in a new setting. She could not figure
  • herself as anywhere but in a drawing-room, diffusing elegance as a flower
  • sheds perfume.
  • Meanwhile, as October advanced she had to face the alternative of
  • returning to the Trenors or joining her aunt in town. Even the desolating
  • dulness of New York in October, and the soapy discomforts of Mrs.
  • Peniston's interior, seemed preferable to what might await her at
  • Bellomont; and with an air of heroic devotion she announced her intention
  • of remaining with her aunt till the holidays.
  • Sacrifices of this nature are sometimes received with feelings as mixed
  • as those which actuate them; and Mrs. Peniston remarked to her
  • confidential maid that, if any of the family were to be with her at such
  • a crisis (though for forty years she had been thought competent to see to
  • the hanging of her own curtains), she would certainly have preferred Miss
  • Grace to Miss Lily. Grace Stepney was an obscure cousin, of adaptable
  • manners and vicarious interests, who "ran in" to sit with Mrs. Peniston
  • when Lily dined out too continuously; who played bezique, picked up
  • dropped stitches, read out the deaths from the Times, and sincerely
  • admired the purple satin drawing-room curtains, the Dying Gladiator in
  • the window, and the seven-by-five painting of Niagara which represented
  • the one artistic excess of Mr. Peniston's temperate career.
  • Mrs. Peniston, under ordinary circumstances, was as much bored by her
  • excellent cousin as the recipient of such services usually is by the
  • person who performs them. She greatly preferred the brilliant and
  • unreliable Lily, who did not know one end of a crochet-needle from the
  • other, and had frequently wounded her susceptibilities by suggesting that
  • the drawing-room should be "done over." But when it came to hunting for
  • missing napkins, or helping to decide whether the backstairs needed
  • re-carpeting, Grace's judgment was certainly sounder than Lily's: not to
  • mention the fact that the latter resented the smell of beeswax and brown
  • soap, and behaved as though she thought a house ought to keep clean of
  • itself, without extraneous assistance.
  • Seated under the cheerless blaze of the drawing-room chandelier--Mrs.
  • Peniston never lit the lamps unless there was "company"--Lily seemed to
  • watch her own figure retreating down vistas of neutral-tinted dulness to
  • a middle age like Grace Stepney's. When she ceased to amuse Judy Trenor
  • and her friends she would have to fall back on amusing Mrs. Peniston;
  • whichever way she looked she saw only a future of servitude to the whims
  • of others, never the possibility of asserting her own eager individuality.
  • A ring at the door-bell, sounding emphatically through the empty house,
  • roused her suddenly to the extent of her boredom. It was as though all
  • the weariness of the past months had culminated in the vacuity of that
  • interminable evening. If only the ring meant a summons from the outer
  • world--a token that she was still remembered and wanted!
  • After some delay a parlour-maid presented herself with the announcement
  • that there was a person outside who was asking to see Miss Bart; and on
  • Lily's pressing for a more specific description, she added:
  • "It's Mrs. Haffen, Miss; she won't say what she wants."
  • Lily, to whom the name conveyed nothing, opened the door upon a woman in
  • a battered bonnet, who stood firmly planted under the hall-light. The
  • glare of the unshaded gas shone familiarly on her pock-marked face and
  • the reddish baldness visible through thin strands of straw-coloured hair.
  • Lily looked at the char-woman in surprise.
  • "Do you wish to see me?" she asked.
  • "I should like to say a word to you, Miss." The tone was neither
  • aggressive nor conciliatory: it revealed nothing of the speaker's errand.
  • Nevertheless, some precautionary instinct warned Lily to withdraw beyond
  • ear-shot of the hovering parlour-maid.
  • She signed to Mrs. Haffen to follow her into the drawing-room, and closed
  • the door when they had entered.
  • "What is it that you wish?" she enquired.
  • The char-woman, after the manner of her kind, stood with her arms folded
  • in her shawl. Unwinding the latter, she produced a small parcel wrapped
  • in dirty newspaper.
  • "I have something here that you might like to see, Miss Bart." She spoke
  • the name with an unpleasant emphasis, as though her knowing it made a
  • part of her reason for being there. To Lily the intonation sounded like a
  • threat.
  • "You have found something belonging to me?" she asked, extending her hand.
  • Mrs. Haffen drew back. "Well, if it comes to that, I guess it's mine as
  • much as anybody's," she returned.
  • Lily looked at her perplexedly. She was sure, now, that her visitor's
  • manner conveyed a threat; but, expert as she was in certain directions,
  • there was nothing in her experience to prepare her for the exact
  • significance of the present scene. She felt, however, that it must be
  • ended as promptly as possible.
  • "I don't understand; if this parcel is not mine, why have you asked for
  • me?"
  • The woman was unabashed by the question. She was evidently prepared to
  • answer it, but like all her class she had to go a long way back to make a
  • beginning, and it was only after a pause that she replied: "My husband
  • was janitor to the Benedick till the first of the month; since then he
  • can't get nothing to do."
  • Lily remained silent and she continued: "It wasn't no fault of our own,
  • neither: the agent had another man he wanted the place for, and we was
  • put out, bag and baggage, just to suit his fancy. I had a long sickness
  • last winter, and an operation that ate up all we'd put by; and it's hard
  • for me and the children, Haffen being so long out of a job."
  • After all, then, she had come only to ask Miss Bart to find a place for
  • her husband; or, more probably, to seek the young lady's intervention
  • with Mrs. Peniston. Lily had such an air of always getting what she
  • wanted that she was used to being appealed to as an intermediary, and,
  • relieved of her vague apprehension, she took refuge in the conventional
  • formula.
  • "I am sorry you have been in trouble," she said.
  • "Oh, that we have, Miss, and it's on'y just beginning. If on'y we'd 'a
  • got another situation--but the agent, he's dead against us. It ain't no
  • fault of ours, neither, but----"
  • At this point Lily's impatience overcame her. "If you have anything to
  • say to me----" she interposed.
  • The woman's resentment of the rebuff seemed to spur her lagging ideas.
  • "Yes, Miss; I'm coming to that," she said. She paused again, with her
  • eyes on Lily, and then continued, in a tone of diffuse narrative: "When
  • we was at the Benedick I had charge of some of the gentlemen's rooms;
  • leastways, I swep' 'em out on Saturdays. Some of the gentlemen got the
  • greatest sight of letters: I never saw the like of it. Their waste-paper
  • baskets 'd be fairly brimming, and papers falling over on the floor.
  • Maybe havin' so many is how they get so careless. Some of 'em is worse
  • than others. Mr. Selden, Mr. Lawrence Selden, he was always one of the
  • carefullest: burnt his letters in winter, and tore 'em in little bits in
  • summer. But sometimes he'd have so many he'd just bunch 'em together, the
  • way the others did, and tear the lot through once--like this."
  • While she spoke she had loosened the string from the parcel in her hand,
  • and now she drew forth a letter which she laid on the table between Miss
  • Bart and herself. As she had said, the letter was torn in two; but with a
  • rapid gesture she laid the torn edges together and smoothed out the page.
  • A wave of indignation swept over Lily. She felt herself in the presence
  • of something vile, as yet but dimly conjectured--the kind of vileness of
  • which people whispered, but which she had never thought of as touching
  • her own life. She drew back with a motion of disgust, but her withdrawal
  • was checked by a sudden discovery: under the glare of Mrs. Peniston's
  • chandelier she had recognized the hand-writing of the letter. It was a
  • large disjointed hand, with a flourish of masculinity which but slightly
  • disguised its rambling weakness, and the words, scrawled in heavy ink on
  • pale-tinted notepaper, smote on Lily's ear as though she had heard them
  • spoken.
  • At first she did not grasp the full import of the situation. She
  • understood only that before her lay a letter written by Bertha Dorset,
  • and addressed, presumably, to Lawrence Selden. There was no date, but the
  • blackness of the ink proved the writing to be comparatively recent. The
  • packet in Mrs. Haffen's hand doubtless contained more letters of the same
  • kind--a dozen, Lily conjectured from its thickness. The letter before her
  • was short, but its few words, which had leapt into her brain before she
  • was conscious of reading them, told a long history--a history over which,
  • for the last four years, the friends of the writer had smiled and
  • shrugged, viewing it merely as one among the countless "good situations"
  • of the mundane comedy. Now the other side presented itself to Lily, the
  • volcanic nether side of the surface over which conjecture and innuendo
  • glide so lightly till the first fissure turns their whisper to a shriek.
  • Lily knew that there is nothing society resents so much as having given
  • its protection to those who have not known how to profit by it: it is for
  • having betrayed its connivance that the body social punishes the offender
  • who is found out. And in this case there was no doubt of the issue. The
  • code of Lily's world decreed that a woman's husband should be the only
  • judge of her conduct: she was technically above suspicion while she had
  • the shelter of his approval, or even of his indifference. But with a man
  • of George Dorset's temper there could be no thought of condonation--the
  • possessor of his wife's letters could overthrow with a touch the whole
  • structure of her existence. And into what hands Bertha Dorset's secret
  • had been delivered! For a moment the irony of the coincidence tinged
  • Lily's disgust with a confused sense of triumph. But the disgust
  • prevailed--all her instinctive resistances, of taste, of training, of
  • blind inherited scruples, rose against the other feeling. Her strongest
  • sense was one of personal contamination.
  • She moved away, as though to put as much distance as possible between
  • herself and her visitor. "I know nothing of these letters," she said; "I
  • have no idea why you have brought them here."
  • Mrs. Haffen faced her steadily. "I'll tell you why, Miss. I brought 'em
  • to you to sell, because I ain't got no other way of raising money, and if
  • we don't pay our rent by tomorrow night we'll be put out. I never done
  • anythin' of the kind before, and if you'd speak to Mr. Selden or to Mr.
  • Rosedale about getting Haffen taken on again at the Benedick--I seen you
  • talking to Mr. Rosedale on the steps that day you come out of Mr.
  • Selden's rooms----"
  • The blood rushed to Lily's forehead. She understood now--Mrs. Haffen
  • supposed her to be the writer of the letters. In the first leap of her
  • anger she was about to ring and order the woman out; but an obscure
  • impulse restrained her. The mention of Selden's name had started a new
  • train of thought. Bertha Dorset's letters were nothing to her--they might
  • go where the current of chance carried them! But Selden was inextricably
  • involved in their fate. Men do not, at worst, suffer much from such
  • exposure; and in this instance the flash of divination which had carried
  • the meaning of the letters to Lily's brain had revealed also that they
  • were appeals--repeated and therefore probably unanswered--for the renewal
  • of a tie which time had evidently relaxed. Nevertheless, the fact that
  • the correspondence had been allowed to fall into strange hands would
  • convict Selden of negligence in a matter where the world holds it least
  • pardonable; and there were graver risks to consider where a man of
  • Dorset's ticklish balance was concerned.
  • If she weighed all these things it was unconsciously: she was aware only
  • of feeling that Selden would wish the letters rescued, and that therefore
  • she must obtain possession of them. Beyond that her mind did not travel.
  • She had, indeed, a quick vision of returning the packet to Bertha Dorset,
  • and of the opportunities the restitution offered; but this thought lit up
  • abysses from which she shrank back ashamed.
  • Meanwhile Mrs. Haffen, prompt to perceive her hesitation, had already
  • opened the packet and ranged its contents on the table. All the letters
  • had been pieced together with strips of thin paper. Some were in small
  • fragments, the others merely torn in half. Though there were not many,
  • thus spread out they nearly covered the table. Lily's glance fell on a
  • word here and there--then she said in a low voice: "What do you wish me
  • to pay you?"
  • Mrs. Haffen's face reddened with satisfaction. It was clear that the
  • young lady was badly frightened, and Mrs. Haffen was the woman to make
  • the most of such fears. Anticipating an easier victory than she had
  • foreseen, she named an exorbitant sum.
  • But Miss Bart showed herself a less ready prey than might have been
  • expected from her imprudent opening. She refused to pay the price named,
  • and after a moment's hesitation, met it by a counter-offer of half the
  • amount.
  • Mrs. Haffen immediately stiffened. Her hand travelled toward the
  • outspread letters, and folding them slowly, she made as though to restore
  • them to their wrapping.
  • "I guess they're worth more to you than to me, Miss, but the poor has got
  • to live as well as the rich," she observed sententiously.
  • Lily was throbbing with fear, but the insinuation fortified her
  • resistance.
  • "You are mistaken," she said indifferently. "I have offered all I am
  • willing to give for the letters; but there may be other ways of getting
  • them."
  • Mrs. Haffen raised a suspicious glance: she was too experienced not to
  • know that the traffic she was engaged in had perils as great as its
  • rewards, and she had a vision of the elaborate machinery of revenge which
  • a word of this commanding young lady's might set in motion.
  • She applied the corner of her shawl to her eyes, and murmured through it
  • that no good came of bearing too hard on the poor, but that for her part
  • she had never been mixed up in such a business before, and that on her
  • honour as a Christian all she and Haffen had thought of was that the
  • letters mustn't go any farther.
  • Lily stood motionless, keeping between herself and the char-woman the
  • greatest distance compatible with the need of speaking in low tones. The
  • idea of bargaining for the letters was intolerable to her, but she knew
  • that, if she appeared to weaken, Mrs. Haffen would at once increase her
  • original demand.
  • She could never afterward recall how long the duel lasted, or what was
  • the decisive stroke which finally, after a lapse of time recorded in
  • minutes by the clock, in hours by the precipitate beat of her pulses, put
  • her in possession of the letters; she knew only that the door had finally
  • closed, and that she stood alone with the packet in her hand.
  • She had no idea of reading the letters; even to unfold Mrs. Haffen's
  • dirty newspaper would have seemed degrading. But what did she intend to
  • do with its contents? The recipient of the letters had meant to destroy
  • them, and it was her duty to carry out his intention. She had no right to
  • keep them--to do so was to lessen whatever merit lay in having secured
  • their possession. But how destroy them so effectually that there should
  • be no second risk of their falling in such hands? Mrs. Peniston's icy
  • drawing-room grate shone with a forbidding lustre: the fire, like the
  • lamps, was never lit except when there was company.
  • Miss Bart was turning to carry the letters upstairs when she heard the
  • opening of the outer door, and her aunt entered the drawing-room. Mrs.
  • Peniston was a small plump woman, with a colourless skin lined with
  • trivial wrinkles. Her grey hair was arranged with precision, and her
  • clothes looked excessively new and yet slightly old-fashioned. They were
  • always black and tightly fitting, with an expensive glitter: she was the
  • kind of woman who wore jet at breakfast. Lily had never seen her when she
  • was not cuirassed in shining black, with small tight boots, and an air of
  • being packed and ready to start; yet she never started.
  • She looked about the drawing-room with an expression of minute scrutiny.
  • "I saw a streak of light under one of the blinds as I drove up: it's
  • extraordinary that I can never teach that woman to draw them down evenly."
  • Having corrected the irregularity, she seated herself on one of the
  • glossy purple arm-chairs; Mrs. Peniston always sat on a chair, never in
  • it.
  • Then she turned her glance to Miss Bart. "My dear, you look tired; I
  • suppose it's the excitement of the wedding. Cornelia Van Alstyne was full
  • of it: Molly was there, and Gerty Farish ran in for a minute to tell us
  • about it. I think it was odd, their serving melons before the CONSOMME: a
  • wedding breakfast should always begin with CONSOMME. Molly didn't care
  • for the bridesmaids' dresses. She had it straight from Julia Melson that
  • they cost three hundred dollars apiece at Celeste's, but she says they
  • didn't look it. I'm glad you decided not to be a bridesmaid; that shade
  • of salmon-pink wouldn't have suited you." Mrs. Peniston delighted in
  • discussing the minutest details of festivities in which she had not taken
  • part. Nothing would have induced her to undergo the exertion and fatigue
  • of attending the Van Osburgh wedding, but so great was her interest in
  • the event that, having heard two versions of it, she now prepared to
  • extract a third from her niece. Lily, however, had been deplorably
  • careless in noting the particulars of the entertainment. She had failed
  • to observe the colour of Mrs. Van Osburgh's gown, and could not even say
  • whether the old Van Osburgh Sevres had been used at the bride's table:
  • Mrs. Peniston, in short, found that she was of more service as a listener
  • than as a narrator.
  • "Really, Lily, I don't see why you took the trouble to go to the wedding,
  • if you don't remember what happened or whom you saw there. When I was a
  • girl I used to keep the MENU of every dinner I went to, and write the
  • names of the people on the back; and I never threw away my cotillion
  • favours till after your uncle's death, when it seemed unsuitable to have
  • so many coloured things about the house. I had a whole closet-full, I
  • remember; and I can tell to this day what balls I got them at. Molly Van
  • Alstyne reminds me of what I was at that age; it's wonderful how she
  • notices. She was able to tell her mother exactly how the wedding-dress
  • was cut, and we knew at once, from the fold in the back, that it must
  • have come from Paquin."
  • Mrs. Peniston rose abruptly, and, advancing to the ormolu clock
  • surmounted by a helmeted Minerva, which throned on the chimney-piece
  • between two malachite vases, passed her lace handkerchief between the
  • helmet and its visor.
  • "I knew it--the parlour-maid never dusts there!" she exclaimed,
  • triumphantly displaying a minute spot on the handkerchief; then,
  • reseating herself, she went on: "Molly thought Mrs. Dorset the
  • best-dressed woman at the wedding. I've no doubt her dress DID cost more
  • than any one else's, but I can't quite like the idea--a combination of
  • sable and POINT DE MILAN. It seems she goes to a new man in Paris, who
  • won't take an order till his client has spent a day with him at his villa
  • at Neuilly. He says he must study his subject's home life--a most
  • peculiar arrangement, I should say! But Mrs. Dorset told Molly about it
  • herself: she said the villa was full of the most exquisite things and she
  • was really sorry to leave. Molly said she never saw her looking better;
  • she was in tremendous spirits, and said she had made a match between Evie
  • Van Osburgh and Percy Gryce. She really seems to have a very good
  • influence on young men. I hear she is interesting herself now in that
  • silly Silverton boy, who has had his head turned by Carry Fisher, and has
  • been gambling so dreadfully. Well, as I was saying, Evie is really
  • engaged: Mrs. Dorset had her to stay with Percy Gryce, and managed it
  • all, and Grace Van Osburgh is in the seventh heaven--she had almost
  • despaired of marrying Evie."
  • Mrs. Peniston again paused, but this time her scrutiny addressed itself,
  • not to the furniture, but to her niece.
  • "Cornelia Van Alstyne was so surprised: she had heard that you were to
  • marry young Gryce. She saw the Wetheralls just after they had stopped
  • with you at Bellomont, and Alice Wetherall was quite sure there was an
  • engagement. She said that when Mr. Gryce left unexpectedly one morning,
  • they all thought he had rushed to town for the ring."
  • Lily rose and moved toward the door.
  • "I believe I AM tired: I think I will go to bed," she said; and Mrs.
  • Peniston, suddenly distracted by the discovery that the easel sustaining
  • the late Mr. Peniston's crayon-portrait was not exactly in line with the
  • sofa in front of it, presented an absent-minded brow to her kiss.
  • In her own room Lily turned up the gas-jet and glanced toward the grate.
  • It was as brilliantly polished as the one below, but here at least she
  • could burn a few papers with less risk of incurring her aunt's
  • disapproval. She made no immediate motion to do so, however, but dropping
  • into a chair looked wearily about her. Her room was large and
  • comfortably-furnished--it was the envy and admiration of poor Grace
  • Stepney, who boarded; but, contrasted with the light tints and luxurious
  • appointments of the guest-rooms where so many weeks of Lily's existence
  • were spent, it seemed as dreary as a prison. The monumental wardrobe and
  • bedstead of black walnut had migrated from Mr. Peniston's bedroom, and
  • the magenta "flock" wall-paper, of a pattern dear to the early 'sixties,
  • was hung with large steel engravings of an anecdotic character. Lily had
  • tried to mitigate this charmless background by a few frivolous touches,
  • in the shape of a lace-decked toilet table and a little painted desk
  • surmounted by photographs; but the futility of the attempt struck her as
  • she looked about the room. What a contrast to the subtle elegance of the
  • setting she had pictured for herself--an apartment which should surpass
  • the complicated luxury of her friends' surroundings by the whole extent
  • of that artistic sensibility which made her feel herself their superior;
  • in which every tint and line should combine to enhance her beauty and
  • give distinction to her leisure! Once more the haunting sense of physical
  • ugliness was intensified by her mental depression, so that each piece of
  • the offending furniture seemed to thrust forth its most aggressive angle.
  • Her aunt's words had told her nothing new; but they had revived the
  • vision of Bertha Dorset, smiling, flattered, victorious, holding her up
  • to ridicule by insinuations intelligible to every member of their little
  • group. The thought of the ridicule struck deeper than any other
  • sensation: Lily knew every turn of the allusive jargon which could flay
  • its victims without the shedding of blood. Her cheek burned at the
  • recollection, and she rose and caught up the letters. She no longer meant
  • to destroy them: that intention had been effaced by the quick corrosion
  • of Mrs. Peniston's words.
  • Instead, she approached her desk, and lighting a taper, tied and sealed
  • the packet; then she opened the wardrobe, drew out a despatch-box, and
  • deposited the letters within it. As she did so, it struck her with a
  • flash of irony that she was indebted to Gus Trenor for the means of
  • buying them.
  • Chapter 10
  • The autumn dragged on monotonously. Miss Bart had received one or two
  • notes from Judy Trenor, reproaching her for not returning to Bellomont;
  • but she replied evasively, alleging the obligation to remain with her
  • aunt. In truth, however, she was fast wearying of her solitary existence
  • with Mrs. Peniston, and only the excitement of spending her
  • newly-acquired money lightened the dulness of the days.
  • All her life Lily had seen money go out as quickly as it came in, and
  • whatever theories she cultivated as to the prudence of setting aside a
  • part of her gains, she had unhappily no saving vision of the risks of the
  • opposite course. It was a keen satisfaction to feel that, for a few
  • months at least, she would be independent of her friends' bounty, that
  • she could show herself abroad without wondering whether some penetrating
  • eye would detect in her dress the traces of Judy Trenor's refurbished
  • splendour. The fact that the money freed her temporarily from all minor
  • obligations obscured her sense of the greater one it represented, and
  • having never before known what it was to command so large a sum, she
  • lingered delectably over the amusement of spending it.
  • It was on one of these occasions that, leaving a shop where she had spent
  • an hour of deliberation over a dressing-case of the most complicated
  • elegance, she ran across Miss Farish, who had entered the same
  • establishment with the modest object of having her watch repaired. Lily
  • was feeling unusually virtuous. She had decided to defer the purchase of
  • the dressing-case till she should receive the bill for her new
  • opera-cloak, and the resolve made her feel much richer than when she had
  • entered the shop. In this mood of self-approval she had a sympathetic eye
  • for others, and she was struck by her friend's air of dejection.
  • Miss Farish, it appeared, had just left the committee-meeting of a
  • struggling charity in which she was interested. The object of the
  • association was to provide comfortable lodgings, with a reading-room and
  • other modest distractions, where young women of the class employed in
  • down town offices might find a home when out of work, or in need of rest,
  • and the first year's financial report showed so deplorably small a
  • balance that Miss Farish, who was convinced of the urgency of the work,
  • felt proportionately discouraged by the small amount of interest it
  • aroused. The other-regarding sentiments had not been cultivated in Lily,
  • and she was often bored by the relation of her friend's philanthropic
  • efforts, but today her quick dramatizing fancy seized on the contrast
  • between her own situation and that represented by some of Gerty's
  • "cases." These were young girls, like herself; some perhaps pretty, some
  • not without a trace of her finer sensibilities. She pictured herself
  • leading such a life as theirs--a life in which achievement seemed as
  • squalid as failure--and the vision made her shudder sympathetically. The
  • price of the dressing-case was still in her pocket; and drawing out her
  • little gold purse she slipped a liberal fraction of the amount into Miss
  • Farish's hand.
  • The satisfaction derived from this act was all that the most ardent
  • moralist could have desired. Lily felt a new interest in herself as a
  • person of charitable instincts: she had never before thought of doing
  • good with the wealth she had so often dreamed of possessing, but now her
  • horizon was enlarged by the vision of a prodigal philanthropy. Moreover,
  • by some obscure process of logic, she felt that her momentary burst of
  • generosity had justified all previous extravagances, and excused any in
  • which she might subsequently indulge. Miss Farish's surprise and
  • gratitude confirmed this feeling, and Lily parted from her with a sense
  • of self-esteem which she naturally mistook for the fruits of altruism.
  • About this time she was farther cheered by an invitation to spend the
  • Thanksgiving week at a camp in the Adirondacks. The invitation was one
  • which, a year earlier, would have provoked a less ready response, for the
  • party, though organized by Mrs. Fisher, was ostensibly given by a lady of
  • obscure origin and indomitable social ambitions, whose acquaintance Lily
  • had hitherto avoided. Now, however, she was disposed to coincide with
  • Mrs. Fisher's view, that it didn't matter who gave the party, as long as
  • things were well done; and doing things well (under competent direction)
  • was Mrs. Wellington Bry's strong point. The lady (whose consort was known
  • as "Welly" Bry on the Stock Exchange and in sporting circles) had already
  • sacrificed one husband, and sundry minor considerations, to her
  • determination to get on; and, having obtained a hold on Carry Fisher, she
  • was astute enough to perceive the wisdom of committing herself entirely
  • to that lady's guidance. Everything, accordingly, was well done, for
  • there was no limit to Mrs. Fisher's prodigality when she was not spending
  • her own money, and as she remarked to her pupil, a good cook was the best
  • introduction to society. If the company was not as select as the CUISINE,
  • the Welly Brys at least had the satisfaction of figuring for the first
  • time in the society columns in company with one or two noticeable names;
  • and foremost among these was of course Miss Bart's. The young lady was
  • treated by her hosts with corresponding deference; and she was in the
  • mood when such attentions are acceptable, whatever their source. Mrs.
  • Bry's admiration was a mirror in which Lily's self-complacency recovered
  • its lost outline. No insect hangs its nest on threads as frail as those
  • which will sustain the weight of human vanity; and the sense of being of
  • importance among the insignificant was enough to restore to Miss Bart the
  • gratifying consciousness of power. If these people paid court to her it
  • proved that she was still conspicuous in the world to which they aspired;
  • and she was not above a certain enjoyment in dazzling them by her
  • fineness, in developing their puzzled perception of her superiorities.
  • Perhaps, however, her enjoyment proceeded more than she was aware from
  • the physical stimulus of the excursion, the challenge of crisp cold and
  • hard exercise, the responsive thrill of her body to the influences of the
  • winter woods. She returned to town in a glow of rejuvenation, conscious
  • of a clearer colour in her cheeks, a fresh elasticity in her muscles. The
  • future seemed full of a vague promise, and all her apprehensions were
  • swept out of sight on the buoyant current of her mood.
  • A few days after her return to town she had the unpleasant surprise of a
  • visit from Mr. Rosedale. He came late, at the confidential hour when the
  • tea-table still lingers by the fire in friendly expectancy; and his
  • manner showed a readiness to adapt itself to the intimacy of the occasion.
  • Lily, who had a vague sense of his being somehow connected with her lucky
  • speculations, tried to give him the welcome he expected; but there was
  • something in the quality of his geniality which chilled her own, and she
  • was conscious of marking each step in their acquaintance by a fresh
  • blunder.
  • Mr. Rosedale--making himself promptly at home in an adjoining easy-chair,
  • and sipping his tea critically, with the comment: "You ought to go to my
  • man for something really good"--appeared totally unconscious of the
  • repugnance which kept her in frozen erectness behind the urn. It was
  • perhaps her very manner of holding herself aloof that appealed to his
  • collector's passion for the rare and unattainable. He gave, at any rate,
  • no sign of resenting it and seemed prepared to supply in his own manner
  • all the ease that was lacking in hers.
  • His object in calling was to ask her to go to the opera in his box on the
  • opening night, and seeing her hesitate he said persuasively: "Mrs. Fisher
  • is coming, and I've secured a tremendous admirer of yours, who'll never
  • forgive me if you don't accept."
  • As Lily's silence left him with this allusion on his hands, he added with
  • a confidential smile: "Gus Trenor has promised to come to town on
  • purpose. I fancy he'd go a good deal farther for the pleasure of seeing
  • you."
  • Miss Bart felt an inward motion of annoyance: it was distasteful enough
  • to hear her name coupled with Trenor's, and on Rosedale's lips the
  • allusion was peculiarly unpleasant.
  • "The Trenors are my best friends--I think we should all go a long way to
  • see each other," she said, absorbing herself in the preparation of fresh
  • tea.
  • Her visitor's smile grew increasingly intimate. "Well, I wasn't thinking
  • of Mrs. Trenor at the moment--they say Gus doesn't always, you know."
  • Then, dimly conscious that he had not struck the right note, he added,
  • with a well-meant effort at diversion: "How's your luck been going in
  • Wall Street, by the way? I hear Gus pulled off a nice little pile for you
  • last month."
  • Lily put down the tea-caddy with an abrupt gesture. She felt that her
  • hands were trembling, and clasped them on her knee to steady them; but
  • her lip trembled too, and for a moment she was afraid the tremor might
  • communicate itself to her voice. When she spoke, however, it was in a
  • tone of perfect lightness.
  • "Ah, yes--I had a little bit of money to invest, and Mr. Trenor, who
  • helps me about such matters, advised my putting it in stocks instead of a
  • mortgage, as my aunt's agent wanted me to do; and as it happened, I made
  • a lucky 'turn'--is that what you call it? For you make a great many
  • yourself, I believe."
  • She was smiling back at him now, relaxing the tension of her attitude,
  • and admitting him, by imperceptible gradations of glance and manner, a
  • step farther toward intimacy. The protective instinct always nerved her
  • to successful dissimulation, and it was not the first time she had used
  • her beauty to divert attention from an inconvenient topic.
  • When Mr. Rosedale took leave, he carried with him, not only her
  • acceptance of his invitation, but a general sense of having comported
  • himself in a way calculated to advance his cause. He had always believed
  • he had a light touch and a knowing way with women, and the prompt manner
  • in which Miss Bart (as he would have phrased it) had "come into line,"
  • confirmed his confidence in his powers of handling this skittish sex. Her
  • way of glossing over the transaction with Trenor he regarded at once as a
  • tribute to his own acuteness, and a confirmation of his suspicions. The
  • girl was evidently nervous, and Mr. Rosedale, if he saw no other means of
  • advancing his acquaintance with her, was not above taking advantage of
  • her nervousness.
  • He left Lily to a passion of disgust and fear. It seemed incredible that
  • Gus Trenor should have spoken of her to Rosedale. With all his faults,
  • Trenor had the safeguard of his traditions, and was the less likely to
  • overstep them because they were so purely instinctive. But Lily recalled
  • with a pang that there were convivial moments when, as Judy had confided
  • to her, Gus "talked foolishly": in one of these, no doubt, the fatal word
  • had slipped from him. As for Rosedale, she did not, after the first
  • shock, greatly care what conclusions he had drawn. Though usually adroit
  • enough where her own interests were concerned, she made the mistake, not
  • uncommon to persons in whom the social habits are instinctive, of
  • supposing that the inability to acquire them quickly implies a general
  • dulness. Because a blue-bottle bangs irrationally against a window-pane,
  • the drawing-room naturalist may forget that under less artificial
  • conditions it is capable of measuring distances and drawing conclusions
  • with all the accuracy needful to its welfare; and the fact that Mr.
  • Rosedale's drawing-room manner lacked perspective made Lily class him
  • with Trenor and the other dull men she knew, and assume that a little
  • flattery, and the occasional acceptance of his hospitality, would suffice
  • to render him innocuous. However, there could be no doubt of the
  • expediency of showing herself in his box on the opening night of the
  • opera; and after all, since Judy Trenor had promised to take him up that
  • winter, it was as well to reap the advantage of being first in the field.
  • For a day or two after Rosedale's visit, Lily's thoughts were dogged by
  • the consciousness of Trenor's shadowy claim, and she wished she had a
  • clearer notion of the exact nature of the transaction which seemed to
  • have put her in his power; but her mind shrank from any unusual
  • application, and she was always helplessly puzzled by figures. Moreover
  • she had not seen Trenor since the day of the Van Osburgh wedding, and in
  • his continued absence the trace of Rosedale's words was soon effaced by
  • other impressions.
  • When the opening night of the opera came, her apprehensions had so
  • completely vanished that the sight of Trenor's ruddy countenance in the
  • back of Mr. Rosedale's box filled her with a sense of pleasant
  • reassurance. Lily had not quite reconciled herself to the necessity of
  • appearing as Rosedale's guest on so conspicuous an occasion, and it was a
  • relief to find herself supported by any one of her own set--for Mrs.
  • Fisher's social habits were too promiscuous for her presence to justify
  • Miss Bart's.
  • To Lily, always inspirited by the prospect of showing her beauty in
  • public, and conscious tonight of all the added enhancements of dress, the
  • insistency of Trenor's gaze merged itself in the general stream of
  • admiring looks of which she felt herself the centre. Ah, it was good to
  • be young, to be radiant, to glow with the sense of slenderness, strength
  • and elasticity, of well-poised lines and happy tints, to feel one's self
  • lifted to a height apart by that incommunicable grace which is the bodily
  • counterpart of genius!
  • All means seemed justifiable to attain such an end, or rather, by a happy
  • shifting of lights with which practice had familiarized Miss Bart, the
  • cause shrank to a pin-point in the general brightness of the effect. But
  • brilliant young ladies, a little blinded by their own effulgence, are apt
  • to forget that the modest satellite drowned in their light is still
  • performing its own revolutions and generating heat at its own rate. If
  • Lily's poetic enjoyment of the moment was undisturbed by the base thought
  • that her gown and opera cloak had been indirectly paid for by Gus Trenor,
  • the latter had not sufficient poetry in his composition to lose sight of
  • these prosaic facts. He knew only that he had never seen Lily look
  • smarter in her life, that there wasn't a woman in the house who showed
  • off good clothes as she did, and that hitherto he, to whom she owed the
  • opportunity of making this display, had reaped no return beyond that of
  • gazing at her in company with several hundred other pairs of eyes.
  • It came to Lily therefore as a disagreeable surprise when, in the back of
  • the box, where they found themselves alone between two acts, Trenor said,
  • without preamble, and in a tone of sulky authority: "Look here, Lily, how
  • is a fellow ever to see anything of you? I'm in town three or four days
  • in the week, and you know a line to the club will always find me, but you
  • don't seem to remember my existence nowadays unless you want to get a tip
  • out of me."
  • The fact that the remark was in distinctly bad taste did not make it any
  • easier to answer, for Lily was vividly aware that it was not the moment
  • for that drawing up of her slim figure and surprised lifting of the brows
  • by which she usually quelled incipient signs of familiarity.
  • "I'm very much flattered by your wanting to see me," she returned,
  • essaying lightness instead, "but, unless you have mislaid my address, it
  • would have been easy to find me any afternoon at my aunt's--in fact, I
  • rather expected you to look me up there."
  • If she hoped to mollify him by this last concession the attempt was a
  • failure, for he only replied, with the familiar lowering of the brows
  • that made him look his dullest when he was angry: "Hang going to your
  • aunt's, and wasting the afternoon listening to a lot of other chaps
  • talking to you! You know I'm not the kind to sit in a crowd and jaw--I'd
  • always rather clear out when that sort of circus is going on. But why
  • can't we go off somewhere on a little lark together--a nice quiet little
  • expedition like that drive at Bellomont, the day you met me at the
  • station?"
  • He leaned unpleasantly close in order to convey this suggestion, and she
  • fancied she caught a significant aroma which explained the dark flush on
  • his face and the glistening dampness of his forehead.
  • The idea that any rash answer might provoke an unpleasant outburst
  • tempered her disgust with caution, and she answered with a laugh: "I
  • don't see how one can very well take country drives in town, but I am not
  • always surrounded by an admiring throng, and if you will let me know what
  • afternoon you are coming I will arrange things so that we can have a nice
  • quiet talk."
  • "Hang talking! That's what you always say," returned Trenor, whose
  • expletives lacked variety. "You put me off with that at the Van Osburgh
  • wedding--but the plain English of it is that, now you've got what you
  • wanted out of me, you'd rather have any other fellow about."
  • His voice had risen sharply with the last words, and Lily flushed with
  • annoyance, but she kept command of the situation and laid a persuasive
  • hand on his arm.
  • "Don't be foolish, Gus; I can't let you talk to me in that ridiculous
  • way. If you really want to see me, why shouldn't we take a walk in the
  • Park some afternoon? I agree with you that it's amusing to be rustic in
  • town, and if you like I'll meet you there, and we'll go and feed the
  • squirrels, and you shall take me out on the lake in the steam-gondola."
  • She smiled as she spoke, letting her eyes rest on his in a way that took
  • the edge from her banter and made him suddenly malleable to her will.
  • "All right, then: that's a go. Will you come tomorrow? Tomorrow at three
  • o'clock, at the end of the Mall. I'll be there sharp, remember; you won't
  • go back on me, Lily?"
  • But to Miss Bart's relief the repetition of her promise was cut short by
  • the opening of the box door to admit George Dorset.
  • Trenor sulkily yielded his place, and Lily turned a brilliant smile on
  • the newcomer. She had not talked with Dorset since their visit at
  • Bellomont, but something in his look and manner told her that he recalled
  • the friendly footing on which they had last met. He was not a man to whom
  • the expression of admiration came easily: his long sallow face and
  • distrustful eyes seemed always barricaded against the expansive emotions.
  • But, where her own influence was concerned, Lily's intuitions sent out
  • thread-like feelers, and as she made room for him on the narrow sofa she
  • was sure he found a dumb pleasure in being near her. Few women took the
  • trouble to make themselves agreeable to Dorset, and Lily had been kind to
  • him at Bellomont, and was now smiling on him with a divine renewal of
  • kindness.
  • "Well, here we are, in for another six months of caterwauling," he began
  • complainingly. "Not a shade of difference between this year and last,
  • except that the women have got new clothes and the singers haven't got
  • new voices. My wife's musical, you know--puts me through a course of this
  • every winter. It isn't so bad on Italian nights--then she comes late, and
  • there's time to digest. But when they give Wagner we have to rush
  • dinner, and I pay up for it. And the draughts are damnable--asphyxia in
  • front and pleurisy in the back. There's Trenor leaving the box without
  • drawing the curtain! With a hide like that draughts don't make any
  • difference. Did you ever watch Trenor eat? If you did, you'd wonder why
  • he's alive; I suppose he's leather inside too.--But I came to say that my
  • wife wants you to come down to our place next Sunday. Do for heaven's
  • sake say yes. She's got a lot of bores coming--intellectual ones, I mean;
  • that's her new line, you know, and I'm not sure it ain't worse than the
  • music. Some of 'em have long hair, and they start an argument with the
  • soup, and don't notice when things are handed to them. The consequence is
  • the dinner gets cold, and I have dyspepsia. That silly ass Silverton
  • brings them to the house--he writes poetry, you know, and Bertha and he
  • are getting tremendously thick. She could write better than any of 'em if
  • she chose, and I don't blame her for wanting clever fellows about; all I
  • say is: 'Don't let me see 'em eat!'"
  • The gist of this strange communication gave Lily a distinct thrill of
  • pleasure. Under ordinary circumstances, there would have been nothing
  • surprising in an invitation from Bertha Dorset; but since the Bellomont
  • episode an unavowed hostility had kept the two women apart. Now, with a
  • start of inner wonder, Lily felt that her thirst for retaliation had died
  • out. IF YOU WOULD FORGIVE YOUR ENEMY, says the Malay proverb, FIRST
  • INFLICT A HURT ON HIM; and Lily was experiencing the truth of the
  • apothegm. If she had destroyed Mrs. Dorset's letters, she might have
  • continued to hate her; but the fact that they remained in her possession
  • had fed her resentment to satiety.
  • She uttered a smiling acceptance, hailing in the renewal of the tie an
  • escape from Trenor's importunities.
  • Chapter 11
  • Meanwhile the holidays had gone by and the season was beginning. Fifth
  • Avenue had become a nightly torrent of carriages surging upward to the
  • fashionable quarters about the Park, where illuminated windows and
  • outspread awnings betokened the usual routine of hospitality. Other
  • tributary currents crossed the mainstream, bearing their freight to the
  • theatres, restaurants or opera; and Mrs. Peniston, from the secluded
  • watch-tower of her upper window, could tell to a nicety just when the
  • chronic volume of sound was increased by the sudden influx setting toward
  • a Van Osburgh ball, or when the multiplication of wheels meant merely
  • that the opera was over, or that there was a big supper at Sherry's.
  • Mrs. Peniston followed the rise and culmination of the season as keenly
  • as the most active sharer in its gaieties; and, as a looker-on, she
  • enjoyed opportunities of comparison and generalization such as those who
  • take part must proverbially forego. No one could have kept a more
  • accurate record of social fluctuations, or have put a more unerring
  • finger on the distinguishing features of each season: its dulness, its
  • extravagance, its lack of balls or excess of divorces. She had a special
  • memory for the vicissitudes of the "new people" who rose to the surface
  • with each recurring tide, and were either submerged beneath its rush or
  • landed triumphantly beyond the reach of envious breakers; and she was apt
  • to display a remarkable retrospective insight into their ultimate fate,
  • so that, when they had fulfilled their destiny, she was almost always
  • able to say to Grace Stepney--the recipient of her prophecies--that she
  • had known exactly what would happen.
  • This particular season Mrs. Peniston would have characterized as that in
  • which everybody "felt poor" except the Welly Brys and Mr. Simon Rosedale.
  • It had been a bad autumn in Wall Street, where prices fell in accordance
  • with that peculiar law which proves railway stocks and bales of cotton to
  • be more sensitive to the allotment of executive power than many estimable
  • citizens trained to all the advantages of self-government. Even fortunes
  • supposed to be independent of the market either betrayed a secret
  • dependence on it, or suffered from a sympathetic affection: fashion
  • sulked in its country houses, or came to town incognito, general
  • entertainments were discountenanced, and informality and short dinners
  • became the fashion.
  • But society, amused for a while at playing Cinderella, soon wearied of
  • the hearthside role, and welcomed the Fairy Godmother in the shape of any
  • magician powerful enough to turn the shrunken pumpkin back again into the
  • golden coach. The mere fact of growing richer at a time when most
  • people's investments are shrinking, is calculated to attract envious
  • attention; and according to Wall Street rumours, Welly Bry and Rosedale
  • had found the secret of performing this miracle.
  • Rosedale, in particular, was said to have doubled his fortune, and there
  • was talk of his buying the newly-finished house of one of the victims of
  • the crash, who, in the space of twelve short months, had made the same
  • number of millions, built a house in Fifth Avenue, filled a
  • picture-gallery with old masters, entertained all New York in it, and
  • been smuggled out of the country between a trained nurse and a doctor,
  • while his creditors mounted guard over the old masters, and his guests
  • explained to each other that they had dined with him only because they
  • wanted to see the pictures. Mr. Rosedale meant to have a less meteoric
  • career. He knew he should have to go slowly, and the instincts of his
  • race fitted him to suffer rebuffs and put up with delays. But he was
  • prompt to perceive that the general dulness of the season afforded him an
  • unusual opportunity to shine, and he set about with patient industry to
  • form a background for his growing glory. Mrs. Fisher was of immense
  • service to him at this period. She had set off so many newcomers on the
  • social stage that she was like one of those pieces of stock scenery which
  • tell the experienced spectator exactly what is going to take place. But
  • Mr. Rosedale wanted, in the long run, a more individual environment. He
  • was sensitive to shades of difference which Miss Bart would never have
  • credited him with perceiving, because he had no corresponding variations
  • of manner; and it was becoming more and more clear to him that Miss Bart
  • herself possessed precisely the complementary qualities needed to round
  • off his social personality.
  • Such details did not fall within the range of Mrs. Peniston's vision.
  • Like many minds of panoramic sweep, hers was apt to overlook the MINUTIAE
  • of the foreground, and she was much more likely to know where Carry
  • Fisher had found the Welly Brys' CHEF for them, than what was happening
  • to her own niece. She was not, however, without purveyors of information
  • ready to supplement her deficiencies. Grace Stepney's mind was like a
  • kind of moral fly-paper, to which the buzzing items of gossip were drawn
  • by a fatal attraction, and where they hung fast in the toils of an
  • inexorable memory. Lily would have been surprised to know how many
  • trivial facts concerning herself were lodged in Miss Stepney's head. She
  • was quite aware that she was of interest to dingy people, but she assumed
  • that there is only one form of dinginess, and that admiration for
  • brilliancy is the natural expression of its inferior state. She knew that
  • Gerty Farish admired her blindly, and therefore supposed that she
  • inspired the same sentiments in Grace Stepney, whom she classified as a
  • Gerty Farish without the saving traits of youth and enthusiasm.
  • In reality, the two differed from each other as much as they differed
  • from the object of their mutual contemplation. Miss Farish's heart was a
  • fountain of tender illusions, Miss Stepney's a precise register of facts
  • as manifested in their relation to herself. She had sensibilities which,
  • to Lily, would have seemed comic in a person with a freckled nose and red
  • eyelids, who lived in a boarding-house and admired Mrs. Peniston's
  • drawing-room; but poor Grace's limitations gave them a more concentrated
  • inner life, as poor soil starves certain plants into intenser
  • efflorescence. She had in truth no abstract propensity to malice: she did
  • not dislike Lily because the latter was brilliant and predominant, but
  • because she thought that Lily disliked her. It is less mortifying to
  • believe one's self unpopular than insignificant, and vanity prefers to
  • assume that indifference is a latent form of unfriendliness. Even such
  • scant civilities as Lily accorded to Mr. Rosedale would have made Miss
  • Stepney her friend for life; but how could she foresee that such a friend
  • was worth cultivating? How, moreover, can a young woman who has never
  • been ignored measure the pang which this injury inflicts? And, lastly,
  • how could Lily, accustomed to choose between a pressure of engagements,
  • guess that she had mortally offended Miss Stepney by causing her to be
  • excluded from one of Mrs. Peniston's infrequent dinner-parties?
  • Mrs. Peniston disliked giving dinners, but she had a high sense of family
  • obligation, and on the Jack Stepneys' return from their honeymoon she
  • felt it incumbent upon her to light the drawing-room lamps and extract
  • her best silver from the Safe Deposit vaults. Mrs. Peniston's rare
  • entertainments were preceded by days of heart-rending vacillation as to
  • every detail of the feast, from the seating of the guests to the pattern
  • of the table-cloth, and in the course of one of these preliminary
  • discussions she had imprudently suggested to her cousin Grace that, as
  • the dinner was a family affair, she might be included in it. For a week
  • the prospect had lighted up Miss Stepney's colourless existence; then she
  • had been given to understand that it would be more convenient to have her
  • another day. Miss Stepney knew exactly what had happened. Lily, to whom
  • family reunions were occasions of unalloyed dulness, had persuaded her
  • aunt that a dinner of "smart" people would be much more to the taste of
  • the young couple, and Mrs. Peniston, who leaned helplessly on her niece
  • in social matters, had been prevailed upon to pronounce Grace's exile.
  • After all, Grace could come any other day; why should she mind being put
  • off?
  • It was precisely because Miss Stepney could come any other day--and
  • because she knew her relations were in the secret of her unoccupied
  • evenings--that this incident loomed gigantically on her horizon. She was
  • aware that she had Lily to thank for it; and dull resentment was turned
  • to active animosity.
  • Mrs. Peniston, on whom she had looked in a day or two after the dinner,
  • laid down her crochet-work and turned abruptly from her oblique survey of
  • Fifth Avenue.
  • "Gus Trenor?--Lily and Gus Trenor?" she said, growing so suddenly pale
  • that her visitor was almost alarmed.
  • "Oh, cousin Julia . . . of course I don't mean . . ."
  • "I don't know what you DO mean," said Mrs. Peniston, with a frightened
  • quiver in her small fretful voice. "Such things were never heard of in my
  • day. And my own niece! I'm not sure I understand you. Do people say he's
  • in love with her?"
  • Mrs. Peniston's horror was genuine. Though she boasted an unequalled
  • familiarity with the secret chronicles of society, she had the innocence
  • of the school-girl who regards wickedness as a part of "history," and to
  • whom it never occurs that the scandals she reads of in lesson-hours may
  • be repeating themselves in the next street. Mrs. Peniston had kept her
  • imagination shrouded, like the drawing-room furniture. She knew, of
  • course, that society was "very much changed," and that many women her
  • mother would have thought "peculiar" were now in a position to be
  • critical about their visiting-lists; she had discussed the perils of
  • divorce with her rector, and had felt thankful at times that Lily was
  • still unmarried; but the idea that any scandal could attach to a young
  • girl's name, above all that it could be lightly coupled with that of a
  • married man, was so new to her that she was as much aghast as if she had
  • been accused of leaving her carpets down all summer, or of violating any
  • of the other cardinal laws of housekeeping.
  • Miss Stepney, when her first fright had subsided, began to feel the
  • superiority that greater breadth of mind confers. It was really pitiable
  • to be as ignorant of the world as Mrs. Peniston! She smiled at the
  • latter's question. "People always say unpleasant things--and certainly
  • they're a great deal together. A friend of mine met them the other
  • afternoon in the Park--quite late, after the lamps were lit. It's a pity
  • Lily makes herself so conspicuous."
  • "CONSPICUOUS!" gasped Mrs. Peniston. She bent forward, lowering her voice
  • to mitigate the horror. "What sort of things do they say? That he means
  • to get a divorce and marry her?"
  • Grace Stepney laughed outright. "Dear me, no! He would hardly do that.
  • It--it's a flirtation--nothing more."
  • "A flirtation? Between my niece and a married man? Do you mean to tell me
  • that, with Lily's looks and advantages, she could find no better use for
  • her time than to waste it on a fat stupid man almost old enough to be her
  • father?" This argument had such a convincing ring that it gave Mrs.
  • Peniston sufficient reassurance to pick up her work, while she waited for
  • Grace Stepney to rally her scattered forces.
  • But Miss Stepney was on the spot in an instant. "That's the worst of
  • it--people say she isn't wasting her time! Every one knows, as you say,
  • that Lily is too handsome and--and charming--to devote herself to a man
  • like Gus Trenor unless--"
  • "Unless?" echoed Mrs. Peniston. Her visitor drew breath nervously. It was
  • agreeable to shock Mrs. Peniston, but not to shock her to the verge of
  • anger. Miss Stepney was not sufficiently familiar with the classic drama
  • to have recalled in advance how bearers of bad tidings are proverbially
  • received, but she now had a rapid vision of forfeited dinners and a
  • reduced wardrobe as the possible consequence of her disinterestedness. To
  • the honour of her sex, however, hatred of Lily prevailed over more
  • personal considerations. Mrs. Peniston had chosen the wrong moment to
  • boast of her niece's charms.
  • "Unless," said Grace, leaning forward to speak with low-toned emphasis,
  • "unless there are material advantages to be gained by making herself
  • agreeable to him."
  • She felt that the moment was tremendous, and remembered suddenly that
  • Mrs. Peniston's black brocade, with the cut jet fringe, would have been
  • hers at the end of the season.
  • Mrs. Peniston put down her work again. Another aspect of the same idea
  • had presented itself to her, and she felt that it was beneath her dignity
  • to have her nerves racked by a dependent relative who wore her old
  • clothes.
  • "If you take pleasure in annoying me by mysterious insinuations," she
  • said coldly, "you might at least have chosen a more suitable time than
  • just as I am recovering from the strain of giving a large dinner."
  • The mention of the dinner dispelled Miss Stepney's last scruples. "I
  • don't know why I should be accused of taking pleasure in telling you
  • about Lily. I was sure I shouldn't get any thanks for it," she returned
  • with a flare of temper. "But I have some family feeling left, and as you
  • are the only person who has any authority over Lily, I thought you ought
  • to know what is being said of her."
  • "Well," said Mrs. Peniston, "what I complain of is that you haven't told
  • me yet what IS being said."
  • "I didn't suppose I should have to put it so plainly. People say that Gus
  • Trenor pays her bills."
  • "Pays her bills--her bills?" Mrs. Peniston broke into a laugh. "I can't
  • imagine where you can have picked up such rubbish. Lily has her own
  • income--and I provide for her very handsomely--"
  • "Oh, we all know that," interposed Miss Stepney drily. "But Lily wears a
  • great many smart gowns--"
  • "I like her to be well-dressed--it's only suitable!"
  • "Certainly; but then there are her gambling debts besides."
  • Miss Stepney, in the beginning, had not meant to bring up this point; but
  • Mrs. Peniston had only her own incredulity to blame. She was like the
  • stiff-necked unbelievers of Scripture, who must be annihilated to be
  • convinced.
  • "Gambling debts? Lily?" Mrs. Peniston's voice shook with anger and
  • bewilderment. She wondered whether Grace Stepney had gone out of her
  • mind. "What do you mean by her gambling debts?"
  • "Simply that if one plays bridge for money in Lily's set one is liable to
  • lose a great deal--and I don't suppose Lily always wins."
  • "Who told you that my niece played cards for money?"
  • "Mercy, cousin Julia, don't look at me as if I were trying to turn you
  • against Lily! Everybody knows she is crazy about bridge. Mrs. Gryce told
  • me herself that it was her gambling that frightened Percy Gryce--it seems
  • he was really taken with her at first. But, of course, among Lily's
  • friends it's quite the custom for girls to play for money. In fact,
  • people are inclined to excuse her on that account----"
  • "To excuse her for what?"
  • "For being hard up--and accepting attentions from men like Gus
  • Trenor--and George Dorset----"
  • Mrs. Peniston gave another cry. "George Dorset? Is there any one else? I
  • should like to know the worst, if you please."
  • "Don't put it in that way, cousin Julia. Lately Lily has been a good deal
  • with the Dorsets, and he seems to admire her--but of course that's only
  • natural. And I'm sure there is no truth in the horrid things people say;
  • but she HAS been spending a great deal of money this winter. Evie Van
  • Osburgh was at Celeste's ordering her trousseau the other day--yes, the
  • marriage takes place next month--and she told me that Celeste showed her
  • the most exquisite things she was just sending home to Lily. And people
  • say that Judy Trenor has quarrelled with her on account of Gus; but I'm
  • sure I'm sorry I spoke, though I only meant it as a kindness."
  • Mrs. Peniston's genuine incredulity enabled her to dismiss Miss Stepney
  • with a disdain which boded ill for that lady's prospect of succeeding to
  • the black brocade; but minds impenetrable to reason have generally some
  • crack through which suspicion filters, and her visitor's insinuations did
  • not glide off as easily as she had expected. Mrs. Peniston disliked
  • scenes, and her determination to avoid them had always led her to hold
  • herself aloof from the details of Lily's life. In her youth, girls had
  • not been supposed to require close supervision. They were generally
  • assumed to be taken up with the legitimate business of courtship and
  • marriage, and interference in such affairs on the part of their natural
  • guardians was considered as unwarrantable as a spectator's suddenly
  • joining in a game. There had of course been "fast" girls even in Mrs.
  • Peniston's early experience; but their fastness, at worst, was understood
  • to be a mere excess of animal spirits, against which there could be no
  • graver charge than that of being "unladylike." The modern fastness
  • appeared synonymous with immorality, and the mere idea of immorality was
  • as offensive to Mrs. Peniston as a smell of cooking in the drawing-room:
  • it was one of the conceptions her mind refused to admit.
  • She had no immediate intention of repeating to Lily what she had heard,
  • or even of trying to ascertain its truth by means of discreet
  • interrogation. To do so might be to provoke a scene; and a scene, in the
  • shaken state of Mrs. Peniston's nerves, with the effects of her dinner
  • not worn off, and her mind still tremulous with new impressions, was a
  • risk she deemed it her duty to avoid. But there remained in her thoughts
  • a settled deposit of resentment against her niece, all the denser because
  • it was not to be cleared by explanation or discussion. It was horrible
  • of a young girl to let herself be talked about; however unfounded the
  • charges against her, she must be to blame for their having been made.
  • Mrs. Peniston felt as if there had been a contagious illness in the
  • house, and she was doomed to sit shivering among her contaminated
  • furniture.
  • Chapter 12
  • Miss Bart had in fact been treading a devious way, and none of her
  • critics could have been more alive to the fact than herself; but she had
  • a fatalistic sense of being drawn from one wrong turning to another,
  • without ever perceiving the right road till it was too late to take it.
  • Lily, who considered herself above narrow prejudices, had not imagined
  • that the fact of letting Gus Trenor make a little money for her would
  • ever disturb her self-complacency. And the fact in itself still seemed
  • harmless enough; only it was a fertile source of harmful complications.
  • As she exhausted the amusement of spending the money these complications
  • became more pressing, and Lily, whose mind could be severely logical in
  • tracing the causes of her ill-luck to others, justified herself by the
  • thought that she owed all her troubles to the enmity of Bertha Dorset.
  • This enmity, however, had apparently expired in a renewal of friendliness
  • between the two women. Lily's visit to the Dorsets had resulted, for
  • both, in the discovery that they could be of use to each other; and the
  • civilized instinct finds a subtler pleasure in making use of its
  • antagonist than in confounding him. Mrs. Dorset was, in fact, engaged in
  • a new sentimental experiment, of which Mrs. Fisher's late property, Ned
  • Silverton, was the rosy victim; and at such moments, as Judy Trenor had
  • once remarked, she felt a peculiar need of distracting her husband's
  • attention. Dorset was as difficult to amuse as a savage; but even his
  • self-engrossment was not proof against Lily's arts, or rather these were
  • especially adapted to soothe an uneasy egoism. Her experience with Percy
  • Gryce stood her in good stead in ministering to Dorset's humours, and if
  • the incentive to please was less urgent, the difficulties of her
  • situation were teaching her to make much of minor opportunities.
  • Intimacy with the Dorsets was not likely to lessen such difficulties on
  • the material side. Mrs. Dorset had none of Judy Trenor's lavish impulses,
  • and Dorset's admiration was not likely to express itself in financial
  • "tips," even had Lily cared to renew her experiences in that line. What
  • she required, for the moment, of the Dorsets' friendship, was simply its
  • social sanction. She knew that people were beginning to talk of her; but
  • this fact did not alarm her as it had alarmed Mrs. Peniston. In her set
  • such gossip was not unusual, and a handsome girl who flirted with a
  • married man was merely assumed to be pressing to the limit of her
  • opportunities. It was Trenor himself who frightened her. Their walk in
  • the Park had not been a success. Trenor had married young, and since his
  • marriage his intercourse with women had not taken the form of the
  • sentimental small-talk which doubles upon itself like the paths in a
  • maze. He was first puzzled and then irritated to find himself always led
  • back to the same starting-point, and Lily felt that she was gradually
  • losing control of the situation. Trenor was in truth in an unmanageable
  • mood. In spite of his understanding with Rosedale he had been somewhat
  • heavily "touched" by the fall in stocks; his household expenses weighed
  • on him, and he seemed to be meeting, on all sides, a sullen opposition to
  • his wishes, instead of the easy good luck he had hitherto encountered.
  • Mrs. Trenor was still at Bellomont, keeping the town-house open, and
  • descending on it now and then for a taste of the world, but preferring
  • the recurrent excitement of week-end parties to the restrictions of a
  • dull season. Since the holidays she had not urged Lily to return to
  • Bellomont, and the first time they met in town Lily fancied there was a
  • shade of coldness in her manner. Was it merely the expression of her
  • displeasure at Miss Bart's neglect, or had disquieting rumours reached
  • her? The latter contingency seemed improbable, yet Lily was not without a
  • sense of uneasiness. If her roaming sympathies had struck root anywhere,
  • it was in her friendship with Judy Trenor. She believed in the sincerity
  • of her friend's affection, though it sometimes showed itself in
  • self-interested ways, and she shrank with peculiar reluctance from any
  • risk of estranging it. But, aside from this, she was keenly conscious of
  • the way in which such an estrangement would react on herself. The fact
  • that Gus Trenor was Judy's husband was at times Lily's strongest reason
  • for disliking him, and for resenting the obligation under which he had
  • placed her. To set her doubts at rest, Miss Bart, soon after the New
  • Year, "proposed" herself for a week-end at Bellomont. She had learned in
  • advance that the presence of a large party would protect her from too
  • great assiduity on Trenor's part, and his wife's telegraphic "come by all
  • means" seemed to assure her of her usual welcome.
  • Judy received her amicably. The cares of a large party always prevailed
  • over personal feelings, and Lily saw no change in her hostess's manner.
  • Nevertheless, she was soon aware that the experiment of coming to
  • Bellomont was destined not to be successful. The party was made up of
  • what Mrs. Trenor called "poky people"--her generic name for persons who
  • did not play bridge--and, it being her habit to group all such
  • obstructionists in one class, she usually invited them together,
  • regardless of their other characteristics. The result was apt to be an
  • irreducible combination of persons having no other quality in common than
  • their abstinence from bridge, and the antagonisms developed in a group
  • lacking the one taste which might have amalgamated them, were in this
  • case aggravated by bad weather, and by the ill-concealed boredom of their
  • host and hostess. In such emergencies, Judy would usually have turned to
  • Lily to fuse the discordant elements; and Miss Bart, assuming that such a
  • service was expected of her, threw herself into it with her accustomed
  • zeal. But at the outset she perceived a subtle resistance to her efforts.
  • If Mrs. Trenor's manner toward her was unchanged, there was certainly a
  • faint coldness in that of the other ladies. An occasional caustic
  • allusion to "your friends the Wellington Brys," or to "the little Jew who
  • has bought the Greiner house--some one told us you knew him, Miss
  • Bart,"--showed Lily that she was in disfavour with that portion of
  • society which, while contributing least to its amusement, has assumed the
  • right to decide what forms that amusement shall take. The indication was
  • a slight one, and a year ago Lily would have smiled at it, trusting to
  • the charm of her personality to dispel any prejudice against her. But now
  • she had grown more sensitive to criticism and less confident in her power
  • of disarming it. She knew, moreover, that if the ladies at Bellomont
  • permitted themselves to criticize her friends openly, it was a proof that
  • they were not afraid of subjecting her to the same treatment behind her
  • back. The nervous dread lest anything in Trenor's manner should seem to
  • justify their disapproval made her seek every pretext for avoiding him,
  • and she left Bellomont conscious of having failed in every purpose which
  • had taken her there.
  • In town she returned to preoccupations which, for the moment, had the
  • happy effect of banishing troublesome thoughts. The Welly Brys, after
  • much debate, and anxious counsel with their newly acquired friends, had
  • decided on the bold move of giving a general entertainment. To attack
  • society collectively, when one's means of approach are limited to a few
  • acquaintances, is like advancing into a strange country with an
  • insufficient number of scouts; but such rash tactics have sometimes led
  • to brilliant victories, and the Brys had determined to put their fate to
  • the touch. Mrs. Fisher, to whom they had entrusted the conduct of the
  • affair, had decided that TABLEAUX VIVANTS and expensive music were the
  • two baits most likely to attract the desired prey, and after prolonged
  • negotiations, and the kind of wire-pulling in which she was known to
  • excel, she had induced a dozen fashionable women to exhibit themselves in
  • a series of pictures which, by a farther miracle of persuasion, the
  • distinguished portrait painter, Paul Morpeth, had been prevailed upon to
  • organize.
  • Lily was in her element on such occasions. Under Morpeth's guidance her
  • vivid plastic sense, hitherto nurtured on no higher food than
  • dress-making and upholstery, found eager expression in the disposal of
  • draperies, the study of attitudes, the shifting of lights and shadows.
  • Her dramatic instinct was roused by the choice of subjects, and the
  • gorgeous reproductions of historic dress stirred an imagination which
  • only visual impressions could reach. But keenest of all was the
  • exhilaration of displaying her own beauty under a new aspect: of showing
  • that her loveliness was no mere fixed quality, but an element shaping all
  • emotions to fresh forms of grace.
  • Mrs. Fisher's measures had been well-taken, and society, surprised in a
  • dull moment, succumbed to the temptation of Mrs. Bry's hospitality. The
  • protesting minority were forgotten in the throng which abjured and came;
  • and the audience was almost as brilliant as the show.
  • Lawrence Selden was among those who had yielded to the proffered
  • inducements. If he did not often act on the accepted social axiom that a
  • man may go where he pleases, it was because he had long since learned
  • that his pleasures were mainly to be found in a small group of the
  • like-minded. But he enjoyed spectacular effects, and was not insensible
  • to the part money plays in their production: all he asked was that the
  • very rich should live up to their calling as stage-managers, and not
  • spend their money in a dull way. This the Brys could certainly not be
  • charged with doing. Their recently built house, whatever it might lack as
  • a frame for domesticity, was almost as well-designed for the display of a
  • festal assemblage as one of those airy pleasure-halls which the Italian
  • architects improvised to set off the hospitality of princes. The air of
  • improvisation was in fact strikingly present: so recent, so
  • rapidly-evoked was the whole MISE-EN-SCENE that one had to touch the
  • marble columns to learn they were not of cardboard, to seat one's self in
  • one of the damask-and-gold arm-chairs to be sure it was not painted
  • against the wall.
  • Selden, who had put one of these seats to the test, found himself, from
  • an angle of the ball-room, surveying the scene with frank enjoyment. The
  • company, in obedience to the decorative instinct which calls for fine
  • clothes in fine surroundings, had dressed rather with an eye to Mrs.
  • Bry's background than to herself. The seated throng, filling the immense
  • room without undue crowding, presented a surface of rich tissues and
  • jewelled shoulders in harmony with the festooned and gilded walls, and
  • the flushed splendours of the Venetian ceiling. At the farther end of the
  • room a stage had been constructed behind a proscenium arch curtained with
  • folds of old damask; but in the pause before the parting of the folds
  • there was little thought of what they might reveal, for every woman who
  • had accepted Mrs. Bry's invitation was engaged in trying to find out how
  • many of her friends had done the same.
  • Gerty Farish, seated next to Selden, was lost in that indiscriminate and
  • uncritical enjoyment so irritating to Miss Bart's finer perceptions. It
  • may be that Selden's nearness had something to do with the quality of his
  • cousin's pleasure; but Miss Farish was so little accustomed to refer her
  • enjoyment of such scenes to her own share in them, that she was merely
  • conscious of a deeper sense of contentment.
  • "Wasn't it dear of Lily to get me an invitation? Of course it would never
  • have occurred to Carry Fisher to put me on the list, and I should have
  • been so sorry to miss seeing it all--and especially Lily herself. Some
  • one told me the ceiling was by Veronese--you would know, of course,
  • Lawrence. I suppose it's very beautiful, but his women are so dreadfully
  • fat. Goddesses? Well, I can only say that if they'd been mortals and had
  • to wear corsets, it would have been better for them. I think our women
  • are much handsomer. And this room is wonderfully becoming--every one
  • looks so well! Did you ever see such jewels? Do look at Mrs. George
  • Dorset's pearls--I suppose the smallest of them would pay the rent of our
  • Girls' Club for a year. Not that I ought to complain about the club;
  • every one has been so wonderfully kind. Did I tell you that Lily had
  • given us three hundred dollars? Wasn't it splendid of her? And then she
  • collected a lot of money from her friends--Mrs. Bry gave us five hundred,
  • and Mr. Rosedale a thousand. I wish Lily were not so nice to Mr.
  • Rosedale, but she says it's no use being rude to him, because he doesn't
  • see the difference. She really can't bear to hurt people's feelings--it
  • makes me so angry when I hear her called cold and conceited! The girls at
  • the club don't call her that. Do you know she has been there with me
  • twice?--yes, Lily! And you should have seen their eyes! One of them said
  • it was as good as a day in the country just to look at her. And she sat
  • there, and laughed and talked with them--not a bit as if she were being
  • CHARITABLE, you know, but as if she liked it as much as they did. They've
  • been asking ever since when she's coming back; and she's promised
  • me----oh!"
  • Miss Farish's confidences were cut short by the parting of the curtain on
  • the first TABLEAU--a group of nymphs dancing across flower-strewn sward
  • in the rhythmic postures of Botticelli's Spring. TABLEAUX VIVANTS depend
  • for their effect not only on the happy disposal of lights and the
  • delusive-interposition of layers of gauze, but on a corresponding
  • adjustment of the mental vision. To unfurnished minds they remain, in
  • spite of every enhancement of art, only a superior kind of wax-works; but
  • to the responsive fancy they may give magic glimpses of the boundary
  • world between fact and imagination. Selden's mind was of this order: he
  • could yield to vision-making influences as completely as a child to the
  • spell of a fairy-tale. Mrs. Bry's TABLEAUX wanted none of the qualities
  • which go to the producing of such illusions, and under Morpeth's
  • organizing hand the pictures succeeded each other with the rhythmic march
  • of some splendid frieze, in which the fugitive curves of living flesh and
  • the wandering light of young eyes have been subdued to plastic harmony
  • without losing the charm of life.
  • The scenes were taken from old pictures, and the participators had been
  • cleverly fitted with characters suited to their types. No one, for
  • instance, could have made a more typical Goya than Carry Fisher, with her
  • short dark-skinned face, the exaggerated glow of her eyes, the
  • provocation of her frankly-painted smile. A brilliant Miss Smedden from
  • Brooklyn showed to perfection the sumptuous curves of Titian's Daughter,
  • lifting her gold salver laden with grapes above the harmonizing gold of
  • rippled hair and rich brocade, and a young Mrs. Van Alstyne, who showed
  • the frailer Dutch type, with high blue-veined forehead and pale eyes and
  • lashes, made a characteristic Vandyck, in black satin, against a
  • curtained archway. Then there were Kauffmann nymphs garlanding the altar
  • of Love; a Veronese supper, all sheeny textures, pearl-woven heads and
  • marble architecture; and a Watteau group of lute-playing comedians,
  • lounging by a fountain in a sunlit glade.
  • Each evanescent picture touched the vision-building faculty in Selden,
  • leading him so far down the vistas of fancy that even Gerty Farish's
  • running commentary--"Oh, how lovely Lulu Melson looks!" or: "That must be
  • Kate Corby, to the right there, in purple"--did not break the spell of
  • the illusion. Indeed, so skilfully had the personality of the actors been
  • subdued to the scenes they figured in that even the least imaginative of
  • the audience must have felt a thrill of contrast when the curtain
  • suddenly parted on a picture which was simply and undisguisedly the
  • portrait of Miss Bart.
  • Here there could be no mistaking the predominance of personality--the
  • unanimous "Oh!" of the spectators was a tribute, not to the brush-work of
  • Reynolds's "Mrs. Lloyd" but to the flesh and blood loveliness of Lily
  • Bart. She had shown her artistic intelligence in selecting a type so like
  • her own that she could embody the person represented without ceasing to
  • be herself. It was as though she had stepped, not out of, but into,
  • Reynolds's canvas, banishing the phantom of his dead beauty by the beams
  • of her living grace. The impulse to show herself in a splendid
  • setting--she had thought for a moment of representing Tiepolo's
  • Cleopatra--had yielded to the truer instinct of trusting to her
  • unassisted beauty, and she had purposely chosen a picture without
  • distracting accessories of dress or surroundings. Her pale draperies,
  • and the background of foliage against which she stood, served only to
  • relieve the long dryad-like curves that swept upward from her poised foot
  • to her lifted arm. The noble buoyancy of her attitude, its suggestion of
  • soaring grace, revealed the touch of poetry in her beauty that Selden
  • always felt in her presence, yet lost the sense of when he was not with
  • her. Its expression was now so vivid that for the first time he seemed to
  • see before him the real Lily Bart, divested of the trivialities of her
  • little world, and catching for a moment a note of that eternal harmony of
  • which her beauty was a part.
  • "Deuced bold thing to show herself in that get-up; but, gad, there isn't
  • a break in the lines anywhere, and I suppose she wanted us to know it!"
  • These words, uttered by that experienced connoisseur, Mr. Ned Van
  • Alstyne, whose scented white moustache had brushed Selden's shoulder
  • whenever the parting of the curtains presented any exceptional
  • opportunity for the study of the female outline, affected their hearer in
  • an unexpected way. It was not the first time that Selden had heard Lily's
  • beauty lightly remarked on, and hitherto the tone of the comments had
  • imperceptibly coloured his view of her. But now it woke only a motion of
  • indignant contempt. This was the world she lived in, these were the
  • standards by which she was fated to be measured! Does one go to Caliban
  • for a judgment on Miranda?
  • In the long moment before the curtain fell, he had time to feel the whole
  • tragedy of her life. It was as though her beauty, thus detached from all
  • that cheapened and vulgarized it, had held out suppliant hands to him
  • from the world in which he and she had once met for a moment, and where
  • he felt an overmastering longing to be with her again.
  • He was roused by the pressure of ecstatic fingers. "Wasn't she too
  • beautiful, Lawrence? Don't you like her best in that simple dress? It
  • makes her look like the real Lily--the Lily I know."
  • He met Gerty Farish's brimming gaze. "The Lily we know," he corrected;
  • and his cousin, beaming at the implied understanding, exclaimed joyfully:
  • "I'll tell her that! She always says you dislike her."
  • The performance over, Selden's first impulse was to seek Miss Bart.
  • During the interlude of music which succeeded the TABLEAUX, the actors
  • had seated themselves here and there in the audience, diversifying its
  • conventional appearance by the varied picturesqueness of their dress.
  • Lily, however, was not among them, and her absence served to protract the
  • effect she had produced on Selden: it would have broken the spell to see
  • her too soon in the surroundings from which accident had so happily
  • detached her. They had not met since the day of the Van Osburgh wedding,
  • and on his side the avoidance had been intentional. Tonight, however, he
  • knew that, sooner or later, he should find himself at her side; and
  • though he let the dispersing crowd drift him whither it would, without
  • making an immediate effort to reach her, his procrastination was not due
  • to any lingering resistance, but to the desire to luxuriate a moment in
  • the sense of complete surrender.
  • Lily had not an instant's doubt as to the meaning of the murmur greeting
  • her appearance. No other tableau had been received with that precise note
  • of approval: it had obviously been called forth by herself, and not by
  • the picture she impersonated. She had feared at the last moment that she
  • was risking too much in dispensing with the advantages of a more
  • sumptuous setting, and the completeness of her triumph gave her an
  • intoxicating sense of recovered power. Not caring to diminish the
  • impression she had produced, she held herself aloof from the audience
  • till the movement of dispersal before supper, and thus had a second
  • opportunity of showing herself to advantage, as the throng poured slowly
  • into the empty drawing-room where she was standing.
  • She was soon the centre of a group which increased and renewed itself as
  • the circulation became general, and the individual comments on her
  • success were a delightful prolongation of the collective applause. At
  • such moments she lost something of her natural fastidiousness, and cared
  • less for the quality of the admiration received than for its quantity.
  • Differences of personality were merged in a warm atmosphere of praise, in
  • which her beauty expanded like a flower in sunlight; and if Selden had
  • approached a moment or two sooner he would have seen her turning on Ned
  • Van Alstyne and George Dorset the look he had dreamed of capturing for
  • himself.
  • Fortune willed, however, that the hurried approach of Mrs. Fisher, as
  • whose aide-de-camp Van Alstyne was acting, should break up the group
  • before Selden reached the threshold of the room. One or two of the men
  • wandered off in search of their partners for supper, and the others,
  • noticing Selden's approach, gave way to him in accordance with the tacit
  • freemasonry of the ball-room. Lily was therefore standing alone when he
  • reached her; and finding the expected look in her eye, he had the
  • satisfaction of supposing he had kindled it. The look did indeed deepen
  • as it rested on him, for even in that moment of self-intoxication Lily
  • felt the quicker beat of life that his nearness always produced. She
  • read, too, in his answering gaze the delicious confirmation of her
  • triumph, and for the moment it seemed to her that it was for him only she
  • cared to be beautiful.
  • Selden had given her his arm without speaking. She took it in silence,
  • and they moved away, not toward the supper-room, but against the tide
  • which was setting thither. The faces about her flowed by like the
  • streaming images of sleep: she hardly noticed where Selden was leading
  • her, till they passed through a glass doorway at the end of the long
  • suite of rooms and stood suddenly in the fragrant hush of a garden.
  • Gravel grated beneath their feet, and about them was the transparent
  • dimness of a midsummer night. Hanging lights made emerald caverns in the
  • depths of foliage, and whitened the spray of a fountain falling among
  • lilies. The magic place was deserted: there was no sound but the splash
  • of the water on the lily-pads, and a distant drift of music that might
  • have been blown across a sleeping lake.
  • Selden and Lily stood still, accepting the unreality of the scene as a
  • part of their own dream-like sensations. It would not have surprised them
  • to feel a summer breeze on their faces, or to see the lights among the
  • boughs reduplicated in the arch of a starry sky. The strange solitude
  • about them was no stranger than the sweetness of being alone in it
  • together. At length Lily withdrew her hand, and moved away a step, so
  • that her white-robed slimness was outlined against the dusk of the
  • branches. Selden followed her, and still without speaking they seated
  • themselves on a bench beside the fountain.
  • Suddenly she raised her eyes with the beseeching earnestness of a child.
  • "You never speak to me--you think hard things of me," she murmured.
  • "I think of you at any rate, God knows!" he said.
  • "Then why do we never see each other? Why can't we be friends? You
  • promised once to help me," she continued in the same tone, as though the
  • words were drawn from her unwillingly.
  • "The only way I can help you is by loving you," Selden said in a low
  • voice.
  • She made no reply, but her face turned to him with the soft motion of a
  • flower. His own met it slowly, and their lips touched. She drew back and
  • rose from her seat. Selden rose too, and they stood facing each other.
  • Suddenly she caught his hand and pressed it a moment against her cheek.
  • "Ah, love me, love me--but don't tell me so!" she sighed with her eyes in
  • his; and before he could speak she had turned and slipped through the
  • arch of boughs, disappearing in the brightness of the room beyond.
  • Selden stood where she had left him. He knew too well the transiency of
  • exquisite moments to attempt to follow her; but presently he reentered
  • the house and made his way through the deserted rooms to the door. A few
  • sumptuously-cloaked ladies were already gathered in the marble vestibule,
  • and in the coat-room he found Van Alstyne and Gus Trenor.
  • The former, at Selden's approach, paused in the careful selection of a
  • cigar from one of the silver boxes invitingly set out near the door.
  • "Hallo, Selden, going too? You're an Epicurean like myself, I see: you
  • don't want to see all those goddesses gobbling terrapin. Gad, what a
  • show of good-looking women; but not one of 'em could touch that little
  • cousin of mine. Talk of jewels--what's a woman want with jewels when
  • she's got herself to show? The trouble is that all these fal-bals they
  • wear cover up their figures when they've got 'em. I never knew till
  • tonight what an outline Lily has."
  • "It's not her fault if everybody don't know it now," growled Trenor,
  • flushed with the struggle of getting into his fur-lined coat. "Damned bad
  • taste, I call it--no, no cigar for me. You can't tell what you're smoking
  • in one of these new houses--likely as not the CHEF buys the cigars. Stay
  • for supper? Not if I know it! When people crowd their rooms so that you
  • can't get near any one you want to speak to, I'd as soon sup in the
  • elevated at the rush hour. My wife was dead right to stay away: she says
  • life's too short to spend it in breaking in new people."
  • Chapter 13
  • Lily woke from happy dreams to find two notes at her bedside.
  • One was from Mrs. Trenor, who announced that she was coming to town that
  • afternoon for a flying visit, and hoped Miss Bart would be able to dine
  • with her. The other was from Selden. He wrote briefly that an important
  • case called him to Albany, whence he would be unable to return till the
  • evening, and asked Lily to let him know at what hour on the following day
  • she would see him.
  • Lily, leaning back among her pillows, gazed musingly at his letter. The
  • scene in the Brys' conservatory had been like a part of her dreams; she
  • had not expected to wake to such evidence of its reality. Her first
  • movement was one of annoyance: this unforeseen act of Selden's added
  • another complication to life. It was so unlike him to yield to such an
  • irrational impulse! Did he really mean to ask her to marry him? She had
  • once shown him the impossibility of such a hope, and his subsequent
  • behaviour seemed to prove that he had accepted the situation with a
  • reasonableness somewhat mortifying to her vanity. It was all the more
  • agreeable to find that this reasonableness was maintained only at the
  • cost of not seeing her; but, though nothing in life was as sweet as the
  • sense of her power over him, she saw the danger of allowing the episode
  • of the previous night to have a sequel. Since she could not marry him, it
  • would be kinder to him, as well as easier for herself, to write a line
  • amicably evading his request to see her: he was not the man to mistake
  • such a hint, and when next they met it would be on their usual friendly
  • footing.
  • Lily sprang out of bed, and went straight to her desk. She wanted to
  • write at once, while she could trust to the strength of her resolve. She
  • was still languid from her brief sleep and the exhilaration of the
  • evening, and the sight of Selden's writing brought back the culminating
  • moment of her triumph: the moment when she had read in his eyes that no
  • philosophy was proof against her power. It would be pleasant to have that
  • sensation again . . . no one else could give it to her in its fulness;
  • and she could not bear to mar her mood of luxurious retrospection by an
  • act of definite refusal. She took up her pen and wrote hastily: "TOMORROW
  • AT FOUR;" murmuring to herself, as she slipped the sheet into its
  • envelope: "I can easily put him off when tomorrow comes."
  • Judy Trenor's summons was very welcome to Lily. It was the first time she
  • had received a direct communication from Bellomont since the close of her
  • last visit there, and she was still visited by the dread of having
  • incurred Judy's displeasure. But this characteristic command seemed to
  • reestablish their former relations; and Lily smiled at the thought that
  • her friend had probably summoned her in order to hear about the Brys'
  • entertainment. Mrs. Trenor had absented herself from the feast, perhaps
  • for the reason so frankly enunciated by her husband, perhaps because, as
  • Mrs. Fisher somewhat differently put it, she "couldn't bear new people
  • when she hadn't discovered them herself." At any rate, though she
  • remained haughtily at Bellomont, Lily suspected in her a devouring
  • eagerness to hear of what she had missed, and to learn exactly in what
  • measure Mrs. Wellington Bry had surpassed all previous competitors for
  • social recognition. Lily was quite ready to gratify this curiosity, but
  • it happened that she was dining out. She determined, however, to see Mrs.
  • Trenor for a few moments, and ringing for her maid she despatched a
  • telegram to say that she would be with her friend that evening at ten.
  • She was dining with Mrs. Fisher, who had gathered at an informal feast a
  • few of the performers of the previous evening. There was to be plantation
  • music in the studio after dinner--for Mrs. Fisher, despairing of the
  • republic, had taken up modelling, and annexed to her small crowded house
  • a spacious apartment, which, whatever its uses in her hours of plastic
  • inspiration, served at other times for the exercise of an indefatigable
  • hospitality. Lily was reluctant to leave, for the dinner was amusing, and
  • she would have liked to lounge over a cigarette and hear a few songs; but
  • she could not break her engagement with Judy, and shortly after ten she
  • asked her hostess to ring for a hansom, and drove up Fifth Avenue to the
  • Trenors'.
  • She waited long enough on the doorstep to wonder that Judy's presence in
  • town was not signalized by a greater promptness in admitting her; and her
  • surprise was increased when, instead of the expected footman, pushing his
  • shoulders into a tardy coat, a shabby care-taking person in calico let
  • her into the shrouded hall. Trenor, however, appeared at once on the
  • threshold of the drawing-room, welcoming her with unusual volubility
  • while he relieved her of her cloak and drew her into the room.
  • "Come along to the den; it's the only comfortable place in the house.
  • Doesn't this room look as if it was waiting for the body to be brought
  • down? Can't see why Judy keeps the house wrapped up in this awful
  • slippery white stuff--it's enough to give a fellow pneumonia to walk
  • through these rooms on a cold day. You look a little pinched yourself, by
  • the way: it's rather a sharp night out. I noticed it walking up from the
  • club. Come along, and I'll give you a nip of brandy, and you can toast
  • yourself over the fire and try some of my new Egyptians--that little
  • Turkish chap at the Embassy put me on to a brand that I want you to try,
  • and if you like 'em I'll get out a lot for you: they don't have 'em here
  • yet, but I'll cable."
  • He led her through the house to the large room at the back, where Mrs.
  • Trenor usually sat, and where, even in her absence, there was an air of
  • occupancy. Here, as usual, were flowers, newspapers, a littered
  • writing-table, and a general aspect of lamp-lit familiarity, so that it
  • was a surprise not to see Judy's energetic figure start up from the
  • arm-chair near the fire.
  • It was apparently Trenor himself who had been occupying the seat in
  • question, for it was overhung by a cloud of cigar smoke, and near it
  • stood one of those intricate folding tables which British ingenuity has
  • devised to facilitate the circulation of tobacco and spirits. The sight
  • of such appliances in a drawing-room was not unusual in Lily's set, where
  • smoking and drinking were unrestricted by considerations of time and
  • place, and her first movement was to help herself to one of the
  • cigarettes recommended by Trenor, while she checked his loquacity by
  • asking, with a surprised glance: "Where's Judy?"
  • Trenor, a little heated by his unusual flow of words, and perhaps by
  • prolonged propinquity with the decanters, was bending over the latter to
  • decipher their silver labels.
  • "Here, now, Lily, just a drop of cognac in a little fizzy water--you do
  • look pinched, you know: I swear the end of your nose is red. I'll take
  • another glass to keep you company--Judy?--Why, you see, Judy's got a
  • devil of a head ache--quite knocked out with it, poor thing--she asked me
  • to explain--make it all right, you know--Do come up to the fire, though;
  • you look dead-beat, really. Now do let me make you comfortable, there's a
  • good girl."
  • He had taken her hand, half-banteringly, and was drawing her toward a low
  • seat by the hearth; but she stopped and freed herself quietly.
  • "Do you mean to say that Judy's not well enough to see me? Doesn't she
  • want me to go upstairs?"
  • Trenor drained the glass he had filled for himself, and paused to set it
  • down before he answered.
  • "Why, no--the fact is, she's not up to seeing anybody. It came on
  • suddenly, you know, and she asked me to tell you how awfully sorry she
  • was--if she'd known where you were dining she'd have sent you word."
  • "She did know where I was dining; I mentioned it in my telegram. But it
  • doesn't matter, of course. I suppose if she's so poorly she won't go back
  • to Bellomont in the morning, and I can come and see her then."
  • "Yes: exactly--that's capital. I'll tell her you'll pop in tomorrow
  • morning. And now do sit down a minute, there's a dear, and let's have a
  • nice quiet jaw together. You won't take a drop, just for sociability?
  • Tell me what you think of that cigarette. Why, don't you like it? What
  • are you chucking it away for?"
  • "I am chucking it away because I must go, if you'll have the goodness to
  • call a cab for me," Lily returned with a smile.
  • She did not like Trenor's unusual excitability, with its too evident
  • explanation, and the thought of being alone with him, with her friend out
  • of reach upstairs, at the other end of the great empty house, did not
  • conduce to a desire to prolong their TETE-A-TETE.
  • But Trenor, with a promptness which did not escape her, had moved between
  • herself and the door.
  • "Why must you go, I should like to know? If Judy'd been here you'd have
  • sat gossiping till all hours--and you can't even give me five minutes!
  • It's always the same story. Last night I couldn't get near you--I went to
  • that damned vulgar party just to see you, and there was everybody talking
  • about you, and asking me if I'd ever seen anything so stunning, and when
  • I tried to come up and say a word, you never took any notice, but just
  • went on laughing and joking with a lot of asses who only wanted to be
  • able to swagger about afterward, and look knowing when you were
  • mentioned."
  • He paused, flushed by his diatribe, and fixing on her a look in which
  • resentment was the ingredient she least disliked. But she had regained
  • her presence of mind, and stood composedly in the middle of the room,
  • while her slight smile seemed to put an ever increasing distance between
  • herself and Trenor.
  • Across it she said: "Don't be absurd, Gus. It's past eleven, and I must
  • really ask you to ring for a cab."
  • He remained immovable, with the lowering forehead she had grown to detest.
  • "And supposing I won't ring for one--what'll you do then?"
  • "I shall go upstairs to Judy if you force me to disturb her."
  • Trenor drew a step nearer and laid his hand on her arm. "Look here, Lily:
  • won't you give me five minutes of your own accord?"
  • "Not tonight, Gus: you----"
  • "Very good, then: I'll take 'em. And as many more as I want." He had
  • squared himself on the threshold, his hands thrust deep in his pockets.
  • He nodded toward the chair on the hearth.
  • "Go and sit down there, please: I've got a word to say to you."
  • Lily's quick temper was getting the better of her fears. She drew herself
  • up and moved toward the door.
  • "If you have anything to say to me, you must say it another time. I
  • shall go up to Judy unless you call a cab for me at once."
  • He burst into a laugh. "Go upstairs and welcome, my dear; but you won't
  • find Judy. She ain't there."
  • Lily cast a startled look upon him. "Do you mean that Judy is not in the
  • house--not in town?" she exclaimed.
  • "That's just what I do mean," returned Trenor, his bluster sinking to
  • sullenness under her look.
  • "Nonsense--I don't believe you. I am going upstairs," she said
  • impatiently.
  • He drew unexpectedly aside, letting her reach the threshold unimpeded.
  • "Go up and welcome; but my wife is at Bellomont."
  • But Lily had a flash of reassurance. "If she hadn't come she would have
  • sent me word----"
  • "She did; she telephoned me this afternoon to let you know."
  • "I received no message."
  • "I didn't send any."
  • The two measured each other for a moment, but Lily still saw her opponent
  • through a blur of scorn that made all other considerations indistinct.
  • "I can't imagine your object in playing such a stupid trick on me; but if
  • you have fully gratified your peculiar sense of humour I must again ask
  • you to send for a cab."
  • It was the wrong note, and she knew it as she spoke. To be stung by irony
  • it is not necessary to understand it, and the angry streaks on Trenor's
  • face might have been raised by an actual lash.
  • "Look here, Lily, don't take that high and mighty tone with me." He had
  • again moved toward the door, and in her instinctive shrinking from him
  • she let him regain command of the threshold. "I DID play a trick on you;
  • I own up to it; but if you think I'm ashamed you're mistaken. Lord knows
  • I've been patient enough--I've hung round and looked like an ass. And
  • all the while you were letting a lot of other fellows make up to
  • you . . . letting 'em make fun of me, I daresay . . . I'm not sharp, and
  • can't dress my friends up to look funny, as you do . . . but I can tell
  • when it's being done to me . . . I can tell fast enough when I'm made a
  • fool of . . ."
  • "Ah, I shouldn't have thought that!" flashed from Lily; but her laugh
  • dropped to silence under his look.
  • "No; you wouldn't have thought it; but you'll know better now. That's
  • what you're here for tonight. I've been waiting for a quiet time to talk
  • things over, and now I've got it I mean to make you hear me out."
  • His first rush of inarticulate resentment had been followed by a
  • steadiness and concentration of tone more disconcerting to Lily than the
  • excitement preceding it. For a moment her presence of mind forsook her.
  • She had more than once been in situations where a quick sword-play of wit
  • had been needful to cover her retreat; but her frightened heart-throbs
  • told her that here such skill would not avail.
  • To gain time she repeated: "I don't understand what you want."
  • Trenor had pushed a chair between herself and the door. He threw himself
  • in it, and leaned back, looking up at her.
  • "I'll tell you what I want: I want to know just where you and I stand.
  • Hang it, the man who pays for the dinner is generally allowed to have a
  • seat at table."
  • She flamed with anger and abasement, and the sickening need of having to
  • conciliate where she longed to humble.
  • "I don't know what you mean--but you must see, Gus, that I can't stay
  • here talking to you at this hour----"
  • "Gad, you go to men's houses fast enough in broad day light--strikes me
  • you're not always so deuced careful of appearances."
  • The brutality of the thrust gave her the sense of dizziness that follows
  • on a physical blow. Rosedale had spoken then--this was the way men talked
  • of her--She felt suddenly weak and defenceless: there was a throb of
  • self-pity in her throat. But all the while another self was sharpening
  • her to vigilance, whispering the terrified warning that every word and
  • gesture must be measured.
  • "If you have brought me here to say insulting things----" she began.
  • Trenor laughed. "Don't talk stage-rot. I don't want to insult you. But a
  • man's got his feelings--and you've played with mine too long. I didn't
  • begin this business--kept out of the way, and left the track clear for
  • the other chaps, till you rummaged me out and set to work to make an ass
  • of me--and an easy job you had of it, too. That's the trouble--it was too
  • easy for you--you got reckless--thought you could turn me inside out, and
  • chuck me in the gutter like an empty purse. But, by gad, that ain't
  • playing fair: that's dodging the rules of the game. Of course I know now
  • what you wanted--it wasn't my beautiful eyes you were after--but I tell
  • you what, Miss Lily, you've got to pay up for making me think so----"
  • He rose, squaring his shoulders aggressively, and stepped toward her with
  • a reddening brow; but she held her footing, though every nerve tore at
  • her to retreat as he advanced.
  • "Pay up?" she faltered. "Do you mean that I owe you money?"
  • He laughed again. "Oh, I'm not asking for payment in kind. But there's
  • such a thing as fair play--and interest on one's money--and hang me if
  • I've had as much as a look from you----"
  • "Your money? What have I to do with your money? You advised me how to
  • invest mine . . . you must have seen I knew nothing of business . . .
  • you told me it was all right----"
  • "It WAS all right--it is, Lily: you're welcome to all of it, and ten
  • times more. I'm only asking for a word of thanks from you." He was closer
  • still, with a hand that grew formidable; and the frightened self in her
  • was dragging the other down.
  • "I HAVE thanked you; I've shown I was grateful. What more have you done
  • than any friend might do, or any one accept from a friend?"
  • Trenor caught her up with a sneer. "I don't doubt you've accepted as much
  • before--and chucked the other chaps as you'd like to chuck me. I don't
  • care how you settled your score with them--if you fooled 'em I'm that
  • much to the good. Don't stare at me like that--I know I'm not talking the
  • way a man is supposed to talk to a girl--but, hang it, if you don't like
  • it you can stop me quick enough--you know I'm mad about you--damn the
  • money, there's plenty more of it--if THAT bothers you . . . I was a
  • brute, Lily--Lily!--just look at me----"
  • Over and over her the sea of humiliation broke--wave crashing on wave so
  • close that the moral shame was one with the physical dread. It seemed to
  • her that self-esteem would have made her invulnerable--that it was her
  • own dishonour which put a fearful solitude about her.
  • His touch was a shock to her drowning consciousness. She drew back from
  • him with a desperate assumption of scorn.
  • "I've told you I don't understand--but if I owe you money you shall be
  • paid----"
  • Trenor's face darkened to rage: her recoil of abhorrence had called out
  • the primitive man.
  • "Ah--you'll borrow from Selden or Rosedale--and take your chances of
  • fooling them as you've fooled me! Unless--unless you've settled your
  • other scores already--and I'm the only one left out in the cold!"
  • She stood silent, frozen to her place. The words--the words were worse
  • than the touch! Her heart was beating all over her body--in her throat,
  • her limbs, her helpless useless hands. Her eyes travelled despairingly
  • about the room--they lit on the bell, and she remembered that help was in
  • call. Yes, but scandal with it--a hideous mustering of tongues. No, she
  • must fight her way out alone. It was enough that the servants knew her to
  • be in the house with Trenor--there must be nothing to excite conjecture
  • in her way of leaving it.
  • She raised her head, and achieved a last clear look at him.
  • "I am here alone with you," she said. "What more have you to say?"
  • To her surprise, Trenor answered the look with a speechless stare. With
  • his last gust of words the flame had died out, leaving him chill and
  • humbled. It was as though a cold air had dispersed the fumes of his
  • libations, and the situation loomed before him black and naked as the
  • ruins of a fire. Old habits, old restraints, the hand of inherited order,
  • plucked back the bewildered mind which passion had jolted from its ruts.
  • Trenor's eye had the haggard look of the sleep-walker waked on a deathly
  • ledge.
  • "Go home! Go away from here"----he stammered, and turning his back on her
  • walked toward the hearth.
  • The sharp release from her fears restored Lily to immediate lucidity.
  • The collapse of Trenor's will left her in control, and she heard herself,
  • in a voice that was her own yet outside herself, bidding him ring for the
  • servant, bidding him give the order for a hansom, directing him to put
  • her in it when it came. Whence the strength came to her she knew not; but
  • an insistent voice warned her that she must leave the house openly, and
  • nerved her, in the hall before the hovering care taker, to exchange light
  • words with Trenor, and charge him with the usual messages for Judy, while
  • all the while she shook with inward loathing. On the doorstep, with the
  • street before her, she felt a mad throb of liberation, intoxicating as
  • the prisoner's first draught of free air; but the clearness of brain
  • continued, and she noted the mute aspect of Fifth Avenue, guessed at the
  • lateness of the hour, and even observed a man's figure--was there
  • something half-familiar in its outline?--which, as she entered the
  • hansom, turned from the opposite corner and vanished in the obscurity of
  • the side street.
  • But with the turn of the wheels reaction came, and shuddering darkness
  • closed on her. "I can't think--I can't think," she moaned, and leaned her
  • head against the rattling side of the cab. She seemed a stranger to
  • herself, or rather there were two selves in her, the one she had always
  • known, and a new abhorrent being to which it found itself chained. She
  • had once picked up, in a house where she was staying, a translation of
  • the EUMENIDES, and her imagination had been seized by the high terror of
  • the scene where Orestes, in the cave of the oracle, finds his implacable
  • huntresses asleep, and snatches an hour's repose. Yes, the Furies might
  • sometimes sleep, but they were there, always there in the dark corners,
  • and now they were awake and the iron clang of their wings was in her
  • brain . . . She opened her eyes and saw the streets passing--the familiar
  • alien streets. All she looked on was the same and yet changed. There was
  • a great gulf fixed between today and yesterday. Everything in the past
  • seemed simple, natural, full of daylight--and she was alone in a place of
  • darkness and pollution.--Alone! It was the loneliness that frightened
  • her. Her eyes fell on an illuminated clock at a street corner, and she
  • saw that the hands marked the half hour after eleven. Only half-past
  • eleven--there were hours and hours left of the night! And she must spend
  • them alone, shuddering sleepless on her bed. Her soft nature recoiled
  • from this ordeal, which had none of the stimulus of conflict to goad her
  • through it. Oh, the slow cold drip of the minutes on her head! She had a
  • vision of herself lying on the black walnut bed--and the darkness would
  • frighten her, and if she left the light burning the dreary details of the
  • room would brand themselves forever on her brain. She had always hated
  • her room at Mrs. Peniston's--its ugliness, its impersonality, the fact
  • that nothing in it was really hers. To a torn heart uncomforted by human
  • nearness a room may open almost human arms, and the being to whom no four
  • walls mean more than any others, is, at such hours, expatriate everywhere.
  • Lily had no heart to lean on. Her relation with her aunt was as
  • superficial as that of chance lodgers who pass on the stairs. But even
  • had the two been in closer contact, it was impossible to think of Mrs.
  • Peniston's mind as offering shelter or comprehension to such misery as
  • Lily's. As the pain that can be told is but half a pain, so the pity that
  • questions has little healing in its touch. What Lily craved was the
  • darkness made by enfolding arms, the silence which is not solitude, but
  • compassion holding its breath.
  • She started up and looked forth on the passing streets. Gerty!--they
  • were nearing Gerty's corner. If only she could reach there before this
  • labouring anguish burst from her breast to her lips--if only she could
  • feel the hold of Gerty's arms while she shook in the ague-fit of fear
  • that was coming upon her! She pushed up the door in the roof and called
  • the address to the driver. It was not so late--Gerty might still be
  • waking. And even if she were not, the sound of the bell would penetrate
  • every recess of her tiny apartment, and rouse her to answer her friend's
  • call.
  • Chapter 14
  • Gerty Farish, the morning after the Wellington Brys' entertainment, woke
  • from dreams as happy as Lily's. If they were less vivid in hue, more
  • subdued to the half-tints of her personality and her experience, they
  • were for that very reason better suited to her mental vision. Such
  • flashes of joy as Lily moved in would have blinded Miss Farish, who was
  • accustomed, in the way of happiness, to such scant light as shone through
  • the cracks of other people's lives.
  • Now she was the centre of a little illumination of her own: a mild but
  • unmistakable beam, compounded of Lawrence Selden's growing kindness to
  • herself and the discovery that he extended his liking to Lily Bart. If
  • these two factors seem incompatible to the student of feminine
  • psychology, it must be remembered that Gerty had always been a parasite
  • in the moral order, living on the crumbs of other tables, and content to
  • look through the window at the banquet spread for her friends. Now that
  • she was enjoying a little private feast of her own, it would have seemed
  • incredibly selfish not to lay a plate for a friend; and there was no one
  • with whom she would rather have shared her enjoyment than Miss Bart.
  • As to the nature of Selden's growing kindness, Gerty would no more have
  • dared to define it than she would have tried to learn a butterfly's
  • colours by knocking the dust from its wings. To seize on the wonder would
  • be to brush off its bloom, and perhaps see it fade and stiffen in her
  • hand: better the sense of beauty palpitating out of reach, while she held
  • her breath and watched where it would alight. Yet Selden's manner at the
  • Brys' had brought the flutter of wings so close that they seemed to be
  • beating in her own heart. She had never seen him so alert, so responsive,
  • so attentive to what she had to say. His habitual manner had an
  • absent-minded kindliness which she accepted, and was grateful for, as the
  • liveliest sentiment her presence was likely to inspire; but she was quick
  • to feel in him a change implying that for once she could give pleasure as
  • well as receive it.
  • And it was so delightful that this higher degree of sympathy should be
  • reached through their interest in Lily Bart!
  • Gerty's affection for her friend--a sentiment that had learned to keep
  • itself alive on the scantiest diet--had grown to active adoration since
  • Lily's restless curiosity had drawn her into the circle of Miss Farish's
  • work. Lily's taste of beneficence had wakened in her a momentary appetite
  • for well-doing. Her visit to the Girls' Club had first brought her in
  • contact with the dramatic contrasts of life. She had always accepted with
  • philosophic calm the fact that such existences as hers were pedestalled
  • on foundations of obscure humanity. The dreary limbo of dinginess lay all
  • around and beneath that little illuminated circle in which life reached
  • its finest efflorescence, as the mud and sleet of a winter night enclose
  • a hot-house filled with tropical flowers. All this was in the natural
  • order of things, and the orchid basking in its artificially created
  • atmosphere could round the delicate curves of its petals undisturbed by
  • the ice on the panes.
  • But it is one thing to live comfortably with the abstract conception of
  • poverty, another to be brought in contact with its human embodiments.
  • Lily had never conceived of these victims of fate otherwise than in the
  • mass. That the mass was composed of individual lives, innumerable
  • separate centres of sensation, with her own eager reachings for pleasure,
  • her own fierce revulsions from pain--that some of these bundles of
  • feeling were clothed in shapes not so unlike her own, with eyes meant to
  • look on gladness, and young lips shaped for love--this discovery gave
  • Lily one of those sudden shocks of pity that sometimes decentralize a
  • life. Lily's nature was incapable of such renewal: she could feel other
  • demands only through her own, and no pain was long vivid which did not
  • press on an answering nerve. But for the moment she was drawn out of
  • herself by the interest of her direct relation with a world so unlike her
  • own. She had supplemented her first gift by personal assistance to one or
  • two of Miss Farish's most appealing subjects, and the admiration and
  • interest her presence excited among the tired workers at the club
  • ministered in a new form to her insatiable desire to please.
  • Gerty Farish was not a close enough reader of character to disentangle
  • the mixed threads of which Lily's philanthropy was woven. She supposed
  • her beautiful friend to be actuated by the same motive as herself--that
  • sharpening of the moral vision which makes all human suffering so near
  • and insistent that the other aspects of life fade into remoteness. Gerty
  • lived by such simple formulas that she did not hesitate to class her
  • friend's state with the emotional "change of heart" to which her dealings
  • with the poor had accustomed her; and she rejoiced in the thought that
  • she had been the humble instrument of this renewal. Now she had an answer
  • to all criticisms of Lily's conduct: as she had said, she knew "the real
  • Lily," and the discovery that Selden shared her knowledge raised her
  • placid acceptance of life to a dazzled sense of its possibilities--a
  • sense farther enlarged, in the course of the afternoon, by the receipt of
  • a telegram from Selden asking if he might dine with her that evening.
  • While Gerty was lost in the happy bustle which this announcement produced
  • in her small household, Selden was at one with her in thinking with
  • intensity of Lily Bart. The case which had called him to Albany was not
  • complicated enough to absorb all his attention, and he had the
  • professional faculty of keeping a part of his mind free when its services
  • were not needed. This part--which at the moment seemed dangerously like
  • the whole--was filled to the brim with the sensations of the previous
  • evening. Selden understood the symptoms: he recognized the fact that he
  • was paying up, as there had always been a chance of his having to pay up,
  • for the voluntary exclusions of his past. He had meant to keep free from
  • permanent ties, not from any poverty of feeling, but because, in a
  • different way, he was, as much as Lily, the victim of his environment.
  • There had been a germ of truth in his declaration to Gerty Farish that he
  • had never wanted to marry a "nice" girl: the adjective connoting, in his
  • cousin's vocabulary, certain utilitarian qualities which are apt to
  • preclude the luxury of charm. Now it had been Selden's fate to have a
  • charming mother: her graceful portrait, all smiles and Cashmere, still
  • emitted a faded scent of the undefinable quality. His father was the kind
  • of man who delights in a charming woman: who quotes her, stimulates her,
  • and keeps her perennially charming. Neither one of the couple cared for
  • money, but their disdain of it took the form of always spending a little
  • more than was prudent. If their house was shabby, it was exquisitely
  • kept; if there were good books on the shelves there were also good dishes
  • on the table. Selden senior had an eye for a picture, his wife an
  • understanding of old lace; and both were so conscious of restraint and
  • discrimination in buying that they never quite knew how it was that the
  • bills mounted up.
  • Though many of Selden's friends would have called his parents poor, he
  • had grown up in an atmosphere where restricted means were felt only as a
  • check on aimless profusion: where the few possessions were so good that
  • their rarity gave them a merited relief, and abstinence was combined with
  • elegance in a way exemplified by Mrs. Selden's knack of wearing her old
  • velvet as if it were new. A man has the advantage of being delivered
  • early from the home point of view, and before Selden left college he had
  • learned that there are as many different ways of going without money as
  • of spending it. Unfortunately, he found no way as agreeable as that
  • practised at home; and his views of womankind in especial were tinged by
  • the remembrance of the one woman who had given him his sense of "values."
  • It was from her that he inherited his detachment from the sumptuary side
  • of life: the stoic's carelessness of material things, combined with the
  • Epicurean's pleasure in them. Life shorn of either feeling appeared to
  • him a diminished thing; and nowhere was the blending of the two
  • ingredients so essential as in the character of a pretty woman.
  • It had always seemed to Selden that experience offered a great deal
  • besides the sentimental adventure, yet he could vividly conceive of a
  • love which should broaden and deepen till it became the central fact of
  • life. What he could not accept, in his own case, was the makeshift
  • alternative of a relation that should be less than this: that should
  • leave some portions of his nature unsatisfied, while it put an undue
  • strain on others. He would not, in other words, yield to the growth of an
  • affection which might appeal to pity yet leave the understanding
  • untouched: sympathy should no more delude him than a trick of the eyes,
  • the grace of helplessness than a curve of the cheek.
  • But now--that little BUT passed like a sponge over all his vows. His
  • reasoned-out resistances seemed for the moment so much less important
  • than the question as to when Lily would receive his note! He yielded
  • himself to the charm of trivial preoccupations, wondering at what hour
  • her reply would be sent, with what words it would begin. As to its import
  • he had no doubt--he was as sure of her surrender as of his own. And so
  • he had leisure to muse on all its exquisite details, as a hard worker, on
  • a holiday morning, might lie still and watch the beam of light travel
  • gradually across his room. But if the new light dazzled, it did not blind
  • him. He could still discern the outline of facts, though his own relation
  • to them had changed. He was no less conscious than before of what was
  • said of Lily Bart, but he could separate the woman he knew from the
  • vulgar estimate of her. His mind turned to Gerty Farish's words, and the
  • wisdom of the world seemed a groping thing beside the insight of
  • innocence. BLESSED ARE THE PURE IN HEART, FOR THEY SHALL SEE GOD--even
  • the hidden god in their neighbour's breast! Selden was in the state of
  • impassioned self-absorption that the first surrender to love produces.
  • His craving was for the companionship of one whose point of view should
  • justify his own, who should confirm, by deliberate observation, the truth
  • to which his intuitions had leaped. He could not wait for the midday
  • recess, but seized a moment's leisure in court to scribble his telegram
  • to Gerty Farish.
  • Reaching town, he was driven direct to his club, where he hoped a note
  • from Miss Bart might await him. But his box contained only a line of
  • rapturous assent from Gerty, and he was turning away disappointed when he
  • was hailed by a voice from the smoking room.
  • "Hallo, Lawrence! Dining here? Take a bite with me--I've ordered a
  • canvas-back."
  • He discovered Trenor, in his day clothes, sitting, with a tall glass at
  • his elbow, behind the folds of a sporting journal.
  • Selden thanked him, but pleaded an engagement.
  • "Hang it, I believe every man in town has an engagement tonight. I shall
  • have the club to myself. You know how I'm living this winter, rattling
  • round in that empty house. My wife meant to come to town today, but she's
  • put it off again, and how is a fellow to dine alone in a room with the
  • looking-glasses covered, and nothing but a bottle of Harvey sauce on the
  • side-board? I say, Lawrence, chuck your engagement and take pity on
  • me--it gives me the blue devils to dine alone, and there's nobody but
  • that canting ass Wetherall in the club."
  • "Sorry, Gus--I can't do it."
  • As Selden turned away, he noticed the dark flush on Trenor's face, the
  • unpleasant moisture of his intensely white forehead, the way his jewelled
  • rings were wedged in the creases of his fat red fingers. Certainly the
  • beast was predominating--the beast at the bottom of the glass. And he had
  • heard this man's name coupled with Lily's! Bah--the thought sickened him;
  • all the way back to his rooms he was haunted by the sight of Trenor's fat
  • creased hands----
  • On his table lay the note: Lily had sent it to his rooms. He knew what
  • was in it before he broke the seal--a grey seal with BEYOND! beneath a
  • flying ship. Ah, he would take her beyond--beyond the ugliness, the
  • pettiness, the attrition and corrosion of the soul----
  • Gerty's little sitting-room sparkled with welcome when Selden entered it.
  • Its modest "effects," compact of enamel paint and ingenuity, spoke to him
  • in the language just then sweetest to his ear. It is surprising how
  • little narrow walls and a low ceiling matter, when the roof of the soul
  • has suddenly been raised. Gerty sparkled too; or at least shone with a
  • tempered radiance. He had never before noticed that she had
  • "points"--really, some good fellow might do worse . . . Over the little
  • dinner (and here, again, the effects were wonderful) he told her she
  • ought to marry--he was in a mood to pair off the whole world. She had
  • made the caramel custard with her own hands? It was sinful to keep such
  • gifts to herself. He reflected with a throb of pride that Lily could trim
  • her own hats--she had told him so the day of their walk at Bellomont.
  • He did not speak of Lily till after dinner. During the little repast he
  • kept the talk on his hostess, who, fluttered at being the centre of
  • observation, shone as rosy as the candle-shades she had manufactured for
  • the occasion. Selden evinced an extraordinary interest in her household
  • arrangements: complimented her on the ingenuity with which she had
  • utilized every inch of her small quarters, asked how her servant managed
  • about afternoons out, learned that one may improvise delicious dinners in
  • a chafing-dish, and uttered thoughtful generalizations on the burden of a
  • large establishment.
  • When they were in the sitting-room again, where they fitted as snugly as
  • bits in a puzzle, and she had brewed the coffee, and poured it into her
  • grandmother's egg-shell cups, his eye, as he leaned back, basking in the
  • warm fragrance, lighted on a recent photograph of Miss Bart, and the
  • desired transition was effected without an effort. The photograph was
  • well enough--but to catch her as she had looked last night! Gerty agreed
  • with him--never had she been so radiant. But could photography capture
  • that light? There had been a new look in her face--something different;
  • yes, Selden agreed there had been something different. The coffee was so
  • exquisite that he asked for a second cup: such a contrast to the watery
  • stuff at the club! Ah, your poor bachelor with his impersonal club fare,
  • alternating with the equally impersonal CUISINE of the dinner-party! A
  • man who lived in lodgings missed the best part of life--he pictured the
  • flavourless solitude of Trenor's repast, and felt a moment's compassion
  • for the man . . . But to return to Lily--and again and again he returned,
  • questioning, conjecturing, leading Gerty on, draining her inmost thoughts
  • of their stored tenderness for her friend.
  • At first she poured herself out unstintingly, happy in this perfect
  • communion of their sympathies. His understanding of Lily helped to
  • confirm her own belief in her friend. They dwelt together on the fact
  • that Lily had had no chance. Gerty instanced her generous impulses--her
  • restlessness and discontent. The fact that her life had never satisfied
  • her proved that she was made for better things. She might have married
  • more than once--the conventional rich marriage which she had been taught
  • to consider the sole end of existence--but when the opportunity came she
  • had always shrunk from it. Percy Gryce, for instance, had been in love
  • with her--every one at Bellomont had supposed them to be engaged, and her
  • dismissal of him was thought inexplicable. This view of the Gryce
  • incident chimed too well with Selden's mood not to be instantly adopted
  • by him, with a flash of retrospective contempt for what had once seemed
  • the obvious solution. If rejection there had been--and he wondered now
  • that he had ever doubted it!--then he held the key to the secret, and the
  • hillsides of Bellomont were lit up, not with sunset, but with dawn. It
  • was he who had wavered and disowned the face of opportunity--and the joy
  • now warming his breast might have been a familiar inmate if he had
  • captured it in its first flight.
  • It was at this point, perhaps, that a joy just trying its wings in
  • Gerty's heart dropped to earth and lay still. She sat facing Selden,
  • repeating mechanically: "No, she has never been understood----" and all
  • the while she herself seemed to be sitting in the centre of a great glare
  • of comprehension. The little confidential room, where a moment ago their
  • thoughts had touched elbows like their chairs, grew to unfriendly
  • vastness, separating her from Selden by all the length of her new vision
  • of the future--and that future stretched out interminably, with her
  • lonely figure toiling down it, a mere speck on the solitude.
  • "She is herself with a few people only; and you are one of them," she
  • heard Selden saying. And again: "Be good to her, Gerty, won't you?" and:
  • "She has it in her to become whatever she is believed to be--you'll help
  • her by believing the best of her?"
  • The words beat on Gerty's brain like the sound of a language which has
  • seemed familiar at a distance, but on approaching is found to be
  • unintelligible. He had come to talk to her of Lily--that was all! There
  • had been a third at the feast she had spread for him, and that third had
  • taken her own place. She tried to follow what he was saying, to cling to
  • her own part in the talk--but it was all as meaningless as the boom of
  • waves in a drowning head, and she felt, as the drowning may feel, that to
  • sink would be nothing beside the pain of struggling to keep up.
  • Selden rose, and she drew a deep breath, feeling that soon she could
  • yield to the blessed waves.
  • "Mrs. Fisher's? You say she was dining there? There's music afterward; I
  • believe I had a card from her." He glanced at the foolish pink-faced
  • clock that was drumming out this hideous hour. "A quarter past ten? I
  • might look in there now; the Fisher evenings are amusing. I haven't kept
  • you up too late, Gerty? You look tired--I've rambled on and bored you."
  • And in the unwonted overflow of his feelings, he left a cousinly kiss
  • upon her cheek.
  • At Mrs. Fisher's, through the cigar-smoke of the studio, a dozen voices
  • greeted Selden. A song was pending as he entered, and he dropped into a
  • seat near his hostess, his eyes roaming in search of Miss Bart. But she
  • was not there, and the discovery gave him a pang out of all proportion to
  • its seriousness; since the note in his breast-pocket assured him that at
  • four the next day they would meet. To his impatience it seemed
  • immeasurably long to wait, and half-ashamed of the impulse, he leaned to
  • Mrs. Fisher to ask, as the music ceased, if Miss Bart had not dined with
  • her.
  • "Lily? She's just gone. She had to run off, I forget where. Wasn't she
  • wonderful last night?"
  • "Who's that? Lily?" asked Jack Stepney, from the depths of a neighbouring
  • arm-chair. "Really, you know, I'm no prude, but when it comes to a girl
  • standing there as if she was up at auction--I thought seriously of
  • speaking to cousin Julia."
  • "You didn't know Jack had become our social censor?" Mrs. Fisher said to
  • Selden with a laugh; and Stepney spluttered, amid the general derision:
  • "But she's a cousin, hang it, and when a man's married--TOWN TALK was
  • full of her this morning."
  • "Yes: lively reading that was," said Mr. Ned Van Alstyne, stroking his
  • moustache to hide the smile behind it. "Buy the dirty sheet? No, of
  • course not; some fellow showed it to me--but I'd heard the stories
  • before. When a girl's as good-looking as that she'd better marry; then no
  • questions are asked. In our imperfectly organized society there is no
  • provision as yet for the young woman who claims the privileges of
  • marriage without assuming its obligations."
  • "Well, I understand Lily is about to assume them in the shape of Mr.
  • Rosedale," Mrs. Fisher said with a laugh.
  • "Rosedale--good heavens!" exclaimed Van Alstyne, dropping his eye-glass.
  • "Stepney, that's your fault for foisting the brute on us."
  • "Oh, confound it, you know, we don't MARRY Rosedale in our family,"
  • Stepney languidly protested; but his wife, who sat in oppressive bridal
  • finery at the other side of the room, quelled him with the judicial
  • reflection: "In Lily's circumstances it's a mistake to have too high a
  • standard."
  • "I hear even Rosedale has been scared by the talk lately," Mrs. Fisher
  • rejoined; "but the sight of her last night sent him off his head. What do
  • you think he said to me after her TABLEAU? 'My God, Mrs. Fisher, if I
  • could get Paul Morpeth to paint her like that, the picture'd appreciate a
  • hundred per cent in ten years.'"
  • "By Jove,--but isn't she about somewhere?" exclaimed Van Alstyne,
  • restoring his glass with an uneasy glance.
  • "No; she ran off while you were all mixing the punch down stairs. Where
  • was she going, by the way? What's on tonight? I hadn't heard of anything."
  • "Oh, not a party, I think," said an inexperienced young Farish who had
  • arrived late. "I put her in her cab as I was coming in, and she gave the
  • driver the Trenors' address."
  • "The Trenors'?" exclaimed Mrs. Jack Stepney. "Why, the house is
  • closed--Judy telephoned me from Bellomont this evening."
  • "Did she? That's queer. I'm sure I'm not mistaken. Well, come now,
  • Trenor's there, anyhow--I--oh, well--the fact is, I've no head for
  • numbers," he broke off, admonished by the nudge of an adjoining foot, and
  • the smile that circled the room.
  • In its unpleasant light Selden had risen and was shaking hands with his
  • hostess. The air of the place stifled him, and he wondered why he had
  • stayed in it so long.
  • On the doorstep he stood still, remembering a phrase of Lily's: "It seems
  • to me you spend a good deal of time in the element you disapprove of."
  • Well--what had brought him there but the quest of her? It was her
  • element, not his. But he would lift her out of it, take her beyond! That
  • BEYOND! on her letter was like a cry for rescue. He knew that Perseus's
  • task is not done when he has loosed Andromeda's chains, for her limbs are
  • numb with bondage, and she cannot rise and walk, but clings to him with
  • dragging arms as he beats back to land with his burden. Well, he had
  • strength for both--it was her weakness which had put the strength in him.
  • It was not, alas, a clean rush of waves they had to win through, but a
  • clogging morass of old associations and habits, and for the moment its
  • vapours were in his throat. But he would see clearer, breathe freer in
  • her presence: she was at once the dead weight at his breast and the spar
  • which should float them to safety. He smiled at the whirl of metaphor
  • with which he was trying to build up a defence against the influences of
  • the last hour. It was pitiable that he, who knew the mixed motives on
  • which social judgments depend, should still feel himself so swayed by
  • them. How could he lift Lily to a freer vision of life, if his own view
  • of her was to be coloured by any mind in which he saw her reflected?
  • The moral oppression had produced a physical craving for air, and he
  • strode on, opening his lungs to the reverberating coldness of the night.
  • At the corner of Fifth Avenue Van Alstyne hailed him with an offer of
  • company.
  • "Walking? A good thing to blow the smoke out of one's head. Now that
  • women have taken to tobacco we live in a bath of nicotine. It would be a
  • curious thing to study the effect of cigarettes on the relation of the
  • sexes. Smoke is almost as great a solvent as divorce: both tend to
  • obscure the moral issue."
  • Nothing could have been less consonant with Selden's mood than Van
  • Alstyne's after-dinner aphorisms, but as long as the latter confined
  • himself to generalities his listener's nerves were in control. Happily
  • Van Alstyne prided himself on his summing up of social aspects, and with
  • Selden for audience was eager to show the sureness of his touch. Mrs.
  • Fisher lived in an East side street near the Park, and as the two men
  • walked down Fifth Avenue the new architectural developments of that
  • versatile thoroughfare invited Van Alstyne's comment.
  • "That Greiner house, now--a typical rung in the social ladder! The man
  • who built it came from a MILIEU where all the dishes are put on the table
  • at once. His facade is a complete architectural meal; if he had omitted a
  • style his friends might have thought the money had given out. Not a bad
  • purchase for Rosedale, though: attracts attention, and awes the Western
  • sight-seer. By and bye he'll get out of that phase, and want something
  • that the crowd will pass and the few pause before. Especially if he
  • marries my clever cousin----"
  • Selden dashed in with the query: "And the Wellington Brys'? Rather
  • clever of its kind, don't you think?"
  • They were just beneath the wide white facade, with its rich restraint of
  • line, which suggested the clever corseting of a redundant figure.
  • "That's the next stage: the desire to imply that one has been to Europe,
  • and has a standard. I'm sure Mrs. Bry thinks her house a copy of the
  • TRIANON; in America every marble house with gilt furniture is thought to
  • be a copy of the TRIANON. What a clever chap that architect is,
  • though--how he takes his client's measure! He has put the whole of Mrs.
  • Bry in his use of the composite order. Now for the Trenors, you remember,
  • he chose the Corinthian: exuberant, but based on the best precedent. The
  • Trenor house is one of his best things--doesn't look like a
  • banqueting-hall turned inside out. I hear Mrs. Trenor wants to build out
  • a new ball-room, and that divergence from Gus on that point keeps her at
  • Bellomont. The dimensions of the Brys' ball-room must rankle: you may be
  • sure she knows 'em as well as if she'd been there last night with a
  • yard-measure. Who said she was in town, by the way? That Farish boy? She
  • isn't, I know; Mrs. Stepney was right; the house is dark, you see: I
  • suppose Gus lives in the back."
  • He had halted opposite the Trenors' corner, and Selden perforce stayed
  • his steps also. The house loomed obscure and uninhabited; only an oblong
  • gleam above the door spoke of provisional occupancy.
  • "They've bought the house at the back: it gives them a hundred and fifty
  • feet in the side street. There's where the ball-room's to be, with a
  • gallery connecting it: billiard-room and so on above. I suggested
  • changing the entrance, and carrying the drawing-room across the whole
  • Fifth Avenue front; you see the front door corresponds with the
  • windows----"
  • The walking-stick which Van Alstyne swung in demonstration dropped to a
  • startled "Hallo!" as the door opened and two figures were seen
  • silhouetted against the hall-light. At the same moment a hansom halted at
  • the curb-stone, and one of the figures floated down to it in a haze of
  • evening draperies; while the other, black and bulky, remained
  • persistently projected against the light.
  • For an immeasurable second the two spectators of the incident were
  • silent; then the house-door closed, the hansom rolled off, and the whole
  • scene slipped by as if with the turn of a stereopticon.
  • Van Alstyne dropped his eye-glass with a low whistle.
  • "A--hem--nothing of this, eh, Selden? As one of the family, I know I may
  • count on you--appearances are deceptive--and Fifth Avenue is so
  • imperfectly lighted----"
  • "Goodnight," said Selden, turning sharply down the side street without
  • seeing the other's extended hand.
  • Alone with her cousin's kiss, Gerty stared upon her thoughts. He had
  • kissed her before--but not with another woman on his lips. If he had
  • spared her that she could have drowned quietly, welcoming the dark flood
  • as it submerged her. But now the flood was shot through with glory, and
  • it was harder to drown at sunrise than in darkness. Gerty hid her face
  • from the light, but it pierced to the crannies of her soul. She had been
  • so contented, life had seemed so simple and sufficient--why had he come
  • to trouble her with new hopes? And Lily--Lily, her best friend!
  • Woman-like, she accused the woman. Perhaps, had it not been for Lily,
  • her fond imagining might have become truth. Selden had always liked
  • her--had understood and sympathized with the modest independence of her
  • life. He, who had the reputation of weighing all things in the nice
  • balance of fastidious perceptions, had been uncritical and simple in his
  • view of her: his cleverness had never overawed her because she had felt
  • at home in his heart. And now she was thrust out, and the door barred
  • against her by Lily's hand! Lily, for whose admission there she herself
  • had pleaded! The situation was lighted up by a dreary flash of irony. She
  • knew Selden--she saw how the force of her faith in Lily must have helped
  • to dispel his hesitations. She remembered, too, how Lily had talked of
  • him--she saw herself bringing the two together, making them known to each
  • other. On Selden's part, no doubt, the wound inflicted was inconscient;
  • he had never guessed her foolish secret; but Lily--Lily must have known!
  • When, in such matters, are a woman's perceptions at fault? And if she
  • knew, then she had deliberately despoiled her friend, and in mere
  • wantonness of power, since, even to Gerty's suddenly flaming jealousy, it
  • seemed incredible that Lily should wish to be Selden's wife. Lily might
  • be incapable of marrying for money, but she was equally incapable of
  • living without it, and Selden's eager investigations into the small
  • economies of house-keeping made him appear to Gerty as tragically duped
  • as herself.
  • She remained long in her sitting-room, where the embers were crumbling to
  • cold grey, and the lamp paled under its gay shade. Just beneath it stood
  • the photograph of Lily Bart, looking out imperially on the cheap
  • gimcracks, the cramped furniture of the little room. Could Selden picture
  • her in such an interior? Gerty felt the poverty, the insignificance of
  • her surroundings: she beheld her life as it must appear to Lily. And the
  • cruelty of Lily's judgments smote upon her memory. She saw that she had
  • dressed her idol with attributes of her own making. When had Lily ever
  • really felt, or pitied, or understood? All she wanted was the taste of
  • new experiences: she seemed like some cruel creature experimenting in a
  • laboratory.
  • The pink-faced clock drummed out another hour, and Gerty rose with a
  • start. She had an appointment early the next morning with a district
  • visitor on the East side. She put out her lamp, covered the fire, and
  • went into her bedroom to undress. In the little glass above her
  • dressing-table she saw her face reflected against the shadows of the
  • room, and tears blotted the reflection. What right had she to dream the
  • dreams of loveliness? A dull face invited a dull fate. She cried quietly
  • as she undressed, laying aside her clothes with her habitual precision,
  • setting everything in order for the next day, when the old life must be
  • taken up as though there had been no break in its routine. Her servant
  • did not come till eight o'clock, and she prepared her own tea-tray and
  • placed it beside the bed. Then she locked the door of the flat,
  • extinguished her light and lay down. But on her bed sleep would not
  • come, and she lay face to face with the fact that she hated Lily Bart. It
  • closed with her in the darkness like some formless evil to be blindly
  • grappled with. Reason, judgment, renunciation, all the sane daylight
  • forces, were beaten back in the sharp struggle for self-preservation. She
  • wanted happiness--wanted it as fiercely and unscrupulously as Lily did,
  • but without Lily's power of obtaining it. And in her conscious impotence
  • she lay shivering, and hated her friend----
  • A ring at the door-bell caught her to her feet. She struck a light and
  • stood startled, listening. For a moment her heart beat incoherently, then
  • she felt the sobering touch of fact, and remembered that such calls were
  • not unknown in her charitable work. She flung on her dressing-gown to
  • answer the summons, and unlocking her door, confronted the shining vision
  • of Lily Bart.
  • Gerty's first movement was one of revulsion. She shrank back as though
  • Lily's presence flashed too sudden a light upon her misery. Then she
  • heard her name in a cry, had a glimpse of her friend's face, and felt
  • herself caught and clung to.
  • "Lily--what is it?" she exclaimed.
  • Miss Bart released her, and stood breathing brokenly, like one who has
  • gained shelter after a long flight.
  • "I was so cold--I couldn't go home. Have you a fire?"
  • Gerty's compassionate instincts, responding to the swift call of habit,
  • swept aside all her reluctances. Lily was simply some one who needed
  • help--for what reason, there was no time to pause and conjecture:
  • disciplined sympathy checked the wonder on Gerty's lips, and made her
  • draw her friend silently into the sitting-room and seat her by the
  • darkened hearth.
  • "There is kindling wood here: the fire will burn in a minute."
  • She knelt down, and the flame leapt under her rapid hands. It flashed
  • strangely through the tears which still blurred her eyes, and smote on
  • the white ruin of Lily's face. The girls looked at each other in silence;
  • then Lily repeated: "I couldn't go home."
  • "No--no--you came here, dear! You're cold and tired--sit quiet, and I'll
  • make you some tea."
  • Gerty had unconsciously adopted the soothing note of her trade: all
  • personal feeling was merged in the sense of ministry, and experience had
  • taught her that the bleeding must be stayed before the wound is probed.
  • Lily sat quiet, leaning to the fire: the clatter of cups behind her
  • soothed her as familiar noises hush a child whom silence has kept
  • wakeful. But when Gerty stood at her side with the tea she pushed it
  • away, and turned an estranged eye on the familiar room.
  • "I came here because I couldn't bear to be alone," she said.
  • Gerty set down the cup and knelt beside her.
  • "Lily! Something has happened--can't you tell me?"
  • "I couldn't bear to lie awake in my room till morning. I hate my room at
  • Aunt Julia's--so I came here----"
  • She stirred suddenly, broke from her apathy, and clung to Gerty in a
  • fresh burst of fear.
  • "Oh, Gerty, the furies . . . you know the noise of their wings--alone, at
  • night, in the dark? But you don't know--there is nothing to make the dark
  • dreadful to you----"
  • The words, flashing back on Gerty's last hours, struck from her a faint
  • derisive murmur; but Lily, in the blaze of her own misery, was blinded to
  • everything outside it.
  • "You'll let me stay? I shan't mind when daylight comes--Is it late? Is
  • the night nearly over? It must be awful to be sleepless--everything
  • stands by the bed and stares----"
  • Miss Farish caught her straying hands. "Lily, look at me! Something has
  • happened--an accident? You have been frightened--what has frightened you?
  • Tell me if you can--a word or two--so that I can help you."
  • Lily shook her head.
  • "I am not frightened: that's not the word. Can you imagine looking into
  • your glass some morning and seeing a disfigurement--some hideous change
  • that has come to you while you slept? Well, I seem to myself like that--I
  • can't bear to see myself in my own thoughts--I hate ugliness, you
  • know--I've always turned from it--but I can't explain to you--you
  • wouldn't understand."
  • She lifted her head and her eyes fell on the clock.
  • "How long the night is! And I know I shan't sleep tomorrow. Some one told
  • me my father used to lie sleepless and think of horrors. And he was not
  • wicked, only unfortunate--and I see now how he must have suffered, lying
  • alone with his thoughts! But I am bad--a bad girl--all my thoughts are
  • bad--I have always had bad people about me. Is that any excuse? I thought
  • I could manage my own life--I was proud--proud! but now I'm on their
  • level----"
  • Sobs shook her, and she bowed to them like a tree in a dry storm.
  • Gerty knelt beside her, waiting, with the patience born of experience,
  • till this gust of misery should loosen fresh speech. She had first
  • imagined some physical shock, some peril of the crowded streets, since
  • Lily was presumably on her way home from Carry Fisher's; but she now saw
  • that other nerve-centres were smitten, and her mind trembled back from
  • conjecture.
  • Lily's sobs ceased, and she lifted her head.
  • "There are bad girls in your slums. Tell me--do they ever pick themselves
  • up? Ever forget, and feel as they did before?"
  • "Lily! you mustn't speak so--you're dreaming."
  • "Don't they always go from bad to worse? There's no turning back--your
  • old self rejects you, and shuts you out."
  • She rose, stretching her arms as if in utter physical weariness. "Go to
  • bed, dear! You work hard and get up early. I'll watch here by the fire,
  • and you'll leave the light, and your door open. All I want is to feel
  • that you are near me." She laid both hands on Gerty's shoulders, with a
  • smile that was like sunrise on a sea strewn with wreckage.
  • "I can't leave you, Lily. Come and lie on my bed. Your hands are
  • frozen--you must undress and be made warm." Gerty paused with sudden
  • compunction. "But Mrs. Peniston--it's past midnight! What will she think?"
  • "She goes to bed. I have a latch-key. It doesn't matter--I can't go back
  • there."
  • "There's no need to: you shall stay here. But you must tell me where you
  • have been. Listen, Lily--it will help you to speak!" She regained Miss
  • Bart's hands, and pressed them against her. "Try to tell me--it will
  • clear your poor head. Listen--you were dining at Carry Fisher's." Gerty
  • paused and added with a flash of heroism: "Lawrence Selden went from here
  • to find you."
  • At the word, Lily's face melted from locked anguish to the open misery of
  • a child. Her lips trembled and her gaze widened with tears.
  • "He went to find me? And I missed him! Oh, Gerty, he tried to help me.
  • He told me--he warned me long ago--he foresaw that I should grow hateful
  • to myself!"
  • The name, as Gerty saw with a clutch at the heart, had loosened the
  • springs of self-pity in her friend's dry breast, and tear by tear Lily
  • poured out the measure of her anguish. She had dropped sideways in
  • Gerty's big arm-chair, her head buried where lately Selden's had leaned,
  • in a beauty of abandonment that drove home to Gerty's aching senses the
  • inevitableness of her own defeat. Ah, it needed no deliberate purpose on
  • Lily's part to rob her of her dream! To look on that prone loveliness was
  • to see in it a natural force, to recognize that love and power belong to
  • such as Lily, as renunciation and service are the lot of those they
  • despoil. But if Selden's infatuation seemed a fatal necessity, the effect
  • that his name produced shook Gerty's steadfastness with a last pang. Men
  • pass through such superhuman loves and outlive them: they are the
  • probation subduing the heart to human joys. How gladly Gerty would have
  • welcomed the ministry of healing: how willingly have soothed the sufferer
  • back to tolerance of life! But Lily's self-betrayal took this last hope
  • from her. The mortal maid on the shore is helpless against the siren who
  • loves her prey: such victims are floated back dead from their adventure.
  • Lily sprang up and caught her with strong hands. "Gerty, you know
  • him--you understand him--tell me; if I went to him, if I told him
  • everything--if I said: 'I am bad through and through--I want admiration,
  • I want excitement, I want money--' yes, MONEY! That's my shame,
  • Gerty--and it's known, it's said of me--it's what men think of me--If I
  • said it all to him--told him the whole story--said plainly: 'I've sunk
  • lower than the lowest, for I've taken what they take, and not paid as
  • they pay'--oh, Gerty, you know him, you can speak for him: if I told him
  • everything would he loathe me? Or would he pity me, and understand me,
  • and save me from loathing myself?"
  • Gerty stood cold and passive. She knew the hour of her probation had
  • come, and her poor heart beat wildly against its destiny. As a dark river
  • sweeps by under a lightning flash, she saw her chance of happiness surge
  • past under a flash of temptation. What prevented her from saying: "He is
  • like other men?" She was not so sure of him, after all! But to do so
  • would have been like blaspheming her love. She could not put him before
  • herself in any light but the noblest: she must trust him to the height of
  • her own passion.
  • "Yes: I know him; he will help you," she said; and in a moment Lily's
  • passion was weeping itself out against her breast.
  • There was but one bed in the little flat, and the two girls lay down on
  • it side by side when Gerty had unlaced Lily's dress and persuaded her to
  • put her lips to the warm tea. The light extinguished, they lay still in
  • the darkness, Gerty shrinking to the outer edge of the narrow couch to
  • avoid contact with her bed-fellow. Knowing that Lily disliked to be
  • caressed, she had long ago learned to check her demonstrative impulses
  • toward her friend. But tonight every fibre in her body shrank from Lily's
  • nearness: it was torture to listen to her breathing, and feel the sheet
  • stir with it. As Lily turned, and settled to completer rest, a strand of
  • her hair swept Gerty's cheek with its fragrance. Everything about her was
  • warm and soft and scented: even the stains of her grief became her as
  • rain-drops do the beaten rose. But as Gerty lay with arms drawn down her
  • side, in the motionless narrowness of an effigy, she felt a stir of sobs
  • from the breathing warmth beside her, and Lily flung out her hand, groped
  • for her friend's, and held it fast.
  • "Hold me, Gerty, hold me, or I shall think of things," she moaned; and
  • Gerty silently slipped an arm under her, pillowing her head in its hollow
  • as a mother makes a nest for a tossing child. In the warm hollow Lily lay
  • still and her breathing grew low and regular. Her hand still clung to
  • Gerty's as if to ward off evil dreams, but the hold of her fingers
  • relaxed, her head sank deeper into its shelter, and Gerty felt that she
  • slept.
  • Chapter 15
  • When Lily woke she had the bed to herself, and the winter light was in
  • the room.
  • She sat up, bewildered by the strangeness of her surroundings; then
  • memory returned, and she looked about her with a shiver. In the cold
  • slant of light reflected from the back wall of a neighbouring building,
  • she saw her evening dress and opera cloak lying in a tawdry heap on a
  • chair. Finery laid off is as unappetizing as the remains of a feast, and
  • it occurred to Lily that, at home, her maid's vigilance had always spared
  • her the sight of such incongruities. Her body ached with fatigue, and
  • with the constriction of her attitude in Gerty's bed. All through her
  • troubled sleep she had been conscious of having no space to toss in, and
  • the long effort to remain motionless made her feel as if she had spent
  • her night in a train.
  • This sense of physical discomfort was the first to assert itself; then
  • she perceived, beneath it, a corresponding mental prostration, a languor
  • of horror more insufferable than the first rush of her disgust. The
  • thought of having to wake every morning with this weight on her breast
  • roused her tired mind to fresh effort. She must find some way out of the
  • slough into which she had stumbled: it was not so much compunction as the
  • dread of her morning thoughts that pressed on her the need of action. But
  • she was unutterably tired; it was weariness to think connectedly. She lay
  • back, looking about the poor slit of a room with a renewal of physical
  • distaste. The outer air, penned between high buildings, brought no
  • freshness through the window; steam-heat was beginning to sing in a coil
  • of dingy pipes, and a smell of cooking penetrated the crack of the door.
  • The door opened, and Gerty, dressed and hatted, entered with a cup of
  • tea. Her face looked sallow and swollen in the dreary light, and her dull
  • hair shaded imperceptibly into the tones of her skin.
  • She glanced shyly at Lily, asking in an embarrassed tone how she felt;
  • Lily answered with the same constraint, and raised herself up to drink
  • the tea.
  • "I must have been over-tired last night; I think I had a nervous attack
  • in the carriage," she said, as the drink brought clearness to her
  • sluggish thoughts.
  • "You were not well; I am so glad you came here," Gerty returned.
  • "But how am I to get home? And Aunt Julia--?"
  • "She knows; I telephoned early, and your maid has brought your things.
  • But won't you eat something? I scrambled the eggs myself."
  • Lily could not eat; but the tea strengthened her to rise and dress under
  • her maid's searching gaze. It was a relief to her that Gerty was obliged
  • to hasten away: the two kissed silently, but without a trace of the
  • previous night's emotion.
  • Lily found Mrs. Peniston in a state of agitation. She had sent for Grace
  • Stepney and was taking digitalis. Lily breasted the storm of enquiries as
  • best she could, explaining that she had had an attack of faintness on her
  • way back from Carry Fisher's; that, fearing she would not have strength
  • to reach home, she had gone to Miss Farish's instead; but that a quiet
  • night had restored her, and that she had no need of a doctor.
  • This was a relief to Mrs. Peniston, who could give herself up to her own
  • symptoms, and Lily was advised to go and lie down, her aunt's panacea for
  • all physical and moral disorders. In the solitude of her own room she was
  • brought back to a sharp contemplation of facts. Her daylight view of them
  • necessarily differed from the cloudy vision of the night. The winged
  • furies were now prowling gossips who dropped in on each other for tea.
  • But her fears seemed the uglier, thus shorn of their vagueness; and
  • besides, she had to act, not rave. For the first time she forced herself
  • to reckon up the exact amount of her debt to Trenor; and the result of
  • this hateful computation was the discovery that she had, in all, received
  • nine thousand dollars from him. The flimsy pretext on which it had been
  • given and received shrivelled up in the blaze of her shame: she knew that
  • not a penny of it was her own, and that to restore her self-respect she
  • must at once repay the whole amount. The inability thus to solace her
  • outraged feelings gave her a paralyzing sense of insignificance. She was
  • realizing for the first time that a woman's dignity may cost more to keep
  • up than her carriage; and that the maintenance of a moral attribute
  • should be dependent on dollars and cents, made the world appear a more
  • sordid place than she had conceived it.
  • After luncheon, when Grace Stepney's prying eyes had been removed, Lily
  • asked for a word with her aunt. The two ladies went upstairs to the
  • sitting-room, where Mrs. Peniston seated herself in her black satin
  • arm-chair tufted with yellow buttons, beside a bead-work table bearing a
  • bronze box with a miniature of Beatrice Cenci in the lid. Lily felt for
  • these objects the same distaste which the prisoner may entertain for the
  • fittings of the court-room. It was here that her aunt received her rare
  • confidences, and the pink-eyed smirk of the turbaned Beatrice was
  • associated in her mind with the gradual fading of the smile from Mrs.
  • Peniston's lips. That lady's dread of a scene gave her an inexorableness
  • which the greatest strength of character could not have produced, since
  • it was independent of all considerations of right or wrong; and knowing
  • this, Lily seldom ventured to assail it. She had never felt less like
  • making the attempt than on the present occasion; but she had sought in
  • vain for any other means of escape from an intolerable situation.
  • Mrs. Peniston examined her critically. "You're a bad colour, Lily: this
  • incessant rushing about is beginning to tell on you," she said.
  • Miss Bart saw an opening. "I don't think it's that, Aunt Julia; I've had
  • worries," she replied.
  • "Ah," said Mrs. Peniston, shutting her lips with the snap of a purse
  • closing against a beggar.
  • "I'm sorry to bother you with them," Lily continued, "but I really
  • believe my faintness last night was brought on partly by anxious
  • thoughts--"
  • "I should have said Carry Fisher's cook was enough to account for it.
  • She has a woman who was with Maria Melson in 1891--the spring of the year
  • we went to Aix--and I remember dining there two days before we sailed,
  • and feeling SURE the coppers hadn't been scoured."
  • "I don't think I ate much; I can't eat or sleep." Lily paused, and then
  • said abruptly: "The fact is, Aunt Julia, I owe some money."
  • Mrs. Peniston's face clouded perceptibly, but did not express the
  • astonishment her niece had expected. She was silent, and Lily was forced
  • to continue: "I have been foolish----"
  • "No doubt you have: extremely foolish," Mrs. Peniston interposed. "I
  • fail to see how any one with your income, and no expenses--not to mention
  • the handsome presents I've always given you----"
  • "Oh, you've been most generous, Aunt Julia; I shall never forget your
  • kindness. But perhaps you don't quite realize the expense a girl is put
  • to nowadays----"
  • "I don't realize that YOU are put to any expense except for your clothes
  • and your railway fares. I expect you to be handsomely dressed; but I paid
  • Celeste's bill for you last October."
  • Lily hesitated: her aunt's implacable memory had never been more
  • inconvenient. "You were as kind as possible; but I have had to get a few
  • things since----"
  • "What kind of things? Clothes? How much have you spent? Let me see the
  • bill--I daresay the woman is swindling you."
  • "Oh, no, I think not: clothes have grown so frightfully expensive; and
  • one needs so many different kinds, with country visits, and golf and
  • skating, and Aiken and Tuxedo----"
  • "Let me see the bill," Mrs. Peniston repeated.
  • Lily hesitated again. In the first place, Mme. Celeste had not yet sent
  • in her account, and secondly, the amount it represented was only a
  • fraction of the sum that Lily needed.
  • "She hasn't sent in the bill for my winter things, but I KNOW it's large;
  • and there are one or two other things; I've been careless and
  • imprudent--I'm frightened to think of what I owe----"
  • She raised the troubled loveliness of her face to Mrs. Peniston, vainly
  • hoping that a sight so moving to the other sex might not be without
  • effect upon her own. But the effect produced was that of making Mrs.
  • Peniston shrink back apprehensively.
  • "Really, Lily, you are old enough to manage your own affairs, and after
  • frightening me to death by your performance of last night you might at
  • least choose a better time to worry me with such matters." Mrs. Peniston
  • glanced at the clock, and swallowed a tablet of digitalis. "If you owe
  • Celeste another thousand, she may send me her account," she added, as
  • though to end the discussion at any cost.
  • "I am very sorry, Aunt Julia; I hate to trouble you at such a time; but I
  • have really no choice--I ought to have spoken sooner--I owe a great deal
  • more than a thousand dollars."
  • "A great deal more? Do you owe two? She must have robbed you!"
  • "I told you it was not only Celeste. I--there are other bills--more
  • pressing--that must be settled."
  • "What on earth have you been buying? Jewelry? You must have gone off your
  • head," said Mrs. Peniston with asperity. "But if you have run into debt,
  • you must suffer the consequences, and put aside your monthly income till
  • your bills are paid. If you stay quietly here until next spring, instead
  • of racing about all over the country, you will have no expenses at all,
  • and surely in four or five months you can settle the rest of your bills
  • if I pay the dress-maker now."
  • Lily was again silent. She knew she could not hope to extract even a
  • thousand dollars from Mrs. Peniston on the mere plea of paying Celeste's
  • bill: Mrs. Peniston would expect to go over the dress-maker's account,
  • and would make out the cheque to her and not to Lily. And yet the money
  • must be obtained before the day was over!
  • "The debts I speak of are--different--not like tradesmen's bills," she
  • began confusedly; but Mrs. Peniston's look made her almost afraid to
  • continue. Could it be that her aunt suspected anything? The idea
  • precipitated Lily's avowal.
  • "The fact is, I've played cards a good deal--bridge; the women all do it;
  • girls too--it's expected. Sometimes I've won--won a good deal--but lately
  • I've been unlucky--and of course such debts can't be paid off
  • gradually----"
  • She paused: Mrs. Peniston's face seemed to be petrifying as she listened.
  • "Cards--you've played cards for money? It's true, then: when I was told
  • so I wouldn't believe it. I won't ask if the other horrors I was told
  • were true too; I've heard enough for the state of my nerves. When I think
  • of the example you've had in this house! But I suppose it's your foreign
  • bringing-up--no one knew where your mother picked up her friends. And her
  • Sundays were a scandal--that I know."
  • Mrs. Peniston wheeled round suddenly. "You play cards on Sunday?"
  • Lily flushed with the recollection of certain rainy Sundays at Bellomont
  • and with the Dorsets.
  • "You're hard on me, Aunt Julia: I have never really cared for cards, but
  • a girl hates to be thought priggish and superior, and one drifts into
  • doing what the others do. I've had a dreadful lesson, and if you'll help
  • me out this time I promise you--"
  • Mrs. Peniston raised her hand warningly. "You needn't make any promises:
  • it's unnecessary. When I offered you a home I didn't undertake to pay
  • your gambling debts."
  • "Aunt Julia! You don't mean that you won't help me?"
  • "I shall certainly not do anything to give the impression that I
  • countenance your behaviour. If you really owe your dress-maker, I will
  • settle with her--beyond that I recognize no obligation to assume your
  • debts."
  • Lily had risen, and stood pale and quivering before her aunt. Pride
  • stormed in her, but humiliation forced the cry from her lips: "Aunt
  • Julia, I shall be disgraced--I--" But she could go no farther. If her
  • aunt turned such a stony ear to the fiction of the gambling debts, in
  • what spirit would she receive the terrible avowal of the truth?
  • "I consider that you ARE disgraced, Lily: disgraced by your conduct far
  • more than by its results. You say your friends have persuaded you to play
  • cards with them; well, they may as well learn a lesson too. They can
  • probably afford to lose a little money--and at any rate, I am not going
  • to waste any of mine in paying them. And now I must ask you to leave
  • me--this scene has been extremely painful, and I have my own health to
  • consider. Draw down the blinds, please; and tell Jennings I will see no
  • one this afternoon but Grace Stepney."
  • Lily went up to her own room and bolted the door. She was trembling with
  • fear and anger--the rush of the furies' wings was in her ears. She walked
  • up and down the room with blind irregular steps. The last door of escape
  • was closed--she felt herself shut in with her dishonour.
  • Suddenly her wild pacing brought her before the clock on the
  • chimney-piece. Its hands stood at half-past three, and she remembered
  • that Selden was to come to her at four. She had meant to put him off with
  • a word--but now her heart leaped at the thought of seeing him. Was there
  • not a promise of rescue in his love? As she had lain at Gerty's side the
  • night before, she had thought of his coming, and of the sweetness of
  • weeping out her pain upon his breast. Of course she had meant to clear
  • herself of its consequences before she met him--she had never really
  • doubted that Mrs. Peniston would come to her aid. And she had felt, even
  • in the full storm of her misery, that Selden's love could not be her
  • ultimate refuge; only it would be so sweet to take a moment's shelter
  • there, while she gathered fresh strength to go on.
  • But now his love was her only hope, and as she sat alone with her
  • wretchedness the thought of confiding in him became as seductive as the
  • river's flow to the suicide. The first plunge would be terrible--but
  • afterward, what blessedness might come! She remembered Gerty's words: "I
  • know him--he will help you"; and her mind clung to them as a sick person
  • might cling to a healing relic. Oh, if he really understood--if he would
  • help her to gather up her broken life, and put it together in some new
  • semblance in which no trace of the past should remain! He had always made
  • her feel that she was worthy of better things, and she had never been in
  • greater need of such solace. Once and again she shrank at the thought of
  • imperilling his love by her confession: for love was what she needed--it
  • would take the glow of passion to weld together the shattered fragments
  • of her self-esteem. But she recurred to Gerty's words and held fast to
  • them. She was sure that Gerty knew Selden's feeling for her, and it had
  • never dawned upon her blindness that Gerty's own judgment of him was
  • coloured by emotions far more ardent than her own.
  • Four o'clock found her in the drawing-room: she was sure that Selden
  • would be punctual. But the hour came and passed--it moved on feverishly,
  • measured by her impatient heart-beats. She had time to take a fresh
  • survey of her wretchedness, and to fluctuate anew between the impulse to
  • confide in Selden and the dread of destroying his illusions. But as the
  • minutes passed the need of throwing herself on his comprehension became
  • more urgent: she could not bear the weight of her misery alone. There
  • would be a perilous moment, perhaps: but could she not trust to her
  • beauty to bridge it over, to land her safe in the shelter of his devotion?
  • But the hour sped on and Selden did not come. Doubtless he had been
  • detained, or had misread her hurriedly scrawled note, taking the four for
  • a five. The ringing of the door-bell a few minutes after five confirmed
  • this supposition, and made Lily hastily resolve to write more legibly in
  • future. The sound of steps in the hall, and of the butler's voice
  • preceding them, poured fresh energy into her veins. She felt herself once
  • more the alert and competent moulder of emergencies, and the remembrance
  • of her power over Selden flushed her with sudden confidence. But when the
  • drawing-room door opened it was Rosedale who came in.
  • The reaction caused her a sharp pang, but after a passing movement of
  • irritation at the clumsiness of fate, and at her own carelessness in not
  • denying the door to all but Selden, she controlled herself and greeted
  • Rosedale amicably. It was annoying that Selden, when he came, should find
  • that particular visitor in possession, but Lily was mistress of the art
  • of ridding herself of superfluous company, and to her present mood
  • Rosedale seemed distinctly negligible.
  • His own view of the situation forced itself upon her after a few moments'
  • conversation. She had caught at the Brys' entertainment as an easy
  • impersonal subject, likely to tide them over the interval till Selden
  • appeared, but Mr. Rosedale, tenaciously planted beside the tea-table, his
  • hands in his pockets, his legs a little too freely extended, at once gave
  • the topic a personal turn.
  • "Pretty well done--well, yes, I suppose it was: Welly Bry's got his back
  • up and don't mean to let go till he's got the hang of the thing. Of
  • course, there were things here and there--things Mrs. Fisher couldn't be
  • expected to see to--the champagne wasn't cold, and the coats got mixed in
  • the coat-room. I would have spent more money on the music. But that's my
  • character: if I want a thing I'm willing to pay: I don't go up to the
  • counter, and then wonder if the article's worth the price. I wouldn't be
  • satisfied to entertain like the Welly Brys; I'd want something that would
  • look more easy and natural, more as if I took it in my stride. And it
  • takes just two things to do that, Miss Bart: money, and the right woman
  • to spend it."
  • He paused, and examined her attentively while she affected to rearrange
  • the tea-cups.
  • "I've got the money," he continued, clearing his throat, "and what I want
  • is the woman--and I mean to have her too."
  • He leaned forward a little, resting his hands on the head of his
  • walking-stick. He had seen men of Ned Van Alstyne's type bring their hats
  • and sticks into a drawing-room, and he thought it added a touch of
  • elegant familiarity to their appearance.
  • Lily was silent, smiling faintly, with her eyes absently resting on his
  • face. She was in reality reflecting that a declaration would take some
  • time to make, and that Selden must surely appear before the moment of
  • refusal had been reached. Her brooding look, as of a mind withdrawn yet
  • not averted, seemed to Mr. Rosedale full of a subtle encouragement. He
  • would not have liked any evidence of eagerness.
  • "I mean to have her too," he repeated, with a laugh intended to
  • strengthen his self-assurance. "I generally HAVE got what I wanted in
  • life, Miss Bart. I wanted money, and I've got more than I know how to
  • invest; and now the money doesn't seem to be of any account unless I can
  • spend it on the right woman. That's what I want to do with it: I want my
  • wife to make all the other women feel small. I'd never grudge a dollar
  • that was spent on that. But it isn't every woman can do it, no matter how
  • much you spend on her. There was a girl in some history book who wanted
  • gold shields, or something, and the fellows threw 'em at her, and she was
  • crushed under 'em: they killed her. Well, that's true enough: some women
  • looked buried under their jewelry. What I want is a woman who'll hold her
  • head higher the more diamonds I put on it. And when I looked at you the
  • other night at the Brys', in that plain white dress, looking as if you
  • had a crown on, I said to myself: 'By gad, if she had one she'd wear it
  • as if it grew on her.'"
  • Still Lily did not speak, and he continued, warming with his theme: "Tell
  • you what it is, though, that kind of woman costs more than all the rest
  • of 'em put together. If a woman's going to ignore her pearls, they want
  • to be better than anybody else's--and so it is with everything else. You
  • know what I mean--you know it's only the showy things that are cheap.
  • Well, I should want my wife to be able to take the earth for granted if
  • she wanted to. I know there's one thing vulgar about money, and that's
  • the thinking about it; and my wife would never have to demean herself in
  • that way." He paused, and then added, with an unfortunate lapse to an
  • earlier manner: "I guess you know the lady I've got in view, Miss Bart."
  • Lily raised her head, brightening a little under the challenge. Even
  • through the dark tumult of her thoughts, the clink of Mr. Rosedale's
  • millions had a faintly seductive note. Oh, for enough of them to cancel
  • her one miserable debt! But the man behind them grew increasingly
  • repugnant in the light of Selden's expected coming. The contrast was too
  • grotesque: she could scarcely suppress the smile it provoked. She decided
  • that directness would be best.
  • "If you mean me, Mr. Rosedale, I am very grateful--very much flattered;
  • but I don't know what I have ever done to make you think--"
  • "Oh, if you mean you're not dead in love with me, I've got sense enough
  • left to see that. And I ain't talking to you as if you were--I presume I
  • know the kind of talk that's expected under those circumstances. I'm
  • confoundedly gone on you--that's about the size of it--and I'm just
  • giving you a plain business statement of the consequences. You're not
  • very fond of me--YET--but you're fond of luxury, and style, and
  • amusement, and of not having to worry about cash. You like to have a good
  • time, and not have to settle for it; and what I propose to do is to
  • provide for the good time and do the settling."
  • He paused, and she returned with a chilling smile: "You are mistaken in
  • one point, Mr. Rosedale: whatever I enjoy I am prepared to settle for."
  • She spoke with the intention of making him see that, if his words implied
  • a tentative allusion to her private affairs, she was prepared to meet and
  • repudiate it. But if he recognized her meaning it failed to abash him,
  • and he went on in the same tone: "I didn't mean to give offence; excuse
  • me if I've spoken too plainly. But why ain't you straight with me--why do
  • you put up that kind of bluff? You know there've been times when you were
  • bothered--damned bothered--and as a girl gets older, and things keep
  • moving along, why, before she knows it, the things she wants are liable
  • to move past her and not come back. I don't say it's anywhere near that
  • with you yet; but you've had a taste of bothers that a girl like yourself
  • ought never to have known about, and what I'm offering you is the chance
  • to turn your back on them once for all."
  • The colour burned in Lily's face as he ended; there was no mistaking the
  • point he meant to make, and to permit it to pass unheeded was a fatal
  • confession of weakness, while to resent it too openly was to risk
  • offending him at a perilous moment. Indignation quivered on her lip; but
  • it was quelled by the secret voice which warned her that she must not
  • quarrel with him. He knew too much about her, and even at the moment when
  • it was essential that he should show himself at his best, he did not
  • scruple to let her see how much he knew. How then would he use his power
  • when her expression of contempt had dispelled his one motive for
  • restraint? Her whole future might hinge on her way of answering him: she
  • had to stop and consider that, in the stress of her other anxieties, as a
  • breathless fugitive may have to pause at the cross-roads and try to
  • decide coolly which turn to take.
  • "You are quite right, Mr. Rosedale. I HAVE had bothers; and I am grateful
  • to you for wanting to relieve me of them. It is not always easy to be
  • quite independent and self-respecting when one is poor and lives among
  • rich people; I have been careless about money, and have worried about my
  • bills. But I should be selfish and ungrateful if I made that a reason for
  • accepting all you offer, with no better return to make than the desire to
  • be free from my anxieties. You must give me time--time to think of your
  • kindness--and of what I could give you in return for it----"
  • She held out her hand with a charming gesture in which dismissal was
  • shorn of its rigour. Its hint of future leniency made Rosedale rise in
  • obedience to it, a little flushed with his unhoped-for success, and
  • disciplined by the tradition of his blood to accept what was conceded,
  • without undue haste to press for more. Something in his prompt
  • acquiescence frightened her; she felt behind it the stored force of a
  • patience that might subdue the strongest will. But at least they had
  • parted amicably, and he was out of the house without meeting
  • Selden--Selden, whose continued absence now smote her with a new alarm.
  • Rosedale had remained over an hour, and she understood that it was now
  • too late to hope for Selden. He would write explaining his absence, of
  • course; there would be a note from him by the late post. But her
  • confession would have to be postponed; and the chill of the delay settled
  • heavily on her fagged spirit.
  • It lay heavier when the postman's last ring brought no note for her, and
  • she had to go upstairs to a lonely night--a night as grim and sleepless
  • as her tortured fancy had pictured it to Gerty. She had never learned to
  • live with her own thoughts, and to be confronted with them through such
  • hours of lucid misery made the confused wretchedness of her previous
  • vigil seem easily bearable.
  • Daylight disbanded the phantom crew, and made it clear to her that she
  • would hear from Selden before noon; but the day passed without his
  • writing or coming. Lily remained at home, lunching and dining alone with
  • her aunt, who complained of flutterings of the heart, and talked icily on
  • general topics. Mrs. Peniston went to bed early, and when she had gone
  • Lily sat down and wrote a note to Selden. She was about to ring for a
  • messenger to despatch it when her eye fell on a paragraph in the evening
  • paper which lay at her elbow: "Mr. Lawrence Selden was among the
  • passengers sailing this afternoon for Havana and the West Indies on the
  • Windward Liner Antilles."
  • She laid down the paper and sat motionless, staring at her note. She
  • understood now that he was never coming--that he had gone away because he
  • was afraid that he might come. She rose, and walking across the floor
  • stood gazing at herself for a long time in the brightly-lit mirror above
  • the mantel-piece. The lines in her face came out terribly--she looked
  • old; and when a girl looks old to herself, how does she look to other
  • people? She moved away, and began to wander aimlessly about the room,
  • fitting her steps with mechanical precision between the monstrous roses
  • of Mrs. Peniston's Axminster. Suddenly she noticed that the pen with
  • which she had written to Selden still rested against the uncovered
  • inkstand. She seated herself again, and taking out an envelope, addressed
  • it rapidly to Rosedale. Then she laid out a sheet of paper, and sat over
  • it with suspended pen. It had been easy enough to write the date, and
  • "Dear Mr. Rosedale"--but after that her inspiration flagged. She meant to
  • tell him to come to her, but the words refused to shape themselves. At
  • length she began: "I have been thinking----" then she laid the pen down,
  • and sat with her elbows on the table and her face hidden in her hands.
  • Suddenly she started up at the sound of the door-bell. It was not
  • late--barely ten o'clock--and there might still be a note from Selden, or
  • a message--or he might be there himself, on the other side of the door!
  • The announcement of his sailing might have been a mistake--it might be
  • another Lawrence Selden who had gone to Havana--all these possibilities
  • had time to flash through her mind, and build up the conviction that she
  • was after all to see or hear from him, before the drawing-room door
  • opened to admit a servant carrying a telegram.
  • Lily tore it open with shaking hands, and read Bertha Dorset's name below
  • the message: "Sailing unexpectedly tomorrow. Will you join us on a cruise
  • in Mediterranean?"
  • BOOK TWO
  • Chapter 1
  • It came vividly to Selden on the Casino steps that Monte Carlo had, more
  • than any other place he knew, the gift of accommodating itself to each
  • man's humour. His own, at the moment, lent it a festive readiness of
  • welcome that might well, in a disenchanted eye, have turned to paint and
  • facility. So frank an appeal for participation--so outspoken a
  • recognition of the holiday vein in human nature--struck refreshingly on a
  • mind jaded by prolonged hard work in surroundings made for the discipline
  • of the senses. As he surveyed the white square set in an exotic coquetry
  • of architecture, the studied tropicality of the gardens, the groups
  • loitering in the foreground against mauve mountains which suggested a
  • sublime stage-setting forgotten in a hurried shifting of scenes--as he
  • took in the whole outspread effect of light and leisure, he felt a
  • movement of revulsion from the last few months of his life.
  • The New York winter had presented an interminable perspective of
  • snow-burdened days, reaching toward a spring of raw sunshine and furious
  • air, when the ugliness of things rasped the eye as the gritty wind ground
  • into the skin. Selden, immersed in his work, had told himself that
  • external conditions did not matter to a man in his state, and that cold
  • and ugliness were a good tonic for relaxed sensibilities. When an urgent
  • case summoned him abroad to confer with a client in Paris, he broke
  • reluctantly with the routine of the office; and it was only now that,
  • having despatched his business, and slipped away for a week in the south,
  • he began to feel the renewed zest of spectatorship that is the solace of
  • those who take an objective interest in life.
  • The multiplicity of its appeals--the perpetual surprise of its contrasts
  • and resemblances! All these tricks and turns of the show were upon him
  • with a spring as he descended the Casino steps and paused on the pavement
  • at its doors. He had not been abroad for seven years--and what changes
  • the renewed contact produced! If the central depths were untouched,
  • hardly a pin-point of surface remained the same. And this was the very
  • place to bring out the completeness of the renewal. The sublimities, the
  • perpetuities, might have left him as he was: but this tent pitched for a
  • day's revelry spread a roof of oblivion between himself and his fixed sky.
  • It was mid-April, and one felt that the revelry had reached its climax
  • and that the desultory groups in the square and gardens would soon
  • dissolve and re-form in other scenes. Meanwhile the last moments of the
  • performance seemed to gain an added brightness from the hovering threat
  • of the curtain. The quality of the air, the exuberance of the flowers,
  • the blue intensity of sea and sky, produced the effect of a closing
  • TABLEAU, when all the lights are turned on at once. This impression was
  • presently heightened by the way in which a consciously conspicuous group
  • of people advanced to the middle front, and stood before Selden with the
  • air of the chief performers gathered together by the exigencies of the
  • final effect. Their appearance confirmed the impression that the show had
  • been staged regardless of expense, and emphasized its resemblance to one
  • of those "costume-plays" in which the protagonists walk through the
  • passions without displacing a drapery. The ladies stood in unrelated
  • attitudes calculated to isolate their effects, and the men hung about
  • them as irrelevantly as stage heroes whose tailors are named in the
  • programme. It was Selden himself who unwittingly fused the group by
  • arresting the attention of one of its members.
  • "Why, Mr. Selden!" Mrs. Fisher exclaimed in surprise; and with a gesture
  • toward Mrs. Jack Stepney and Mrs. Wellington Bry, she added plaintively:
  • "We're starving to death because we can't decide where to lunch."
  • Welcomed into their group, and made the confidant of their difficulty,
  • Selden learned with amusement that there were several places where one
  • might miss something by not lunching, or forfeit something by lunching;
  • so that eating actually became a minor consideration on the very spot
  • consecrated to its rites.
  • "Of course one gets the best things at the TERRASSE--but that looks as if
  • one hadn't any other reason for being there: the Americans who don't know
  • any one always rush for the best food. And the Duchess of Beltshire has
  • taken up Becassin's lately," Mrs. Bry earnestly summed up.
  • Mrs. Bry, to Mrs. Fisher's despair, had not progressed beyond the point
  • of weighing her social alternatives in public. She could not acquire the
  • air of doing things because she wanted to, and making her choice the
  • final seal of their fitness.
  • Mr. Bry, a short pale man, with a business face and leisure clothes, met
  • the dilemma hilariously.
  • "I guess the Duchess goes where it's cheapest, unless she can get her
  • meal paid for. If you offered to blow her off at the TERRASSE she'd turn
  • up fast enough."
  • But Mrs. Jack Stepney interposed. "The Grand Dukes go to that little
  • place at the Condamine. Lord Hubert says it's the only restaurant in
  • Europe where they can cook peas."
  • Lord Hubert Dacey, a slender shabby-looking man, with a charming worn
  • smile, and the air of having spent his best years in piloting the wealthy
  • to the right restaurant, assented with gentle emphasis: "It's quite that."
  • "PEAS?" said Mr. Bry contemptuously. "Can they cook terrapin? It just
  • shows," he continued, "what these European markets are, when a fellow can
  • make a reputation cooking peas!"
  • Jack Stepney intervened with authority. "I don't know that I quite agree
  • with Dacey: there's a little hole in Paris, off the Quai Voltaire--but in
  • any case, I can't advise the Condamine GARGOTE; at least not with ladies."
  • Stepney, since his marriage, had thickened and grown prudish, as the Van
  • Osburgh husbands were apt to do; but his wife, to his surprise and
  • discomfiture, had developed an earth-shaking fastness of gait which left
  • him trailing breathlessly in her wake.
  • "That's where we'll go then!" she declared, with a heavy toss of her
  • plumage. "I'm so tired of the TERRASSE: it's as dull as one of mother's
  • dinners. And Lord Hubert has promised to tell us who all the awful people
  • are at the other place--hasn't he, Carry? Now, Jack, don't look so
  • solemn!"
  • "Well," said Mrs. Bry, "all I want to know is who their dress-makers are."
  • "No doubt Dacey can tell you that too," remarked Stepney, with an ironic
  • intention which the other received with the light murmur, "I can at least
  • FIND OUT, my dear fellow"; and Mrs. Bry having declared that she couldn't
  • walk another step, the party hailed two or three of the light phaetons
  • which hover attentively on the confines of the gardens, and rattled off
  • in procession toward the Condamine.
  • Their destination was one of the little restaurants overhanging the
  • boulevard which dips steeply down from Monte Carlo to the low
  • intermediate quarter along the quay. From the window in which they
  • presently found themselves installed, they overlooked the intense blue
  • curve of the harbour, set between the verdure of twin promontories: to
  • the right, the cliff of Monaco, topped by the mediaeval silhouette of its
  • church and castle, to the left the terraces and pinnacles of the
  • gambling-house. Between the two, the waters of the bay were furrowed by a
  • light coming and going of pleasure-craft, through which, just at the
  • culminating moment of luncheon, the majestic advance of a great
  • steam-yacht drew the company's attention from the peas.
  • "By Jove, I believe that's the Dorsets back!" Stepney exclaimed; and Lord
  • Hubert, dropping his single eye-glass, corroborated: "It's the
  • Sabrina--yes."
  • "So soon? They were to spend a month in Sicily," Mrs. Fisher observed.
  • "I guess they feel as if they had: there's only one up-to-date hotel in
  • the whole place," said Mr. Bry disparagingly.
  • "It was Ned Silverton's idea--but poor Dorset and Lily Bart must have
  • been horribly bored." Mrs. Fisher added in an undertone to Selden: "I do
  • hope there hasn't been a row."
  • "It's most awfully jolly having Miss Bart back," said Lord Hubert, in his
  • mild deliberate voice; and Mrs. Bry added ingenuously: "I daresay the
  • Duchess will dine with us, now that Lily's here."
  • "The Duchess admires her immensely: I'm sure she'd be charmed to have it
  • arranged," Lord Hubert agreed, with the professional promptness of the
  • man accustomed to draw his profit from facilitating social contacts:
  • Selden was struck by the businesslike change in his manner.
  • "Lily has been a tremendous success here," Mrs. Fisher continued, still
  • addressing herself confidentially to Selden. "She looks ten years
  • younger--I never saw her so handsome. Lady Skiddaw took her everywhere in
  • Cannes, and the Crown Princess of Macedonia had her to stop for a week at
  • Cimiez. People say that was one reason why Bertha whisked the yacht off
  • to Sicily: the Crown Princess didn't take much notice of her, and she
  • couldn't bear to look on at Lily's triumph."
  • Selden made no reply. He was vaguely aware that Miss Bart was cruising in
  • the Mediterranean with the Dorsets, but it had not occurred to him that
  • there was any chance of running across her on the Riviera, where the
  • season was virtually at an end. As he leaned back, silently contemplating
  • his filigree cup of Turkish coffee, he was trying to put some order in
  • his thoughts, to tell himself how the news of her nearness was really
  • affecting him. He had a personal detachment enabling him, even in moments
  • of emotional high-pressure, to get a fairly clear view of his feelings,
  • and he was sincerely surprised by the disturbance which the sight of the
  • Sabrina had produced in him. He had reason to think that his three months
  • of engrossing professional work, following on the sharp shock of his
  • disillusionment, had cleared his mind of its sentimental vapours. The
  • feeling he had nourished and given prominence to was one of thankfulness
  • for his escape: he was like a traveller so grateful for rescue from a
  • dangerous accident that at first he is hardly conscious of his bruises.
  • Now he suddenly felt the latent ache, and realized that after all he had
  • not come off unhurt.
  • An hour later, at Mrs. Fisher's side in the Casino gardens, he was trying
  • to find fresh reasons for forgetting the injury received in the
  • contemplation of the peril avoided. The party had dispersed with the
  • loitering indecision characteristic of social movements at Monte Carlo,
  • where the whole place, and the long gilded hours of the day, seem to
  • offer an infinity of ways of being idle. Lord Hubert Dacey had finally
  • gone off in quest of the Duchess of Beltshire, charged by Mrs. Bry with
  • the delicate negotiation of securing that lady's presence at dinner, the
  • Stepneys had left for Nice in their motor-car, and Mr. Bry had departed
  • to take his place in the pigeon shooting match which was at the moment
  • engaging his highest faculties.
  • Mrs. Bry, who had a tendency to grow red and stertorous after luncheon,
  • had been judiciously prevailed upon by Carry Fisher to withdraw to her
  • hotel for an hour's repose; and Selden and his companion were thus left
  • to a stroll propitious to confidences. The stroll soon resolved itself
  • into a tranquil session on a bench overhung with laurel and Banksian
  • roses, from which they caught a dazzle of blue sea between marble
  • balusters, and the fiery shafts of cactus-blossoms shooting meteor-like
  • from the rock. The soft shade of their niche, and the adjacent glitter of
  • the air, were conducive to an easy lounging mood, and to the smoking of
  • many cigarettes; and Selden, yielding to these influences, suffered Mrs.
  • Fisher to unfold to him the history of her recent experiences. She had
  • come abroad with the Welly Brys at the moment when fashion flees the
  • inclemency of the New York spring. The Brys, intoxicated by their first
  • success, already thirsted for new kingdoms, and Mrs. Fisher, viewing the
  • Riviera as an easy introduction to London society, had guided their
  • course thither. She had affiliations of her own in every capital, and a
  • facility for picking them up again after long absences; and the carefully
  • disseminated rumour of the Brys' wealth had at once gathered about them a
  • group of cosmopolitan pleasure-seekers.
  • "But things are not going as well as I expected," Mrs. Fisher frankly
  • admitted. "It's all very well to say that every body with money can get
  • into society; but it would be truer to say that NEARLY everybody can.
  • And the London market is so glutted with new Americans that, to succeed
  • there now, they must be either very clever or awfully queer. The Brys are
  • neither. HE would get on well enough if she'd let him alone; they like
  • his slang and his brag and his blunders. But Louisa spoils it all by
  • trying to repress him and put herself forward. If she'd be natural
  • herself--fat and vulgar and bouncing--it would be all right; but as soon
  • as she meets anybody smart she tries to be slender and queenly. She
  • tried it with the Duchess of Beltshire and Lady Skiddaw, and they fled.
  • I've done my best to make her see her mistake--I've said to her again and
  • again: 'Just let yourself go, Louisa'; but she keeps up the humbug even
  • with me--I believe she keeps on being queenly in her own room, with the
  • door shut.
  • "The worst of it is," Mrs. Fisher went on, "that she thinks it's all MY
  • fault. When the Dorsets turned up here six weeks ago, and everybody began
  • to make a fuss about Lily Bart, I could see Louisa thought that if she'd
  • had Lily in tow instead of me she would have been hob-nobbing with all
  • the royalties by this time. She doesn't realize that it's Lily's beauty
  • that does it: Lord Hubert tells me Lily is thought even handsomer than
  • when he knew her at Aix ten years ago. It seems she was tremendously
  • admired there. An Italian Prince, rich and the real thing, wanted to
  • marry her; but just at the critical moment a good-looking step-son turned
  • up, and Lily was silly enough to flirt with him while her
  • marriage-settlements with the step-father were being drawn up. Some
  • people said the young man did it on purpose. You can fancy the scandal:
  • there was an awful row between the men, and people began to look at Lily
  • so queerly that Mrs. Peniston had to pack up and finish her cure
  • elsewhere. Not that SHE ever understood: to this day she thinks that Aix
  • didn't suit her, and mentions her having been sent there as proof of the
  • incompetence of French doctors. That's Lily all over, you know: she works
  • like a slave preparing the ground and sowing her seed; but the day she
  • ought to be reaping the harvest she over-sleeps herself or goes off on a
  • picnic."
  • Mrs. Fisher paused and looked reflectively at the deep shimmer of sea
  • between the cactus-flowers. "Sometimes," she added, "I think it's just
  • flightiness--and sometimes I think it's because, at heart, she despises
  • the things she's trying for. And it's the difficulty of deciding that
  • makes her such an interesting study." She glanced tentatively at Selden's
  • motionless profile, and resumed with a slight sigh: "Well, all I can say
  • is, I wish she'd give ME some of her discarded opportunities. I wish we
  • could change places now, for instance. She could make a very good thing
  • out of the Brys if she managed them properly, and I should know just how
  • to look after George Dorset while Bertha is reading Verlaine with Neddy
  • Silverton."
  • She met Selden's sound of protest with a sharp derisive glance. "Well,
  • what's the use of mincing matters? We all know that's what Bertha brought
  • her abroad for. When Bertha wants to have a good time she has to provide
  • occupation for George. At first I thought Lily was going to play her
  • cards well THIS time, but there are rumours that Bertha is jealous of her
  • success here and at Cannes, and I shouldn't be surprised if there were a
  • break any day. Lily's only safeguard is that Bertha needs her badly--oh,
  • very badly. The Silverton affair is in the acute stage: it's necessary
  • that George's attention should be pretty continuously distracted. And I'm
  • bound to say Lily DOES distract it: I believe he'd marry her tomorrow if
  • he found out there was anything wrong with Bertha. But you know him--he's
  • as blind as he's jealous; and of course Lily's present business is to
  • keep him blind. A clever woman might know just the right moment to tear
  • off the bandage: but Lily isn't clever in that way, and when George does
  • open his eyes she'll probably contrive not to be in his line of vision."
  • Selden tossed away his cigarette. "By Jove--it's time for my train," he
  • exclaimed, with a glance at his watch; adding, in reply to Mrs. Fisher's
  • surprised comment--"Why, I thought of course you were at Monte!"--a
  • murmured word to the effect that he was making Nice his head-quarters.
  • "The worst of it is, she snubs the Brys now," he heard irrelevantly flung
  • after him.
  • Ten minutes later, in the high-perched bedroom of an hotel overlooking
  • the Casino, he was tossing his effects into a couple of gaping
  • portmanteaux, while the porter waited outside to transport them to the
  • cab at the door. It took but a brief plunge down the steep white road to
  • the station to land him safely in the afternoon express for Nice; and not
  • till he was installed in the corner of an empty carriage, did he exclaim
  • to himself, with a reaction of self-contempt: "What the deuce am I
  • running away from?"
  • The pertinence of the question checked Selden's fugitive impulse before
  • the train had started. It was ridiculous to be flying like an emotional
  • coward from an infatuation his reason had conquered. He had instructed
  • his bankers to forward some important business letters to Nice, and at
  • Nice he would quietly await them. He was already annoyed with himself for
  • having left Monte Carlo, where he had intended to pass the week which
  • remained to him before sailing; but it would now be difficult to return
  • on his steps without an appearance of inconsistency from which his pride
  • recoiled. In his inmost heart he was not sorry to put himself beyond the
  • probability of meeting Miss Bart. Completely as he had detached himself
  • from her, he could not yet regard her merely as a social instance; and
  • viewed in a more personal ways she was not likely to be a reassuring
  • object of study. Chance encounters, or even the repeated mention of her
  • name, would send his thoughts back into grooves from which he had
  • resolutely detached them; whereas, if she could be entirely excluded from
  • his life, the pressure of new and varied impressions, with which no
  • thought of her was connected, would soon complete the work of separation.
  • Mrs. Fisher's conversation had, indeed, operated to that end; but the
  • treatment was too painful to be voluntarily chosen while milder remedies
  • were untried; and Selden thought he could trust himself to return
  • gradually to a reasonable view of Miss Bart, if only he did not see her.
  • Having reached the station early, he had arrived at this point in his
  • reflections before the increasing throng on the platform warned him that
  • he could not hope to preserve his privacy; the next moment there was a
  • hand on the door, and he turned to confront the very face he was fleeing.
  • Miss Bart, glowing with the haste of a precipitate descent upon the
  • train, headed a group composed of the Dorsets, young Silverton and Lord
  • Hubert Dacey, who had barely time to spring into the carriage, and
  • envelop Selden in ejaculations of surprise and welcome, before the
  • whistle of departure sounded. The party, it appeared, were hastening to
  • Nice in response to a sudden summons to dine with the Duchess of
  • Beltshire and to see the water-fete in the bay; a plan evidently
  • improvised--in spite of Lord Hubert's protesting "Oh, I say, you
  • know,"--for the express purpose of defeating Mrs. Bry's endeavour to
  • capture the Duchess.
  • During the laughing relation of this manoeuvre, Selden had time for a
  • rapid impression of Miss Bart, who had seated herself opposite to him in
  • the golden afternoon light. Scarcely three months had elapsed since he
  • had parted from her on the threshold of the Brys' conservatory; but a
  • subtle change had passed over the quality of her beauty. Then it had had
  • a transparency through which the fluctuations of the spirit were
  • sometimes tragically visible; now its impenetrable surface suggested a
  • process of crystallization which had fused her whole being into one hard
  • brilliant substance. The change had struck Mrs. Fisher as a rejuvenation:
  • to Selden it seemed like that moment of pause and arrest when the warm
  • fluidity of youth is chilled into its final shape.
  • He felt it in the way she smiled on him, and in the readiness and
  • competence with which, flung unexpectedly into his presence, she took up
  • the thread of their intercourse as though that thread had not been
  • snapped with a violence from which he still reeled. Such facility
  • sickened him--but he told himself that it was with the pang which
  • precedes recovery. Now he would really get well--would eject the last
  • drop of poison from his blood. Already he felt himself calmer in her
  • presence than he had learned to be in the thought of her. Her assumptions
  • and elisions, her short-cuts and long DETOURS, the skill with which she
  • contrived to meet him at a point from which no inconvenient glimpses of
  • the past were visible, suggested what opportunities she had had for
  • practising such arts since their last meeting. He felt that she had at
  • last arrived at an understanding with herself: had made a pact with her
  • rebellious impulses, and achieved a uniform system of self-government,
  • under which all vagrant tendencies were either held captive or forced
  • into the service of the state.
  • And he saw other things too in her manner: saw how it had adjusted itself
  • to the hidden intricacies of a situation in which, even after Mrs.
  • Fisher's elucidating flashes, he still felt himself agrope. Surely Mrs.
  • Fisher could no longer charge Miss Bart with neglecting her
  • opportunities! To Selden's exasperated observation she was only too
  • completely alive to them. She was "perfect" to every one: subservient to
  • Bertha's anxious predominance, good-naturedly watchful of Dorset's moods,
  • brightly companionable to Silverton and Dacey, the latter of whom met her
  • on an evident footing of old admiration, while young Silverton,
  • portentously self-absorbed, seemed conscious of her only as of something
  • vaguely obstructive. And suddenly, as Selden noted the fine shades of
  • manner by which she harmonized herself with her surroundings, it flashed
  • on him that, to need such adroit handling, the situation must indeed be
  • desperate. She was on the edge of something--that was the impression left
  • with him. He seemed to see her poised on the brink of a chasm, with one
  • graceful foot advanced to assert her unconsciousness that the ground was
  • failing her.
  • On the Promenade des Anglais, where Ned Silverton hung on him for the
  • half hour before dinner, he received a deeper impression of the general
  • insecurity. Silverton was in a mood of Titanic pessimism. How any one
  • could come to such a damned hole as the Riviera--any one with a grain of
  • imagination--with the whole Mediterranean to choose from: but then, if
  • one's estimate of a place depended on the way they broiled a spring
  • chicken! Gad! what a study might be made of the tyranny of the
  • stomach--the way a sluggish liver or insufficient gastric juices might
  • affect the whole course of the universe, overshadow everything in
  • reach--chronic dyspepsia ought to be among the "statutory causes"; a
  • woman's life might be ruined by a man's inability to digest fresh bread.
  • Grotesque? Yes--and tragic--like most absurdities. There's nothing
  • grimmer than the tragedy that wears a comic mask.... Where was he?
  • Oh--the reason they chucked Sicily and rushed back? Well--partly, no
  • doubt, Miss Bart's desire to get back to bridge and smartness. Dead as a
  • stone to art and poetry--the light never WAS on sea or land for her! And
  • of course she persuaded Dorset that the Italian food was bad for him. Oh,
  • she could make him believe anything--ANYTHING! Mrs. Dorset was aware of
  • it--oh, perfectly: nothing SHE didn't see! But she could hold her
  • tongue--she'd had to, often enough. Miss Bart was an intimate friend--she
  • wouldn't hear a word against her. Only it hurts a woman's pride--there
  • are some things one doesn't get used to . . . All this in confidence, of
  • course? Ah--and there were the ladies signalling from the balcony of the
  • hotel.... He plunged across the Promenade, leaving Selden to a meditative
  • cigar.
  • The conclusions it led him to were fortified, later in the evening, by
  • some of those faint corroborative hints that generate a light of their
  • own in the dusk of a doubting mind. Selden, stumbling on a chance
  • acquaintance, had dined with him, and adjourned, still in his company, to
  • the brightly lit Promenade, where a line of crowded stands commanded the
  • glittering darkness of the waters. The night was soft and persuasive.
  • Overhead hung a summer sky furrowed with the rush of rockets; and from
  • the east a late moon, pushing up beyond the lofty bend of the coast, sent
  • across the bay a shaft of brightness which paled to ashes in the red
  • glitter of the illuminated boats. Down the lantern-hung Promenade,
  • snatches of band-music floated above the hum of the crowd and the soft
  • tossing of boughs in dusky gardens; and between these gardens and the
  • backs of the stands there flowed a stream of people in whom the
  • vociferous carnival mood seemed tempered by the growing languor of the
  • season.
  • Selden and his companion, unable to get seats on one of the stands facing
  • the bay, had wandered for a while with the throng, and then found a point
  • of vantage on a high garden-parapet above the Promenade. Thence they
  • caught but a triangular glimpse of the water, and of the flashing play of
  • boats across its surface; but the crowd in the street was under their
  • immediate view, and seemed to Selden, on the whole, of more interest than
  • the show itself. After a while, however, he wearied of his perch and,
  • dropping alone to the pavement, pushed his way to the first corner and
  • turned into the moonlit silence of a side street. Long garden-walls
  • overhung by trees made a dark boundary to the pavement; an empty cab
  • trailed along the deserted thoroughfare, and presently Selden saw two
  • persons emerge from the opposite shadows, signal to the cab, and drive
  • off in it toward the centre of the town. The moonlight touched them as
  • they paused to enter the carriage, and he recognized Mrs. Dorset and
  • young Silverton.
  • Beneath the nearest lamp-post he glanced at his watch and saw that the
  • time was close on eleven. He took another cross street, and without
  • breasting the throng on the Promenade, made his way to the fashionable
  • club which overlooks that thoroughfare. Here, amid the blaze of crowded
  • baccarat tables, he caught sight of Lord Hubert Dacey, seated with his
  • habitual worn smile behind a rapidly dwindling heap of gold. The heap
  • being in due course wiped out, Lord Hubert rose with a shrug, and joining
  • Selden, adjourned with him to the deserted terrace of the club. It was
  • now past midnight, and the throng on the stands was dispersing, while the
  • long trails of red-lit boats scattered and faded beneath a sky
  • repossessed by the tranquil splendour of the moon.
  • Lord Hubert looked at his watch. "By Jove, I promised to join the Duchess
  • for supper at the LONDON HOUSE; but it's past twelve, and I suppose
  • they've all scattered. The fact is, I lost them in the crowd soon after
  • dinner, and took refuge here, for my sins. They had seats on one of the
  • stands, but of course they couldn't stop quiet: the Duchess never can.
  • She and Miss Bart went off in quest of what they call adventures--gad, it
  • ain't their fault if they don't have some queer ones!" He added
  • tentatively, after pausing to grope for a cigarette: "Miss Bart's an old
  • friend of yours, I believe? So she told me.--Ah, thanks--I don't seem to
  • have one left." He lit Selden's proffered cigarette, and continued, in
  • his high-pitched drawling tone: "None of my business, of course, but I
  • didn't introduce her to the Duchess. Charming woman, the Duchess, you
  • understand; and a very good friend of mine; but RATHER a liberal
  • education."
  • Selden received this in silence, and after a few puffs Lord Hubert broke
  • out again: "Sort of thing one can't communicate to the young lady--though
  • young ladies nowadays are so competent to judge for themselves; but in
  • this case--I'm an old friend too, you know . . . and there seemed no one
  • else to speak to. The whole situation's a little mixed, as I see it--but
  • there used to be an aunt somewhere, a diffuse and innocent person, who
  • was great at bridging over chasms she didn't see . . . Ah, in New York,
  • is she? Pity New York's such a long way off!"
  • Chapter 2
  • Miss Bart, emerging late the next morning from her cabin, found herself
  • alone on the deck of the Sabrina. The cushioned chairs, disposed
  • expectantly under the wide awning, showed no signs of recent occupancy,
  • and she presently learned from a steward that Mrs. Dorset had not yet
  • appeared, and that the gentlemen--separately--had gone ashore as soon as
  • they had breakfasted. Supplied with these facts, Lily leaned awhile over
  • the side, giving herself up to a leisurely enjoyment of the spectacle
  • before her. Unclouded sunlight enveloped sea and shore in a bath of
  • purest radiancy. The purpling waters drew a sharp white line of foam at
  • the base of the shore; against its irregular eminences, hotels and villas
  • flashed from the greyish verdure of olive and eucalyptus; and the
  • background of bare and finely-pencilled mountains quivered in a pale
  • intensity of light.
  • How beautiful it was--and how she loved beauty! She had always felt that
  • her sensibility in this direction made up for certain obtusenesses of
  • feeling of which she was less proud; and during the last three months she
  • had indulged it passionately. The Dorsets' invitation to go abroad with
  • them had come as an almost miraculous release from crushing difficulties;
  • and her faculty for renewing herself in new scenes, and casting off
  • problems of conduct as easily as the surroundings in which they had
  • arisen, made the mere change from one place to another seem, not merely a
  • postponement, but a solution of her troubles. Moral complications existed
  • for her only in the environment that had produced them; she did not mean
  • to slight or ignore them, but they lost their reality when they changed
  • their background. She could not have remained in New York without
  • repaying the money she owed to Trenor; to acquit herself of that odious
  • debt she might even have faced a marriage with Rosedale; but the accident
  • of placing the Atlantic between herself and her obligations made them
  • dwindle out of sight as if they had been milestones and she had travelled
  • past them.
  • Her two months on the Sabrina had been especially calculated to aid this
  • illusion of distance. She had been plunged into new scenes, and had found
  • in them a renewal of old hopes and ambitions. The cruise itself charmed
  • her as a romantic adventure. She was vaguely touched by the names and
  • scenes amid which she moved, and had listened to Ned Silverton reading
  • Theocritus by moonlight, as the yacht rounded the Sicilian promontories,
  • with a thrill of the nerves that confirmed her belief in her intellectual
  • superiority. But the weeks at Cannes and Nice had really given her more
  • pleasure. The gratification of being welcomed in high company, and of
  • making her own ascendency felt there, so that she found herself figuring
  • once more as the "beautiful Miss Bart" in the interesting journal devoted
  • to recording the least movements of her cosmopolitan companions--all
  • these experiences tended to throw into the extreme background of memory
  • the prosaic and sordid difficulties from which she had escaped.
  • If she was faintly aware of fresh difficulties ahead, she was sure of her
  • ability to meet them: it was characteristic of her to feel that the only
  • problems she could not solve were those with which she was familiar.
  • Meanwhile she could honestly be proud of the skill with which she had
  • adapted herself to somewhat delicate conditions. She had reason to think
  • that she had made herself equally necessary to her host and hostess; and
  • if only she had seen any perfectly irreproachable means of drawing a
  • financial profit from the situation, there would have been no cloud on
  • her horizon. The truth was that her funds, as usual, were inconveniently
  • low; and to neither Dorset nor his wife could this vulgar embarrassment
  • be safely hinted. Still, the need was not a pressing one; she could worry
  • along, as she had so often done before, with the hope of some happy
  • change of fortune to sustain her; and meanwhile life was gay and
  • beautiful and easy, and she was conscious of figuring not unworthily in
  • such a setting.
  • She was engaged to breakfast that morning with the Duchess of Beltshire,
  • and at twelve o'clock she asked to be set ashore in the gig. Before this
  • she had sent her maid to enquire if she might see Mrs. Dorset; but the
  • reply came back that the latter was tired, and trying to sleep. Lily
  • thought she understood the reason of the rebuff. Her hostess had not been
  • included in the Duchess's invitation, though she herself had made the
  • most loyal efforts in that direction. But her grace was impervious to
  • hints, and invited or omitted as she chose. It was not Lily's fault if
  • Mrs. Dorset's complicated attitudes did not fall in with the Duchess's
  • easy gait. The Duchess, who seldom explained herself, had not formulated
  • her objection beyond saying: "She's rather a bore, you know. The only one
  • of your friends I like is that little Mr. Bry--HE'S funny--" but Lily
  • knew enough not to press the point, and was not altogether sorry to be
  • thus distinguished at her friend's expense. Bertha certainly HAD grown
  • tiresome since she had taken to poetry and Ned Silverton.
  • On the whole, it was a relief to break away now and then from the
  • Sabrina; and the Duchess's little breakfast, organized by Lord Hubert
  • with all his usual virtuosity, was the pleasanter to Lily for not
  • including her travelling-companions. Dorset, of late, had grown more than
  • usually morose and incalculable, and Ned Silverton went about with an air
  • that seemed to challenge the universe. The freedom and lightness of the
  • ducal intercourse made an agreeable change from these complications, and
  • Lily was tempted, after luncheon, to adjourn in the wake of her
  • companions to the hectic atmosphere of the Casino. She did not mean to
  • play; her diminished pocket-money offered small scope for the adventure;
  • but it amused her to sit on a divan, under the doubtful protection of the
  • Duchess's back, while the latter hung above her stakes at a neighbouring
  • table.
  • The rooms were packed with the gazing throng which, in the afternoon
  • hours, trickles heavily between the tables, like the Sunday crowd in a
  • lion-house. In the stagnant flow of the mass, identities were hardly
  • distinguishable; but Lily presently saw Mrs. Bry cleaving her determined
  • way through the doors, and, in the broad wake she left, the light figure
  • of Mrs. Fisher bobbing after her like a row-boat at the stern of a tug.
  • Mrs. Bry pressed on, evidently animated by the resolve to reach a certain
  • point in the rooms; but Mrs. Fisher, as she passed Lily, broke from her
  • towing-line, and let herself float to the girl's side.
  • "Lose her?" she echoed the latter's query, with an indifferent glance at
  • Mrs. Bry's retreating back. "I daresay--it doesn't matter: I HAVE lost
  • her already." And, as Lily exclaimed, she added: "We had an awful row
  • this morning. You know, of course, that the Duchess chucked her at dinner
  • last night, and she thinks it was my fault--my want of management. The
  • worst of it is, the message--just a mere word by telephone--came so late
  • that the dinner HAD to be paid for; and Becassin HAD run it up--it had
  • been so drummed into him that the Duchess was coming!" Mrs. Fisher
  • indulged in a faint laugh at the remembrance. "Paying for what she
  • doesn't get rankles so dreadfully with Louisa: I can't make her see that
  • it's one of the preliminary steps to getting what you haven't paid
  • for--and as I was the nearest thing to smash, she smashed me to atoms,
  • poor dear!"
  • Lily murmured her commiseration. Impulses of sympathy came naturally to
  • her, and it was instinctive to proffer her help to Mrs. Fisher.
  • "If there's anything I can do--if it's only a question of meeting the
  • Duchess! I heard her say she thought Mr. Bry amusing----"
  • But Mrs. Fisher interposed with a decisive gesture. "My dear, I have my
  • pride: the pride of my trade. I couldn't manage the Duchess, and I can't
  • palm off your arts on Louisa Bry as mine. I've taken the final step: I
  • go to Paris tonight with the Sam Gormers. THEY'RE still in the elementary
  • stage; an Italian Prince is a great deal more than a Prince to them, and
  • they're always on the brink of taking a courier for one. To save them
  • from that is my present mission." She laughed again at the picture. "But
  • before I go I want to make my last will and testament--I want to leave
  • you the Brys."
  • "Me?" Miss Bart joined in her amusement. "It's charming of you to
  • remember me, dear; but really----"
  • "You're already so well provided for?" Mrs. Fisher flashed a sharp glance
  • at her. "ARE you, though, Lily--to the point of rejecting my offer?"
  • Miss Bart coloured slowly. "What I really meant was, that the Brys
  • wouldn't in the least care to be so disposed of."
  • Mrs. Fisher continued to probe her embarrassment with an unflinching eye.
  • "What you really meant was that you've snubbed the Brys horribly; and you
  • know that they know----"
  • "Carry!"
  • "Oh, on certain sides Louisa bristles with perceptions. If you'd even
  • managed to have them asked once on the Sabrina--especially when royalties
  • were coming! But it's not too late," she ended earnestly, "it's not too
  • late for either of you."
  • Lily smiled. "Stay over, and I'll get the Duchess to dine with them."
  • "I shan't stay over--the Gormers have paid for my SALON-LIT," said Mrs.
  • Fisher with simplicity. "But get the Duchess to dine with them all the
  • same."
  • Lily's smile again flowed into a slight laugh: her friend's importunity
  • was beginning to strike her as irrelevant. "I'm sorry I have been
  • negligent about the Brys----" she began.
  • "Oh, as to the Brys--it's you I'm thinking of," said Mrs. Fisher
  • abruptly. She paused, and then, bending forward, with a lowered voice:
  • "You know we all went on to Nice last night when the Duchess chucked us.
  • It was Louisa's idea--I told her what I thought of it."
  • Miss Bart assented. "Yes--I caught sight of you on the way back, at the
  • station."
  • "Well, the man who was in the carriage with you and George Dorset--that
  • horrid little Dabham who does 'Society Notes from the Riviera'--had been
  • dining with us at Nice. And he's telling everybody that you and Dorset
  • came back alone after midnight."
  • "Alone--? When he was with us?" Lily laughed, but her laugh faded into
  • gravity under the prolonged implication of Mrs. Fisher's look. "We DID
  • come back alone--if that's so very dreadful! But whose fault was it? The
  • Duchess was spending the night at Cimiez with the Crown Princess; Bertha
  • got bored with the show, and went off early, promising to meet us at the
  • station. We turned up on time, but she didn't--she didn't turn up at all!"
  • Miss Bart made this announcement in the tone of one who presents, with
  • careless assurance, a complete vindication; but Mrs. Fisher received it
  • in a manner almost inconsequent. She seemed to have lost sight of her
  • friend's part in the incident: her inward vision had taken another slant.
  • "Bertha never turned up at all? Then how on earth did she get back?"
  • "Oh, by the next train, I suppose; there were two extra ones for the
  • FETE. At any rate, I know she's safe on the yacht, though I haven't yet
  • seen her; but you see it was not my fault," Lily summed up.
  • "Not your fault that Bertha didn't turn up? My poor child, if only you
  • don't have to pay for it!" Mrs. Fisher rose--she had seen Mrs. Bry
  • surging back in her direction. "There's Louisa, and I must be off--oh,
  • we're on the best of terms externally; we're lunching together; but at
  • heart it's ME she's lunching on," she explained; and with a last
  • hand-clasp and a last look, she added: "Remember, I leave her to you;
  • she's hovering now, ready to take you in."
  • Lily carried the impression of Mrs. Fisher's leave-taking away with her
  • from the Casino doors. She had accomplished, before leaving, the first
  • step toward her reinstatement in Mrs. Bry's good graces. An affable
  • advance--a vague murmur that they must see more of each other--an
  • allusive glance to a near future that was felt to include the Duchess as
  • well as the Sabrina--how easily it was all done, if one possessed the
  • knack of doing it! She wondered at herself, as she had so often
  • wondered, that, possessing the knack, she did not more consistently
  • exercise it. But sometimes she was forgetful--and sometimes, could it be
  • that she was proud? Today, at any rate, she had been vaguely conscious of
  • a reason for sinking her pride, had in fact even sunk it to the point of
  • suggesting to Lord Hubert Dacey, whom she ran across on the Casino steps,
  • that he might really get the Duchess to dine with the Brys, if SHE
  • undertook to have them asked on the Sabrina. Lord Hubert had promised his
  • help, with the readiness on which she could always count: it was his only
  • way of ever reminding her that he had once been ready to do so much more
  • for her. Her path, in short, seemed to smooth itself before her as she
  • advanced; yet the faint stir of uneasiness persisted. Had it been
  • produced, she wondered, by her chance meeting with Selden? She thought
  • not--time and change seemed so completely to have relegated him to his
  • proper distance. The sudden and exquisite reaction from her anxieties had
  • had the effect of throwing the recent past so far back that even Selden,
  • as part of it, retained a certain air of unreality. And he had made it so
  • clear that they were not to meet again; that he had merely dropped down
  • to Nice for a day or two, and had almost his foot on the next steamer.
  • No--that part of the past had merely surged up for a moment on the
  • fleeing surface of events; and now that it was submerged again, the
  • uncertainty, the apprehension persisted.
  • They grew to sudden acuteness as she caught sight of George Dorset
  • descending the steps of the Hotel de Paris and making for her across the
  • square. She had meant to drive down to the quay and regain the yacht; but
  • she now had the immediate impression that something more was to happen
  • first.
  • "Which way are you going? Shall we walk a bit?" he began, putting the
  • second question before the first was answered, and not waiting for a
  • reply to either before he directed her silently toward the comparative
  • seclusion of the lower gardens.
  • She detected in him at once all the signs of extreme nervous tension.
  • The skin was puffed out under his sunken eyes, and its sallowness had
  • paled to a leaden white against which his irregular eyebrows and long
  • reddish moustache were relieved with a saturnine effect. His appearance,
  • in short, presented an odd mixture of the bedraggled and the ferocious.
  • He walked beside her in silence, with quick precipitate steps, till they
  • reached the embowered slopes to the east of the Casino; then, pulling up
  • abruptly, he said: "Have you seen Bertha?"
  • "No--when I left the yacht she was not yet up."
  • He received this with a laugh like the whirring sound in a disabled
  • clock. "Not yet up? Had she gone to bed? Do you know at what time she
  • came on board? This morning at seven!" he exclaimed.
  • "At seven?" Lily started. "What happened--an accident to the train?"
  • He laughed again. "They missed the train--all the trains--they had to
  • drive back."
  • "Well----?" She hesitated, feeling at once how little even this necessity
  • accounted for the fatal lapse of hours.
  • "Well, they couldn't get a carriage at once--at that time of night, you
  • know--" the explanatory note made it almost seem as though he were
  • putting the case for his wife--"and when they finally did, it was only a
  • one-horse cab, and the horse was lame!"
  • "How tiresome! I see," she affirmed, with the more earnestness because
  • she was so nervously conscious that she did not; and after a pause she
  • added: "I'm so sorry--but ought we to have waited?"
  • "Waited for the one-horse cab? It would scarcely have carried the four of
  • us, do you think?"
  • She took this in what seemed the only possible way, with a laugh intended
  • to sink the question itself in his humorous treatment of it. "Well, it
  • would have been difficult; we should have had to walk by turns. But it
  • would have been jolly to see the sunrise."
  • "Yes: the sunrise WAS jolly," he agreed.
  • "Was it? You saw it, then?"
  • "I saw it, yes; from the deck. I waited up for them."
  • "Naturally--I suppose you were worried. Why didn't you call on me to
  • share your vigil?"
  • He stood still, dragging at his moustache with a lean weak hand. "I
  • don't think you would have cared for its DENOUEMENT," he said with sudden
  • grimness.
  • Again she was disconcerted by the abrupt change in his tone, and as in
  • one flash she saw the peril of the moment, and the need of keeping her
  • sense of it out of her eyes.
  • "DENOUEMENT--isn't that too big a word for such a small incident? The
  • worst of it, after all, is the fatigue which Bertha has probably slept
  • off by this time."
  • She clung to the note bravely, though its futility was now plain to her
  • in the glare of his miserable eyes.
  • "Don't--don't----!" he broke out, with the hurt cry of a child; and while
  • she tried to merge her sympathy, and her resolve to ignore any cause for
  • it, in one ambiguous murmur of deprecation, he dropped down on the bench
  • near which they had paused, and poured out the wretchedness of his soul.
  • It was a dreadful hour--an hour from which she emerged shrinking and
  • seared, as though her lids had been scorched by its actual glare. It was
  • not that she had never had premonitory glimpses of such an outbreak; but
  • rather because, here and there throughout the three months, the surface
  • of life had shown such ominous cracks and vapours that her fears had
  • always been on the alert for an upheaval. There had been moments when the
  • situation had presented itself under a homelier yet more vivid
  • image--that of a shaky vehicle, dashed by unbroken steeds over a bumping
  • road, while she cowered within, aware that the harness wanted mending,
  • and wondering what would give way first. Well--everything had given way
  • now; and the wonder was that the crazy outfit had held together so long.
  • Her sense of being involved in the crash, instead of merely witnessing it
  • from the road, was intensified by the way in which Dorset, through his
  • furies of denunciation and wild reactions of self-contempt, made her feel
  • the need he had of her, the place she had taken in his life. But for her,
  • what ear would have been open to his cries? And what hand but hers could
  • drag him up again to a footing of sanity and self-respect? All through
  • the stress of the struggle with him, she had been conscious of something
  • faintly maternal in her efforts to guide and uplift him. But for the
  • present, if he clung to her, it was not in order to be dragged up, but to
  • feel some one floundering in the depths with him: he wanted her to suffer
  • with him, not to help him to suffer less.
  • Happily for both, there was little physical strength to sustain his
  • frenzy. It left him, collapsed and breathing heavily, to an apathy so
  • deep and prolonged that Lily almost feared the passers-by would think it
  • the result of a seizure, and stop to offer their aid. But Monte Carlo is,
  • of all places, the one where the human bond is least close, and odd
  • sights are the least arresting. If a glance or two lingered on the
  • couple, no intrusive sympathy disturbed them; and it was Lily herself who
  • broke the silence by rising from her seat. With the clearing of her
  • vision the sweep of peril had extended, and she saw that the post of
  • danger was no longer at Dorset's side.
  • "If you won't go back, I must--don't make me leave you!" she urged.
  • But he remained mutely resistant, and she added: "What are you going to
  • do? You really can't sit here all night."
  • "I can go to an hotel. I can telegraph my lawyers." He sat up, roused by
  • a new thought. "By Jove, Selden's at Nice--I'll send for Selden!"
  • Lily, at this, reseated herself with a cry of alarm. "No, no, NO!" she
  • protested.
  • He swung round on her distrustfully. "Why not Selden? He's a lawyer isn't
  • he? One will do as well as another in a case like this."
  • "As badly as another, you mean. I thought you relied on ME to help you."
  • "You do--by being so sweet and patient with me. If it hadn't been for you
  • I'd have ended the thing long ago. But now it's got to end." He rose
  • suddenly, straightening himself with an effort. "You can't want to see
  • me ridiculous."
  • She looked at him kindly. "That's just it." Then, after a moment's
  • pondering, almost to her own surprise she broke out with a flash of
  • inspiration: "Well, go over and see Mr. Selden. You'll have time to do it
  • before dinner."
  • "Oh, DINNER----" he mocked her; but she left him with the smiling
  • rejoinder: "Dinner on board, remember; we'll put it off till nine if you
  • like."
  • It was past four already; and when a cab had dropped her at the quay, and
  • she stood waiting for the gig to put off for her, she began to wonder
  • what had been happening on the yacht. Of Silverton's whereabouts there
  • had been no mention. Had he returned to the Sabrina? Or could Bertha--the
  • dread alternative sprang on her suddenly--could Bertha, left to herself,
  • have gone ashore to rejoin him? Lily's heart stood still at the thought.
  • All her concern had hitherto been for young Silverton, not only because,
  • in such affairs, the woman's instinct is to side with the man, but
  • because his case made a peculiar appeal to her sympathies. He was so
  • desperately in earnest, poor youth, and his earnestness was of so
  • different a quality from Bertha's, though hers too was desperate enough.
  • The difference was that Bertha was in earnest only about herself, while
  • he was in earnest about her. But now, at the actual crisis, this
  • difference seemed to throw the weight of destitution on Bertha's side,
  • since at least he had her to suffer for, and she had only herself. At any
  • rate, viewed less ideally, all the disadvantages of such a situation were
  • for the woman; and it was to Bertha that Lily's sympathies now went out.
  • She was not fond of Bertha Dorset, but neither was she without a sense of
  • obligation, the heavier for having so little personal liking to sustain
  • it. Bertha had been kind to her, they had lived together, during the last
  • months, on terms of easy friendship, and the sense of friction of which
  • Lily had recently become aware seemed to make it the more urgent that she
  • should work undividedly in her friend's interest.
  • It was in Bertha's interest, certainly, that she had despatched Dorset to
  • consult with Lawrence Selden. Once the grotesqueness of the situation
  • accepted, she had seen at a glance that it was the safest in which Dorset
  • could find himself. Who but Selden could thus miraculously combine the
  • skill to save Bertha with the obligation of doing so? The consciousness
  • that much skill would be required made Lily rest thankfully in the
  • greatness of the obligation. Since he would HAVE to pull Bertha through
  • she could trust him to find a way; and she put the fulness of her trust
  • in the telegram she managed to send him on her way to the quay.
  • Thus far, then, Lily felt that she had done well; and the conviction
  • strengthened her for the task that remained. She and Bertha had never
  • been on confidential terms, but at such a crisis the barriers of reserve
  • must surely fall: Dorset's wild allusions to the scene of the morning
  • made Lily feel that they were down already, and that any attempt to
  • rebuild them would be beyond Bertha's strength. She pictured the poor
  • creature shivering behind her fallen defences and awaiting with suspense
  • the moment when she could take refuge in the first shelter that offered.
  • If only that shelter had not already offered itself elsewhere! As the gig
  • traversed the short distance between the quay and the yacht, Lily grew
  • more than ever alarmed at the possible consequences of her long absence.
  • What if the wretched Bertha, finding in all the long hours no soul to
  • turn to--but by this time Lily's eager foot was on the side-ladder, and
  • her first step on the Sabrina showed the worst of her apprehensions to be
  • unfounded; for there, in the luxurious shade of the after-deck, the
  • wretched Bertha, in full command of her usual attenuated elegance, sat
  • dispensing tea to the Duchess of Beltshire and Lord Hubert.
  • The sight filled Lily with such surprise that she felt that Bertha, at
  • least, must read its meaning in her look, and she was proportionately
  • disconcerted by the blankness of the look returned. But in an instant she
  • saw that Mrs. Dorset had, of necessity, to look blank before the others,
  • and that, to mitigate the effect of her own surprise, she must at once
  • produce some simple reason for it. The long habit of rapid transitions
  • made it easy for her to exclaim to the Duchess: "Why, I thought you'd
  • gone back to the Princess!" and this sufficed for the lady she addressed,
  • if it was hardly enough for Lord Hubert.
  • At least it opened the way to a lively explanation of how the Duchess
  • was, in fact, going back the next moment, but had first rushed out to the
  • yacht for a word with Mrs. Dorset on the subject of tomorrow's
  • dinner--the dinner with the Brys, to which Lord Hubert had finally
  • insisted on dragging them.
  • "To save my neck, you know!" he explained, with a glance that appealed to
  • Lily for some recognition of his promptness; and the Duchess added, with
  • her noble candour: "Mr. Bry has promised him a tip, and he says if we go
  • he'll pass it onto us."
  • This led to some final pleasantries, in which, as it seemed to Lily, Mrs.
  • Dorset bore her part with astounding bravery, and at the close of which
  • Lord Hubert, from half way down the side-ladder, called back, with an air
  • of numbering heads: "And of course we may count on Dorset too?"
  • "Oh, count on him," his wife assented gaily. She was keeping up well to
  • the last--but as she turned back from waving her adieux over the side,
  • Lily said to herself that the mask must drop and the soul of fear look
  • out.
  • Mrs. Dorset turned back slowly; perhaps she wanted time to steady her
  • muscles; at any rate, they were still under perfect control when,
  • dropping once more into her seat behind the tea-table, she remarked to
  • Miss Bart with a faint touch of irony: "I suppose I ought to say good
  • morning."
  • If it was a cue, Lily was ready to take it, though with only the vaguest
  • sense of what was expected of her in return. There was something
  • unnerving in the contemplation of Mrs. Dorset's composure, and she had to
  • force the light tone in which she answered: "I tried to see you this
  • morning, but you were not yet up."
  • "No--I got to bed late. After we missed you at the station I thought we
  • ought to wait for you till the last train." She spoke very gently, but
  • with just the least tinge of reproach.
  • "You missed us? You waited for us at the station?" Now indeed Lily was
  • too far adrift in bewilderment to measure the other's words or keep watch
  • on her own. "But I thought you didn't get to the station till after the
  • last train had left!"
  • Mrs. Dorset, examining her between lowered lids, met this with the
  • immediate query: "Who told you that?"
  • "George--I saw him just now in the gardens."
  • "Ah, is that George's version? Poor George--he was in no state to
  • remember what I told him. He had one of his worst attacks this morning,
  • and I packed him off to see the doctor. Do you know if he found him?"
  • Lily, still lost in conjecture, made no reply, and Mrs. Dorset settled
  • herself indolently in her seat. "He'll wait to see him; he was horribly
  • frightened about himself. It's very bad for him to be worried, and
  • whenever anything upsetting happens, it always brings on an attack."
  • This time Lily felt sure that a cue was being pressed on her; but it was
  • put forth with such startling suddenness, and with so incredible an air
  • of ignoring what it led up to, that she could only falter out doubtfully:
  • "Anything upsetting?"
  • "Yes--such as having you so conspicuously on his hands in the small
  • hours. You know, my dear, you're rather a big responsibility in such a
  • scandalous place after midnight."
  • At that--at the complete unexpectedness and the inconceivable audacity of
  • it--Lily could not restrain the tribute of an astonished laugh.
  • "Well, really--considering it was you who burdened him with the
  • responsibility!"
  • Mrs. Dorset took this with an exquisite mildness. "By not having the
  • superhuman cleverness to discover you in that frightful rush for the
  • train? Or the imagination to believe that you'd take it without us--you
  • and he all alone--instead of waiting quietly in the station till we DID
  • manage to meet you?"
  • Lily's colour rose: it was growing clear to her that Bertha was pursuing
  • an object, following a line she had marked out for herself. Only, with
  • such a doom impending, why waste time in these childish efforts to avert
  • it? The puerility of the attempt disarmed Lily's indignation: did it not
  • prove how horribly the poor creature was frightened?
  • "No; by our simply all keeping together at Nice," she returned.
  • "Keeping together? When it was you who seized the first opportunity to
  • rush off with the Duchess and her friends? My dear Lily, you are not a
  • child to be led by the hand!"
  • "No--nor to be lectured, Bertha, really; if that's what you are doing to
  • me now."
  • Mrs. Dorset smiled on her reproachfully. "Lecture you--I? Heaven forbid!
  • I was merely trying to give you a friendly hint. But it's usually the
  • other way round, isn't it? I'm expected to take hints, not to give them:
  • I've positively lived on them all these last months."
  • "Hints--from me to you?" Lily repeated.
  • "Oh, negative ones merely--what not to be and to do and to see. And I
  • think I've taken them to admiration. Only, my dear, if you'll let me say
  • so, I didn't understand that one of my negative duties was NOT to warn
  • you when you carried your imprudence too far."
  • A chill of fear passed over Miss Bart: a sense of remembered treachery
  • that was like the gleam of a knife in the dusk. But compassion, in a
  • moment, got the better of her instinctive recoil. What was this
  • outpouring of senseless bitterness but the tracked creature's attempt to
  • cloud the medium through which it was fleeing? It was on Lily's lips to
  • exclaim: "You poor soul, don't double and turn--come straight back to me,
  • and we'll find a way out!" But the words died under the impenetrable
  • insolence of Bertha's smile. Lily sat silent, taking the brunt of it
  • quietly, letting it spend itself on her to the last drop of its
  • accumulated falseness; then, without a word, she rose and went down to
  • her cabin.
  • Chapter 3
  • Miss Bart's telegram caught Lawrence Selden at the door of his hotel; and
  • having read it, he turned back to wait for Dorset. The message
  • necessarily left large gaps for conjecture; but all that he had recently
  • heard and seen made these but too easy to fill in. On the whole he was
  • surprised; for though he had perceived that the situation contained all
  • the elements of an explosion, he had often enough, in the range of his
  • personal experience, seen just such combinations subside into
  • harmlessness. Still, Dorset's spasmodic temper, and his wife's reckless
  • disregard of appearances, gave the situation a peculiar insecurity; and
  • it was less from the sense of any special relation to the case than from
  • a purely professional zeal, that Selden resolved to guide the pair to
  • safety. Whether, in the present instance, safety for either lay in
  • repairing so damaged a tie, it was no business of his to consider: he had
  • only, on general principles, to think of averting a scandal, and his
  • desire to avert it was increased by his fear of its involving Miss Bart.
  • There was nothing specific in this apprehension; he merely wished to
  • spare her the embarrassment of being ever so remotely connected with the
  • public washing of the Dorset linen.
  • How exhaustive and unpleasant such a process would be, he saw even more
  • vividly after his two hours' talk with poor Dorset. If anything came out
  • at all, it would be such a vast unpacking of accumulated moral rags as
  • left him, after his visitor had gone, with the feeling that he must fling
  • open the windows and have his room swept out. But nothing should come
  • out; and happily for his side of the case, the dirty rags, however pieced
  • together, could not, without considerable difficulty, be turned into a
  • homogeneous grievance. The torn edges did not always fit--there were
  • missing bits, there were disparities of size and colour, all of which it
  • was naturally Selden's business to make the most of in putting them under
  • his client's eye. But to a man in Dorset's mood the completest
  • demonstration could not carry conviction, and Selden saw that for the
  • moment all he could do was to soothe and temporize, to offer sympathy and
  • to counsel prudence. He let Dorset depart charged to the brim with the
  • sense that, till their next meeting, he must maintain a strictly
  • noncommittal attitude; that, in short, his share in the game consisted
  • for the present in looking on. Selden knew, however, that he could not
  • long keep such violences in equilibrium; and he promised to meet Dorset,
  • the next morning, at an hotel in Monte Carlo. Meanwhile he counted not a
  • little on the reaction of weakness and self-distrust that, in such
  • natures, follows on every unwonted expenditure of moral force; and his
  • telegraphic reply to Miss Bart consisted simply in the injunction:
  • "Assume that everything is as usual."
  • On this assumption, in fact, the early part of the following day was
  • lived through. Dorset, as if in obedience to Lily's imperative bidding,
  • had actually returned in time for a late dinner on the yacht. The repast
  • had been the most difficult moment of the day. Dorset was sunk in one of
  • the abysmal silences which so commonly followed on what his wife called
  • his "attacks" that it was easy, before the servants, to refer it to this
  • cause; but Bertha herself seemed, perversely enough, little disposed to
  • make use of this obvious means of protection. She simply left the brunt
  • of the situation on her husband's hands, as if too absorbed in a
  • grievance of her own to suspect that she might be the object of one
  • herself. To Lily this attitude was the most ominous, because the most
  • perplexing, element in the situation. As she tried to fan the weak
  • flicker of talk, to build up, again and again, the crumbling structure of
  • "appearances," her own attention was perpetually distracted by the
  • question: "What on earth can she be driving at?" There was something
  • positively exasperating in Bertha's attitude of isolated defiance. If
  • only she would have given her friend a hint they might still have worked
  • together successfully; but how could Lily be of use, while she was thus
  • obstinately shut out from participation? To be of use was what she
  • honestly wanted; and not for her own sake but for the Dorsets'. She had
  • not thought of her own situation at all: she was simply engrossed in
  • trying to put a little order in theirs. But the close of the short dreary
  • evening left her with a sense of effort hopelessly wasted. She had not
  • tried to see Dorset alone: she had positively shrunk from a renewal of
  • his confidences. It was Bertha whose confidence she sought, and who
  • should as eagerly have invited her own; and Bertha, as if in the
  • infatuation of self-destruction, was actually pushing away her rescuing
  • hand.
  • Lily, going to bed early, had left the couple to themselves; and it
  • seemed part of the general mystery in which she moved that more than an
  • hour should elapse before she heard Bertha walk down the silent passage
  • and regain her room. The morrow, rising on an apparent continuance of the
  • same conditions, revealed nothing of what had occurred between the
  • confronted pair. One fact alone outwardly proclaimed the change they were
  • all conspiring to ignore; and that was the non-appearance of Ned
  • Silverton. No one referred to it, and this tacit avoidance of the subject
  • kept it in the immediate foreground of consciousness. But there was
  • another change, perceptible only to Lily; and that was that Dorset now
  • avoided her almost as pointedly as his wife. Perhaps he was repenting his
  • rash outpourings of the previous day; perhaps only trying, in his clumsy
  • way, to conform to Selden's counsel to behave "as usual." Such
  • instructions no more make for easiness of attitude than the
  • photographer's behest to "look natural"; and in a creature as unconscious
  • as poor Dorset of the appearance he habitually presented, the struggle to
  • maintain a pose was sure to result in queer contortions.
  • It resulted, at any rate, in throwing Lily strangely on her own
  • resources. She had learned, on leaving her room, that Mrs. Dorset was
  • still invisible, and that Dorset had left the yacht early; and feeling
  • too restless to remain alone, she too had herself ferried ashore.
  • Straying toward the Casino, she attached herself to a group of
  • acquaintances from Nice, with whom she lunched, and in whose company she
  • was returning to the rooms when she encountered Selden crossing the
  • square. She could not, at the moment, separate herself definitely from
  • her party, who had hospitably assumed that she would remain with them
  • till they took their departure; but she found time for a momentary pause
  • of enquiry, to which he promptly returned: "I've seen him again--he's
  • just left me."
  • She waited before him anxiously. "Well? what has happened? What WILL
  • happen?"
  • "Nothing as yet--and nothing in the future, I think."
  • "It's over, then? It's settled? You're sure?"
  • He smiled. "Give me time. I'm not sure--but I'm a good deal surer." And
  • with that she had to content herself, and hasten on to the expectant
  • group on the steps.
  • Selden had in fact given her the utmost measure of his sureness, had even
  • stretched it a shade to meet the anxiety in her eyes. And now, as he
  • turned away, strolling down the hill toward the station, that anxiety
  • remained with him as the visible justification of his own. It was not,
  • indeed, anything specific that he feared: there had been a literal truth
  • in his declaration that he did not think anything would happen. What
  • troubled him was that, though Dorset's attitude had perceptibly changed,
  • the change was not clearly to be accounted for. It had certainly not been
  • produced by Selden's arguments, or by the action of his own soberer
  • reason. Five minutes' talk sufficed to show that some alien influence had
  • been at work, and that it had not so much subdued his resentment as
  • weakened his will, so that he moved under it in a state of apathy, like a
  • dangerous lunatic who has been drugged. Temporarily, no doubt, however
  • exerted, it worked for the general safety: the question was how long it
  • would last, and by what kind of reaction it was likely to be followed. On
  • these points Selden could gain no light; for he saw that one effect of
  • the transformation had been to shut him off from free communion with
  • Dorset. The latter, indeed, was still moved by the irresistible desire to
  • discuss his wrong; but, though he revolved about it with the same forlorn
  • tenacity, Selden was aware that something always restrained him from full
  • expression. His state was one to produce first weariness and then
  • impatience in his hearer; and when their talk was over, Selden began to
  • feel that he had done his utmost, and might justifiably wash his hands of
  • the sequel.
  • It was in this mind that he had been making his way back to the station
  • when Miss Bart crossed his path; but though, after his brief word with
  • her, he kept mechanically on his course, he was conscious of a gradual
  • change in his purpose. The change had been produced by the look in her
  • eyes; and in his eagerness to define the nature of that look, he dropped
  • into a seat in the gardens, and sat brooding upon the question. It was
  • natural enough, in all conscience, that she should appear anxious: a
  • young woman placed, in the close intimacy of a yachting-cruise, between a
  • couple on the verge of disaster, could hardly, aside from her concern for
  • her friends, be insensible to the awkwardness of her own position. The
  • worst of it was that, in interpreting Miss Bart's state of mind, so many
  • alternative readings were possible; and one of these, in Selden's
  • troubled mind, took the ugly form suggested by Mrs. Fisher. If the girl
  • was afraid, was she afraid for herself or for her friends? And to what
  • degree was her dread of a catastrophe intensified by the sense of being
  • fatally involved in it? The burden of offence lying manifestly with Mrs.
  • Dorset, this conjecture seemed on the face of it gratuitously unkind; but
  • Selden knew that in the most one-sided matrimonial quarrel there are
  • generally counter-charges to be brought, and that they are brought with
  • the greater audacity where the original grievance is so emphatic. Mrs.
  • Fisher had not hesitated to suggest the likelihood of Dorset's marrying
  • Miss Bart if "anything happened"; and though Mrs. Fisher's conclusions
  • were notoriously rash, she was shrewd enough in reading the signs from
  • which they were drawn. Dorset had apparently shown marked interest in the
  • girl, and this interest might be used to cruel advantage in his wife's
  • struggle for rehabilitation. Selden knew that Bertha would fight to the
  • last round of powder: the rashness of her conduct was illogically
  • combined with a cold determination to escape its consequences. She could
  • be as unscrupulous in fighting for herself as she was reckless in
  • courting danger, and whatever came to her hand at such moments was likely
  • to be used as a defensive missile. He did not, as yet, see clearly just
  • what course she was likely to take, but his perplexity increased his
  • apprehension, and with it the sense that, before leaving, he must speak
  • again with Miss Bart. Whatever her share in the situation--and he had
  • always honestly tried to resist judging her by her surroundings--however
  • free she might be from any personal connection with it, she would be
  • better out of the way of a possible crash; and since she had appealed to
  • him for help, it was clearly his business to tell her so.
  • This decision at last brought him to his feet, and carried him back to
  • the gambling rooms, within whose doors he had seen her disappearing; but
  • a prolonged exploration of the crowd failed to put him on her traces. He
  • saw instead, to his surprise, Ned Silverton loitering somewhat
  • ostentatiously about the tables; and the discovery that this actor in the
  • drama was not only hovering in the wings, but actually inviting the
  • exposure of the footlights, though it might have seemed to imply that all
  • peril was over, served rather to deepen Selden's sense of foreboding.
  • Charged with this impression he returned to the square, hoping to see
  • Miss Bart move across it, as every one in Monte Carlo seemed inevitably
  • to do at least a dozen times a day; but here again he waited vainly for a
  • glimpse of her, and the conclusion was slowly forced on him that she had
  • gone back to the Sabrina. It would be difficult to follow her there, and
  • still more difficult, should he do so, to contrive the opportunity for a
  • private word; and he had almost decided on the unsatisfactory alternative
  • of writing, when the ceaseless diorama of the square suddenly unrolled
  • before him the figures of Lord Hubert and Mrs. Bry.
  • Hailing them at once with his question, he learned from Lord Hubert that
  • Miss Bart had just returned to the Sabrina in Dorset's company; an
  • announcement so evidently disconcerting to him that Mrs. Bry, after a
  • glance from her companion, which seemed to act like the pressure on a
  • spring, brought forth the prompt proposal that he should come and meet
  • his friends at dinner that evening--"At Becassin's--a little dinner to
  • the Duchess," she flashed out before Lord Hubert had time to remove the
  • pressure.
  • Selden's sense of the privilege of being included in such company brought
  • him early in the evening to the door of the restaurant, where he paused
  • to scan the ranks of diners approaching down the brightly lit terrace.
  • There, while the Brys hovered within over the last agitating alternatives
  • of the MENU, he kept watch for the guests from the Sabrina, who at length
  • rose on the horizon in company with the Duchess, Lord and Lady Skiddaw
  • and the Stepneys. From this group it was easy for him to detach Miss
  • Bart on the pretext of a moment's glance into one of the brilliant shops
  • along the terrace, and to say to her, while they lingered together in the
  • white dazzle of a jeweller's window: "I stopped over to see you--to beg
  • of you to leave the yacht."
  • The eyes she turned on him showed a quick gleam of her former fear. "To
  • leave--? What do you mean? What has happened?"
  • "Nothing. But if anything should, why be in the way of it?"
  • The glare from the jeweller's window, deepening the pallour of her face,
  • gave to its delicate lines the sharpness of a tragic mask. "Nothing
  • will, I am sure; but while there's even a doubt left, how can you think I
  • would leave Bertha?"
  • The words rang out on a note of contempt--was it possibly of contempt for
  • himself? Well, he was willing to risk its renewal to the extent of
  • insisting, with an undeniable throb of added interest: "You have yourself
  • to think of, you know--" to which, with a strange fall of sadness in her
  • voice, she answered, meeting his eyes: "If you knew how little difference
  • that makes!"
  • "Oh, well, nothing WILL happen," he said, more for his own reassurance
  • than for hers; and "Nothing, nothing, of course!" she valiantly assented,
  • as they turned to overtake their companions.
  • In the thronged restaurant, taking their places about Mrs. Bry's
  • illuminated board, their confidence seemed to gain support from the
  • familiarity of their surroundings. Here were Dorset and his wife once
  • more presenting their customary faces to the world, she engrossed in
  • establishing her relation with an intensely new gown, he shrinking with
  • dyspeptic dread from the multiplied solicitations of the MENU. The mere
  • fact that they thus showed themselves together, with the utmost openness
  • the place afforded, seemed to declare beyond a doubt that their
  • differences were composed. How this end had been attained was still
  • matter for wonder, but it was clear that for the moment Miss Bart rested
  • confidently in the result; and Selden tried to achieve the same view by
  • telling himself that her opportunities for observation had been ampler
  • than his own.
  • Meanwhile, as the dinner advanced through a labyrinth of courses, in
  • which it became clear that Mrs. Bry had occasionally broken away from
  • Lord Hubert's restraining hand, Selden's general watchfulness began to
  • lose itself in a particular study of Miss Bart. It was one of the days
  • when she was so handsome that to be handsome was enough, and all the
  • rest--her grace, her quickness, her social felicities--seemed the
  • overflow of a bounteous nature. But what especially struck him was the
  • way in which she detached herself, by a hundred undefinable shades, from
  • the persons who most abounded in her own style. It was in just such
  • company, the fine flower and complete expression of the state she aspired
  • to, that the differences came out with special poignancy, her grace
  • cheapening the other women's smartness as her finely-discriminated
  • silences made their chatter dull. The strain of the last hours had
  • restored to her face the deeper eloquence which Selden had lately missed
  • in it, and the bravery of her words to him still fluttered in her voice
  • and eyes. Yes, she was matchless--it was the one word for her; and he
  • could give his admiration the freer play because so little personal
  • feeling remained in it. His real detachment from her had taken place, not
  • at the lurid moment of disenchantment, but now, in the sober after-light
  • of discrimination, where he saw her definitely divided from him by the
  • crudeness of a choice which seemed to deny the very differences he felt
  • in her. It was before him again in its completeness--the choice in which
  • she was content to rest: in the stupid costliness of the food and the
  • showy dulness of the talk, in the freedom of speech which never arrived
  • at wit and the freedom of act which never made for romance. The strident
  • setting of the restaurant, in which their table seemed set apart in a
  • special glare of publicity, and the presence at it of little Dabham of
  • the "Riviera Notes," emphasized the ideals of a world where
  • conspicuousness passed for distinction, and the society column had become
  • the roll of fame.
  • It was as the immortalizer of such occasions that little Dabham, wedged
  • in modest watchfulness between two brilliant neighbours, suddenly became
  • the centre of Selden's scrutiny. How much did he know of what was going
  • on, and how much, for his purpose, was still worth finding out? His
  • little eyes were like tentacles thrown out to catch the floating
  • intimations with which, to Selden, the air at moments seemed thick; then
  • again it cleared to its normal emptiness, and he could see nothing in it
  • for the journalist but leisure to note the elegance of the ladies' gowns.
  • Mrs. Dorset's, in particular, challenged all the wealth of Mr. Dabham's
  • vocabulary: it had surprises and subtleties worthy of what he would have
  • called "the literary style." At first, as Selden had noticed, it had been
  • almost too preoccupying to its wearer; but now she was in full command of
  • it, and was even producing her effects with unwonted freedom. Was she
  • not, indeed, too free, too fluent, for perfect naturalness? And was not
  • Dorset, to whom his glance had passed by a natural transition, too
  • jerkily wavering between the same extremes? Dorset indeed was always
  • jerky; but it seemed to Selden that tonight each vibration swung him
  • farther from his centre.
  • The dinner, meanwhile, was moving to its triumphant close, to the evident
  • satisfaction of Mrs. Bry, who, throned in apoplectic majesty between Lord
  • Skiddaw and Lord Hubert, seemed in spirit to be calling on Mrs. Fisher to
  • witness her achievement. Short of Mrs. Fisher her audience might have
  • been called complete; for the restaurant was crowded with persons mainly
  • gathered there for the purpose of spectatorship, and accurately posted as
  • to the names and faces of the celebrities they had come to see. Mrs. Bry,
  • conscious that all her feminine guests came under that heading, and that
  • each one looked her part to admiration, shone on Lily with all the
  • pent-up gratitude that Mrs. Fisher had failed to deserve. Selden,
  • catching the glance, wondered what part Miss Bart had played in
  • organizing the entertainment. She did, at least, a great deal to adorn
  • it; and as he watched the bright security with which she bore herself, he
  • smiled to think that he should have fancied her in need of help. Never
  • had she appeared more serenely mistress of the situation than when, at
  • the moment of dispersal, detaching herself a little from the group about
  • the table, she turned with a smile and a graceful slant of the shoulders
  • to receive her cloak from Dorset.
  • The dinner had been protracted over Mr. Bry's exceptional cigars and a
  • bewildering array of liqueurs, and many of the other tables were empty;
  • but a sufficient number of diners still lingered to give relief to the
  • leave-taking of Mrs. Bry's distinguished guests. This ceremony was drawn
  • out and complicated by the fact that it involved, on the part of the
  • Duchess and Lady Skiddaw, definite farewells, and pledges of speedy
  • reunion in Paris, where they were to pause and replenish their wardrobes
  • on the way to England. The quality of Mrs. Bry's hospitality, and of the
  • tips her husband had presumably imparted, lent to the manner of the
  • English ladies a general effusiveness which shed the rosiest light over
  • their hostess's future. In its glow Mrs. Dorset and the Stepneys were
  • also visibly included, and the whole scene had touches of intimacy worth
  • their weight in gold to the watchful pen of Mr. Dabham.
  • A glance at her watch caused the Duchess to exclaim to her sister that
  • they had just time to dash for their train, and the flurry of this
  • departure over, the Stepneys, who had their motor at the door, offered to
  • convey the Dorsets and Miss Bart to the quay. The offer was accepted,
  • and Mrs. Dorset moved away with her husband in attendance. Miss Bart had
  • lingered for a last word with Lord Hubert, and Stepney, on whom Mr. Bry
  • was pressing a final, and still more expensive, cigar, called out: "Come
  • on, Lily, if you're going back to the yacht."
  • Lily turned to obey; but as she did so, Mrs. Dorset, who had paused on
  • her way out, moved a few steps back toward the table.
  • "Miss Bart is not going back to the yacht," she said in a voice of
  • singular distinctness.
  • A startled look ran from eye to eye; Mrs. Bry crimsoned to the verge of
  • congestion, Mrs. Stepney slipped nervously behind her husband, and
  • Selden, in the general turmoil of his sensations, was mainly conscious of
  • a longing to grip Dabham by the collar and fling him out into the street.
  • Dorset, meanwhile, had stepped back to his wife's side. His face was
  • white, and he looked about him with cowed angry eyes. "Bertha!--Miss
  • Bart . . . this is some misunderstanding . . . some mistake . . ."
  • "Miss Bart remains here," his wife rejoined incisively. "And, I think,
  • George, we had better not detain Mrs. Stepney any longer."
  • Miss Bart, during this brief exchange of words, remained in admirable
  • erectness, slightly isolated from the embarrassed group about her. She
  • had paled a little under the shock of the insult, but the discomposure of
  • the surrounding faces was not reflected in her own. The faint disdain of
  • her smile seemed to lift her high above her antagonist's reach, and it
  • was not till she had given Mrs. Dorset the full measure of the distance
  • between them that she turned and extended her hand to her hostess.
  • "I am joining the Duchess tomorrow," she explained, "and it seemed easier
  • for me to remain on shore for the night."
  • She held firmly to Mrs. Bry's wavering eye while she gave this
  • explanation, but when it was over Selden saw her send a tentative glance
  • from one to another of the women's faces. She read their incredulity in
  • their averted looks, and in the mute wretchedness of the men behind them,
  • and for a miserable half-second he thought she quivered on the brink of
  • failure. Then, turning to him with an easy gesture, and the pale bravery
  • of her recovered smile--"Dear Mr. Selden," she said, "you promised to see
  • me to my cab."
  • Outside, the sky was gusty and overcast, and as Lily and Selden moved
  • toward the deserted gardens below the restaurant, spurts of warm rain
  • blew fitfully against their faces. The fiction of the cab had been
  • tacitly abandoned; they walked on in silence, her hand on his arm, till
  • the deeper shade of the gardens received them, and pausing beside a
  • bench, he said: "Sit down a moment."
  • She dropped to the seat without answering, but the electric lamp at the
  • bend of the path shed a gleam on the struggling misery of her face.
  • Selden sat down beside her, waiting for her to speak, fearful lest any
  • word he chose should touch too roughly on her wound, and kept also from
  • free utterance by the wretched doubt which had slowly renewed itself
  • within him. What had brought her to this pass? What weakness had placed
  • her so abominably at her enemy's mercy? And why should Bertha Dorset have
  • turned into an enemy at the very moment when she so obviously needed the
  • support of her sex? Even while his nerves raged at the subjection of
  • husbands to their wives, and at the cruelty of women to their kind,
  • reason obstinately harped on the proverbial relation between smoke and
  • fire. The memory of Mrs. Fisher's hints, and the corroboration of his own
  • impressions, while they deepened his pity also increased his constraint,
  • since, whichever way he sought a free outlet for sympathy, it was blocked
  • by the fear of committing a blunder.
  • Suddenly it struck him that his silence must seem almost as accusatory as
  • that of the men he had despised for turning from her; but before he could
  • find the fitting word she had cut him short with a question.
  • "Do you know of a quiet hotel? I can send for my maid in the morning."
  • "An hotel--HERE--that you can go to alone? It's not possible."
  • She met this with a pale gleam of her old playfulness. "What IS, then?
  • It's too wet to sleep in the gardens."
  • "But there must be some one----"
  • "Some one to whom I can go? Of course--any number--but at THIS hour? You
  • see my change of plan was rather sudden----"
  • "Good God--if you'd listened to me!" he cried, venting his helplessness
  • in a burst of anger.
  • She still held him off with the gentle mockery of her smile. "But haven't
  • I?" she rejoined. "You advised me to leave the yacht, and I'm leaving it."
  • He saw then, with a pang of self-reproach, that she meant neither to
  • explain nor to defend herself; that by his miserable silence he had
  • forfeited all chance of helping her, and that the decisive hour was past.
  • She had risen, and stood before him in a kind of clouded majesty, like
  • some deposed princess moving tranquilly to exile.
  • "Lily!" he exclaimed, with a note of despairing appeal; but--"Oh, not
  • now," she gently admonished him; and then, in all the sweetness of her
  • recovered composure: "Since I must find shelter somewhere, and since
  • you're so kindly here to help me----"
  • He gathered himself up at the challenge. "You will do as I tell you?
  • There's but one thing, then; you must go straight to your cousins, the
  • Stepneys."
  • "Oh--" broke from her with a movement of instinctive resistance; but he
  • insisted: "Come--it's late, and you must appear to have gone there
  • directly."
  • He had drawn her hand into his arm, but she held him back with a last
  • gesture of protest. "I can't--I can't--not that--you don't know Gwen: you
  • mustn't ask me!"
  • "I MUST ask you--you must obey me," he persisted, though infected at
  • heart by her own fear.
  • Her voice sank to a whisper: "And if she refuses?"--but, "Oh, trust
  • me--trust me!" he could only insist in return; and yielding to his touch,
  • she let him lead her back in silence to the edge of the square.
  • In the cab they continued to remain silent through the brief drive which
  • carried them to the illuminated portals of the Stepneys' hotel. Here he
  • left her outside, in the darkness of the raised hood, while his name was
  • sent up to Stepney, and he paced the showy hall, awaiting the latter's
  • descent. Ten minutes later the two men passed out together between the
  • gold-laced custodians of the threshold; but in the vestibule Stepney drew
  • up with a last flare of reluctance.
  • "It's understood, then?" he stipulated nervously, with his hand on
  • Selden's arm. "She leaves tomorrow by the early train--and my wife's
  • asleep, and can't be disturbed."
  • Chapter 4
  • The blinds of Mrs. Peniston's drawing-room were drawn down against the
  • oppressive June sun, and in the sultry twilight the faces of her
  • assembled relatives took on a fitting shadow of bereavement. They were
  • all there: Van Alstynes, Stepneys and Melsons--even a stray Peniston or
  • two, indicating, by a greater latitude in dress and manner, the fact of
  • remoter relationship and more settled hopes. The Peniston side was, in
  • fact, secure in the knowledge that the bulk of Mr. Peniston's property
  • "went back"; while the direct connection hung suspended on the disposal
  • of his widow's private fortune and on the uncertainty of its extent.
  • Jack Stepney, in his new character as the richest nephew, tacitly took
  • the lead, emphasizing his importance by the deeper gloss of his mourning
  • and the subdued authority of his manner; while his wife's bored attitude
  • and frivolous gown proclaimed the heiress's disregard of the
  • insignificant interests at stake. Old Ned Van Alstyne, seated next to her
  • in a coat that made affliction dapper, twirled his white moustache to
  • conceal the eager twitch of his lips; and Grace Stepney, red-nosed and
  • smelling of crape, whispered emotionally to Mrs. Herbert Melson: "I
  • couldn't BEAR to see the Niagara anywhere else!"
  • A rustle of weeds and quick turning of heads hailed the opening of the
  • door, and Lily Bart appeared, tall and noble in her black dress, with
  • Gerty Farish at her side. The women's faces, as she paused
  • interrogatively on the threshold, were a study in hesitation. One or two
  • made faint motions of recognition, which might have been subdued either
  • by the solemnity of the scene, or by the doubt as to how far the others
  • meant to go; Mrs. Jack Stepney gave a careless nod, and Grace Stepney,
  • with a sepulchral gesture, indicated a seat at her side. But Lily,
  • ignoring the invitation, as well as Jack Stepney's official attempt to
  • direct her, moved across the room with her smooth free gait, and seated
  • herself in a chair which seemed to have been purposely placed apart from
  • the others.
  • It was the first time that she had faced her family since her return from
  • Europe, two weeks earlier; but if she perceived any uncertainty in their
  • welcome, it served only to add a tinge of irony to the usual composure of
  • her bearing. The shock of dismay with which, on the dock, she had heard
  • from Gerty Farish of Mrs. Peniston's sudden death, had been mitigated,
  • almost at once, by the irrepressible thought that now, at last, she would
  • be able to pay her debts. She had looked forward with considerable
  • uneasiness to her first encounter with her aunt. Mrs. Peniston had
  • vehemently opposed her niece's departure with the Dorsets, and had marked
  • her continued disapproval by not writing during Lily's absence. The
  • certainty that she had heard of the rupture with the Dorsets made the
  • prospect of the meeting more formidable; and how should Lily have
  • repressed a quick sense of relief at the thought that, instead of
  • undergoing the anticipated ordeal, she had only to enter gracefully on a
  • long-assured inheritance? It had been, in the consecrated phrase, "always
  • understood" that Mrs. Peniston was to provide handsomely for her niece;
  • and in the latter's mind the understanding had long since crystallized
  • into fact.
  • "She gets everything, of course--I don't see what we're here for," Mrs.
  • Jack Stepney remarked with careless loudness to Ned Van Alstyne; and the
  • latter's deprecating murmur--"Julia was always a just woman"--might have
  • been interpreted as signifying either acquiescence or doubt.
  • "Well, it's only about four hundred thousand," Mrs. Stepney rejoined with
  • a yawn; and Grace Stepney, in the silence produced by the lawyer's
  • preliminary cough, was heard to sob out: "They won't find a towel
  • missing--I went over them with her the very day----"
  • Lily, oppressed by the close atmosphere, and the stifling odour of fresh
  • mourning, felt her attention straying as Mrs. Peniston's lawyer, solemnly
  • erect behind the Buhl table at the end of the room, began to rattle
  • through the preamble of the will.
  • "It's like being in church," she reflected, wondering vaguely where Gwen
  • Stepney had got such an awful hat. Then she noticed how stout Jack had
  • grown--he would soon be almost as plethoric as Herbert Melson, who sat a
  • few feet off, breathing puffily as he leaned his black-gloved hands on
  • his stick.
  • "I wonder why rich people always grow fat--I suppose it's because there's
  • nothing to worry them. If I inherit, I shall have to be careful of my
  • figure," she mused, while the lawyer droned on through a labyrinth of
  • legacies. The servants came first, then a few charitable institutions,
  • then several remoter Melsons and Stepneys, who stirred consciously as
  • their names rang out, and then subsided into a state of impassiveness
  • befitting the solemnity of the occasion. Ned Van Alstyne, Jack Stepney,
  • and a cousin or two followed, each coupled with the mention of a few
  • thousands: Lily wondered that Grace Stepney was not among them. Then she
  • heard her own name--"to my niece Lily Bart ten thousand dollars--" and
  • after that the lawyer again lost himself in a coil of unintelligible
  • periods, from which the concluding phrase flashed out with startling
  • distinctness: "and the residue of my estate to my dear cousin and
  • name-sake, Grace Julia Stepney."
  • There was a subdued gasp of surprise, a rapid turning of heads, and a
  • surging of sable figures toward the corner in which Miss Stepney wailed
  • out her sense of unworthiness through the crumpled ball of a black-edged
  • handkerchief.
  • Lily stood apart from the general movement, feeling herself for the first
  • time utterly alone. No one looked at her, no one seemed aware of her
  • presence; she was probing the very depths of insignificance. And under
  • her sense of the collective indifference came the acuter pang of hopes
  • deceived. Disinherited--she had been disinherited--and for Grace
  • Stepney! She met Gerty's lamentable eyes, fixed on her in a despairing
  • effort at consolation, and the look brought her to herself. There was
  • something to be done before she left the house: to be done with all the
  • nobility she knew how to put into such gestures. She advanced to the
  • group about Miss Stepney, and holding out her hand said simply: "Dear
  • Grace, I am so glad."
  • The other ladies had fallen back at her approach, and a space created
  • itself about her. It widened as she turned to go, and no one advanced to
  • fill it up. She paused a moment, glancing about her, calmly taking the
  • measure of her situation. She heard some one ask a question about the
  • date of the will; she caught a fragment of the lawyer's answer--something
  • about a sudden summons, and an "earlier instrument." Then the tide of
  • dispersal began to drift past her; Mrs. Jack Stepney and Mrs. Herbert
  • Melson stood on the doorstep awaiting their motor; a sympathizing group
  • escorted Grace Stepney to the cab it was felt to be fitting she should
  • take, though she lived but a street or two away; and Miss Bart and Gerty
  • found themselves almost alone in the purple drawing-room, which more than
  • ever, in its stuffy dimness, resembled a well-kept family vault, in which
  • the last corpse had just been decently deposited.
  • In Gerty Farish's sitting-room, whither a hansom had carried the two
  • friends, Lily dropped into a chair with a faint sound of laughter: it
  • struck her as a humorous coincidence that her aunt's legacy should so
  • nearly represent the amount of her debt to Trenor. The need of
  • discharging that debt had reasserted itself with increased urgency since
  • her return to America, and she spoke her first thought in saying to the
  • anxiously hovering Gerty: "I wonder when the legacies will be paid."
  • But Miss Farish could not pause over the legacies; she broke into a
  • larger indignation. "Oh, Lily, it's unjust; it's cruel--Grace Stepney
  • must FEEL she has no right to all that money!"
  • "Any one who knew how to please Aunt Julia has a right to her money,"
  • Miss Bart rejoined philosophically.
  • "But she was devoted to you--she led every one to think--" Gerty checked
  • herself in evident embarrassment, and Miss Bart turned to her with a
  • direct look. "Gerty, be honest: this will was made only six weeks ago.
  • She had heard of my break with the Dorsets?"
  • "Every one heard, of course, that there had been some disagreement--some
  • misunderstanding----"
  • "Did she hear that Bertha turned me off the yacht?"
  • "Lily!"
  • "That was what happened, you know. She said I was trying to marry George
  • Dorset. She did it to make him think she was jealous. Isn't that what
  • she told Gwen Stepney?"
  • "I don't know--I don't listen to such horrors."
  • "I MUST listen to them--I must know where I stand." She paused, and again
  • sounded a faint note of derision. "Did you notice the women? They were
  • afraid to snub me while they thought I was going to get the
  • money--afterward they scuttled off as if I had the plague." Gerty
  • remained silent, and she continued: "I stayed on to see what would
  • happen. They took their cue from Gwen Stepney and Lulu Melson--I saw them
  • watching to see what Gwen would do.--Gerty, I must know just what is
  • being said of me."
  • "I tell you I don't listen----"
  • "One hears such things without listening." She rose and laid her resolute
  • hands on Miss Farish's shoulders. "Gerty, are people going to cut me?"
  • "Your FRIENDS, Lily--how can you think it?"
  • "Who are one's friends at such a time? Who, but you, you poor trustful
  • darling? And heaven knows what YOU suspect me of!" She kissed Gerty with
  • a whimsical murmur. "You'd never let it make any difference--but then
  • you're fond of criminals, Gerty! How about the irreclaimable ones,
  • though? For I'm absolutely impenitent, you know."
  • She drew herself up to the full height of her slender majesty, towering
  • like some dark angel of defiance above the troubled Gerty, who could only
  • falter out: "Lily, Lily--how can you laugh about such things?"
  • "So as not to weep, perhaps. But no--I'm not of the tearful order. I
  • discovered early that crying makes my nose red, and the knowledge has
  • helped me through several painful episodes." She took a restless turn
  • about the room, and then, reseating herself, lifted the bright mockery of
  • her eyes to Gerty's anxious countenance.
  • "I shouldn't have minded, you know, if I'd got the money--" and at Miss
  • Farish's protesting "Oh!" she repeated calmly: "Not a straw, my dear;
  • for, in the first place, they wouldn't have quite dared to ignore me; and
  • if they had, it wouldn't have mattered, because I should have been
  • independent of them. But now--!" The irony faded from her eyes, and she
  • bent a clouded face upon her friend.
  • "How can you talk so, Lily? Of course the money ought to have been yours,
  • but after all that makes no difference. The important thing----" Gerty
  • paused, and then continued firmly: "The important thing is that you
  • should clear yourself--should tell your friends the whole truth."
  • "The whole truth?" Miss Bart laughed. "What is truth? Where a woman is
  • concerned, it's the story that's easiest to believe. In this case it's a
  • great deal easier to believe Bertha Dorset's story than mine, because she
  • has a big house and an opera box, and it's convenient to be on good terms
  • with her."
  • Miss Farish still fixed her with an anxious gaze. "But what IS your
  • story, Lily? I don't believe any one knows it yet."
  • "My story?--I don't believe I know it myself. You see I never thought of
  • preparing a version in advance as Bertha did--and if I had, I don't think
  • I should take the trouble to use it now."
  • But Gerty continued with her quiet reasonableness: "I don't want a
  • version prepared in advance--but I want you to tell me exactly what
  • happened from the beginning."
  • "From the beginning?" Miss Bart gently mimicked her. "Dear Gerty, how
  • little imagination you good people have! Why, the beginning was in my
  • cradle, I suppose--in the way I was brought up, and the things I was
  • taught to care for. Or no--I won't blame anybody for my faults: I'll say
  • it was in my blood, that I got it from some wicked pleasure-loving
  • ancestress, who reacted against the homely virtues of New Amsterdam, and
  • wanted to be back at the court of the Charleses!" And as Miss Farish
  • continued to press her with troubled eyes, she went on impatiently: "You
  • asked me just now for the truth--well, the truth about any girl is that
  • once she's talked about she's done for; and the more she explains her
  • case the worse it looks.--My good Gerty, you don't happen to have a
  • cigarette about you?"
  • In her stuffy room at the hotel to which she had gone on landing, Lily
  • Bart that evening reviewed her situation. It was the last week in June,
  • and none of her friends were in town. The few relatives who had stayed
  • on, or returned, for the reading of Mrs. Peniston's will, had taken
  • flight again that afternoon to Newport or Long Island; and not one of
  • them had made any proffer of hospitality to Lily. For the first time in
  • her life she found herself utterly alone except for Gerty Farish. Even at
  • the actual moment of her break with the Dorsets she had not had so keen a
  • sense of its consequences, for the Duchess of Beltshire, hearing of the
  • catastrophe from Lord Hubert, had instantly offered her protection, and
  • under her sheltering wing Lily had made an almost triumphant progress to
  • London. There she had been sorely tempted to linger on in a society which
  • asked of her only to amuse and charm it, without enquiring too curiously
  • how she had acquired her gift for doing so; but Selden, before they
  • parted, had pressed on her the urgent need of returning at once to her
  • aunt, and Lord Hubert, when he presently reappeared in London, abounded
  • in the same counsel. Lily did not need to be told that the Duchess's
  • championship was not the best road to social rehabilitation, and as she
  • was besides aware that her noble defender might at any moment drop her in
  • favour of a new PROTEGEE, she reluctantly decided to return to America.
  • But she had not been ten minutes on her native shore before she realized
  • that she had delayed too long to regain it. The Dorsets, the Stepneys,
  • the Brys--all the actors and witnesses in the miserable drama--had
  • preceded her with their version of the case; and, even had she seen the
  • least chance of gaining a hearing for her own, some obscure disdain and
  • reluctance would have restrained her. She knew it was not by
  • explanations and counter-charges that she could ever hope to recover her
  • lost standing; but even had she felt the least trust in their efficacy,
  • she would still have been held back by the feeling which had kept her
  • from defending herself to Gerty Farish--a feeling that was half pride and
  • half humiliation. For though she knew she had been ruthlessly sacrificed
  • to Bertha Dorset's determination to win back her husband, and though her
  • own relation to Dorset had been that of the merest good-fellowship, yet
  • she had been perfectly aware from the outset that her part in the affair
  • was, as Carry Fisher brutally put it, to distract Dorset's attention from
  • his wife. That was what she was "there for": it was the price she had
  • chosen to pay for three months of luxury and freedom from care. Her
  • habit of resolutely facing the facts, in her rare moments of
  • introspection, did not now allow her to put any false gloss on the
  • situation. She had suffered for the very faithfulness with which she had
  • carried out her part of the tacit compact, but the part was not a
  • handsome one at best, and she saw it now in all the ugliness of failure.
  • She saw, too, in the same uncompromising light, the train of consequences
  • resulting from that failure; and these became clearer to her with every
  • day of her weary lingering in town. She stayed on partly for the comfort
  • of Gerty Farish's nearness, and partly for lack of knowing where to go.
  • She understood well enough the nature of the task before her. She must
  • set out to regain, little by little, the position she had lost; and the
  • first step in the tedious task was to find out, as soon as possible, on
  • how many of her friends she could count. Her hopes were mainly centred on
  • Mrs. Trenor, who had treasures of easy-going tolerance for those who were
  • amusing or useful to her, and in the noisy rush of whose existence the
  • still small voice of detraction was slow to make itself heard. But Judy,
  • though she must have been apprised of Miss Bart's return, had not even
  • recognized it by the formal note of condolence which her friend's
  • bereavement demanded. Any advance on Lily's side might have been
  • perilous: there was nothing to do but to trust to the happy chance of an
  • accidental meeting, and Lily knew that, even so late in the season, there
  • was always a hope of running across her friends in their frequent
  • passages through town.
  • To this end she assiduously showed herself at the restaurants they
  • frequented, where, attended by the troubled Gerty, she lunched
  • luxuriously, as she said, on her expectations.
  • "My dear Gerty, you wouldn't have me let the head-waiter see that I've
  • nothing to live on but Aunt Julia's legacy? Think of Grace Stepney's
  • satisfaction if she came in and found us lunching on cold mutton and tea!
  • What sweet shall we have today, dear--COUPE JACQUES or PECHES A LA MELBA?"
  • She dropped the MENU abruptly, with a quick heightening of colour, and
  • Gerty, following her glance, was aware of the advance, from an inner
  • room, of a party headed by Mrs. Trenor and Carry Fisher. It was
  • impossible for these ladies and their companions--among whom Lily had at
  • once distinguished both Trenor and Rosedale--not to pass, in going out,
  • the table at which the two girls were seated; and Gerty's sense of the
  • fact betrayed itself in the helpless trepidation of her manner. Miss
  • Bart, on the contrary, borne forward on the wave of her buoyant grace,
  • and neither shrinking from her friends nor appearing to lie in wait for
  • them, gave to the encounter the touch of naturalness which she could
  • impart to the most strained situations. Such embarrassment as was shown
  • was on Mrs. Trenor's side, and manifested itself in the mingling of
  • exaggerated warmth with imperceptible reservations. Her loudly affirmed
  • pleasure at seeing Miss Bart took the form of a nebulous generalization,
  • which included neither enquiries as to her future nor the expression of a
  • definite wish to see her again. Lily, well-versed in the language of
  • these omissions, knew that they were equally intelligible to the other
  • members of the party: even Rosedale, flushed as he was with the
  • importance of keeping such company, at once took the temperature of Mrs.
  • Trenor's cordiality, and reflected it in his off-hand greeting of Miss
  • Bart. Trenor, red and uncomfortable, had cut short his salutations on the
  • pretext of a word to say to the head-waiter; and the rest of the group
  • soon melted away in Mrs. Trenor's wake.
  • It was over in a moment--the waiter, MENU in hand, still hung on the
  • result of the choice between COUPE JACQUES and PECHES A LA MELBA--but
  • Miss Bart, in the interval, had taken the measure of her fate. Where Judy
  • Trenor led, all the world would follow; and Lily had the doomed sense of
  • the castaway who has signalled in vain to fleeing sails.
  • In a flash she remembered Mrs. Trenor's complaints of Carry Fisher's
  • rapacity, and saw that they denoted an unexpected acquaintance with her
  • husband's private affairs. In the large tumultuous disorder of the life
  • at Bellomont, where no one seemed to have time to observe any one else,
  • and private aims and personal interests were swept along unheeded in the
  • rush of collective activities, Lily had fancied herself sheltered from
  • inconvenient scrutiny; but if Judy knew when Mrs. Fisher borrowed money
  • of her husband, was she likely to ignore the same transaction on Lily's
  • part? If she was careless of his affections she was plainly jealous of
  • his pocket; and in that fact Lily read the explanation of her rebuff. The
  • immediate result of these conclusions was the passionate resolve to pay
  • back her debt to Trenor. That obligation discharged, she would have but a
  • thousand dollars of Mrs. Peniston's legacy left, and nothing to live on
  • but her own small income, which was considerably less than Gerty Farish's
  • wretched pittance; but this consideration gave way to the imperative
  • claim of her wounded pride. She must be quits with the Trenors first;
  • after that she would take thought for the future.
  • In her ignorance of legal procrastinations she had supposed that her
  • legacy would be paid over within a few days of the reading of her aunt's
  • will; and after an interval of anxious suspense, she wrote to enquire the
  • cause of the delay. There was another interval before Mrs. Peniston's
  • lawyer, who was also one of the executors, replied to the effect that,
  • some questions having arisen relative to the interpretation of the will,
  • he and his associates might not be in a position to pay the legacies till
  • the close of the twelvemonth legally allotted for their settlement.
  • Bewildered and indignant, Lily resolved to try the effect of a personal
  • appeal; but she returned from her expedition with a sense of the
  • powerlessness of beauty and charm against the unfeeling processes of the
  • law. It seemed intolerable to live on for another year under the weight
  • of her debt; and in her extremity she decided to turn to Miss Stepney,
  • who still lingered in town, immersed in the delectable duty of "going
  • over" her benefactress's effects. It was bitter enough for Lily to ask a
  • favour of Grace Stepney, but the alternative was bitterer still; and one
  • morning she presented herself at Mrs. Peniston's, where Grace, for the
  • facilitation of her pious task, had taken up a provisional abode.
  • The strangeness of entering as a suppliant the house where she had so
  • long commanded, increased Lily's desire to shorten the ordeal; and when
  • Miss Stepney entered the darkened drawing-room, rustling with the best
  • quality of crape, her visitor went straight to the point: would she be
  • willing to advance the amount of the expected legacy?
  • Grace, in reply, wept and wondered at the request, bemoaned the
  • inexorableness of the law, and was astonished that Lily had not realized
  • the exact similarity of their positions. Did she think that only the
  • payment of the legacies had been delayed? Why, Miss Stepney herself had
  • not received a penny of her inheritance, and was paying rent--yes,
  • actually!--for the privilege of living in a house that belonged to her.
  • She was sure it was not what poor dear cousin Julia would have
  • wished--she had told the executors so to their faces; but they were
  • inaccessible to reason, and there was nothing to do but to wait. Let Lily
  • take example by her, and be patient--let them both remember how
  • beautifully patient cousin Julia had always been.
  • Lily made a movement which showed her imperfect assimilation of this
  • example. "But you will have everything, Grace--it would be easy for you
  • to borrow ten times the amount I am asking for."
  • "Borrow--easy for me to borrow?" Grace Stepney rose up before her in
  • sable wrath. "Do you imagine for a moment that I would raise money on my
  • expectations from cousin Julia, when I know so well her unspeakable
  • horror of every transaction of the sort? Why, Lily, if you must know the
  • truth, it was the idea of your being in debt that brought on her
  • illness--you remember she had a slight attack before you sailed. Oh, I
  • don't know the particulars, of course--I don't WANT to know them--but
  • there were rumours about your affairs that made her most unhappy--no one
  • could be with her without seeing that. I can't help it if you are
  • offended by my telling you this now--if I can do anything to make you
  • realize the folly of your course, and how deeply SHE disapproved of it, I
  • shall feel it is the truest way of making up to you for her loss."
  • Chapter 5
  • It seemed to Lily, as Mrs. Peniston's door closed on her, that she was
  • taking a final leave of her old life. The future stretched before her
  • dull and bare as the deserted length of Fifth Avenue, and opportunities
  • showed as meagrely as the few cabs trailing in quest of fares that did
  • not come. The completeness of the analogy was, however, disturbed as she
  • reached the sidewalk by the rapid approach of a hansom which pulled up at
  • sight of her.
  • From beneath its luggage-laden top, she caught the wave of a signalling
  • hand; and the next moment Mrs. Fisher, springing to the street, had
  • folded her in a demonstrative embrace.
  • "My dear, you don't mean to say you're still in town? When I saw you the
  • other day at Sherry's I didn't have time to ask----" She broke off, and
  • added with a burst of frankness: "The truth is I was HORRID, Lily, and
  • I've wanted to tell you so ever since."
  • "Oh----" Miss Bart protested, drawing back from her penitent clasp; but
  • Mrs. Fisher went on with her usual directness: "Look here, Lily, don't
  • let's beat about the bush: half the trouble in life is caused by
  • pretending there isn't any. That's not my way, and I can only say I'm
  • thoroughly ashamed of myself for following the other women's lead. But
  • we'll talk of that by and bye--tell me now where you're staying and what
  • your plans are. I don't suppose you're keeping house in there with Grace
  • Stepney, eh?--and it struck me you might be rather at loose ends."
  • In Lily's present mood there was no resisting the honest friendliness of
  • this appeal, and she said with a smile: "I am at loose ends for the
  • moment, but Gerty Farish is still in town, and she's good enough to let
  • me be with her whenever she can spare the time."
  • Mrs. Fisher made a slight grimace. "H'm--that's a temperate joy. Oh, I
  • know--Gerty's a trump, and worth all the rest of us put together; but A
  • LA LONGUE you're used to a little higher seasoning, aren't you, dear?
  • And besides, I suppose she'll be off herself before long--the first of
  • August, you say? Well, look here, you can't spend your summer in town;
  • we'll talk of that later too. But meanwhile, what do you say to putting a
  • few things in a trunk and coming down with me to the Sam Gormers'
  • tonight?"
  • And as Lily stared at the breathless suddenness of the suggestion, she
  • continued with her easy laugh: "You don't know them and they don't know
  • you; but that don't make a rap of difference. They've taken the Van
  • Alstyne place at Roslyn, and I've got CARTE BLANCHE to bring my friends
  • down there--the more the merrier. They do things awfully well, and
  • there's to be rather a jolly party there this week----" she broke off,
  • checked by an undefinable change in Miss Bart's expression. "Oh, I don't
  • mean YOUR particular set, you know: rather a different crowd, but very
  • good fun. The fact is, the Gormers have struck out on a line of their
  • own: what they want is to have a good time, and to have it in their own
  • way. They gave the other thing a few months' trial, under my
  • distinguished auspices, and they were really doing extremely
  • well--getting on a good deal faster than the Brys, just because they
  • didn't care as much--but suddenly they decided that the whole business
  • bored them, and that what they wanted was a crowd they could really feel
  • at home with. Rather original of them, don't you think so? Mattie Gormer
  • HAS got aspirations still; women always have; but she's awfully
  • easy-going, and Sam won't be bothered, and they both like to be the most
  • important people in sight, so they've started a sort of continuous
  • performance of their own, a kind of social Coney Island, where everybody
  • is welcome who can make noise enough and doesn't put on airs. I think
  • it's awfully good fun myself--some of the artistic set, you know, any
  • pretty actress that's going, and so on. This week, for instance, they
  • have Audrey Anstell, who made such a hit last spring in 'The Winning of
  • Winny'; and Paul Morpeth--he's painting Mattie Gormer--and the Dick
  • Bellingers, and Kate Corby--well, every one you can think of who's jolly
  • and makes a row. Now don't stand there with your nose in the air, my
  • dear--it will be a good deal better than a broiling Sunday in town, and
  • you'll find clever people as well as noisy ones--Morpeth, who admires
  • Mattie enormously, always brings one or two of his set."
  • Mrs. Fisher drew Lily toward the hansom with friendly authority. "Jump
  • in now, there's a dear, and we'll drive round to your hotel and have your
  • things packed, and then we'll have tea, and the two maids can meet us at
  • the train."
  • It was a good deal better than a broiling Sunday in town--of that no
  • doubt remained to Lily as, reclining in the shade of a leafy verandah,
  • she looked seaward across a stretch of greensward picturesquely dotted
  • with groups of ladies in lace raiment and men in tennis flannels. The
  • huge Van Alstyne house and its rambling dependencies were packed to their
  • fullest capacity with the Gormers' week-end guests, who now, in the
  • radiance of the Sunday forenoon, were dispersing themselves over the
  • grounds in quest of the various distractions the place afforded:
  • distractions ranging from tennis-courts to shooting-galleries, from
  • bridge and whiskey within doors to motors and steam-launches without.
  • Lily had the odd sense of having been caught up into the crowd as
  • carelessly as a passenger is gathered in by an express train. The blonde
  • and genial Mrs. Gormer might, indeed, have figured the conductor, calmly
  • assigning seats to the rush of travellers, while Carry Fisher represented
  • the porter pushing their bags into place, giving them their numbers for
  • the dining-car, and warning them when their station was at hand. The
  • train, meanwhile, had scarcely slackened speed--life whizzed on with a
  • deafening' rattle and roar, in which one traveller at least found a
  • welcome refuge from the sound of her own thoughts. The Gormer MILIEU
  • represented a social out-skirt which Lily had always fastidiously
  • avoided; but it struck her, now that she was in it, as only a flamboyant
  • copy of her own world, a caricature approximating the real thing as the
  • "society play" approaches the manners of the drawing-room. The people
  • about her were doing the same things as the Trenors, the Van Osburghs and
  • the Dorsets: the difference lay in a hundred shades of aspect and manner,
  • from the pattern of the men's waistcoats to the inflexion of the women's
  • voices. Everything was pitched in a higher key, and there was more of
  • each thing: more noise, more colour, more champagne, more
  • familiarity--but also greater good-nature, less rivalry, and a fresher
  • capacity for enjoyment.
  • Miss Bart's arrival had been welcomed with an uncritical friendliness
  • that first irritated her pride and then brought her to a sharp sense of
  • her own situation--of the place in life which, for the moment, she must
  • accept and make the best of. These people knew her story--of that her
  • first long talk with Carry Fisher had left no doubt: she was publicly
  • branded as the heroine of a "queer" episode--but instead of shrinking
  • from her as her own friends had done, they received her without question
  • into the easy promiscuity of their lives. They swallowed her past as
  • easily as they did Miss Anstell's, and with no apparent sense of any
  • difference in the size of the mouthful: all they asked was that she
  • should--in her own way, for they recognized a diversity of
  • gifts--contribute as much to the general amusement as that graceful
  • actress, whose talents, when off the stage, were of the most varied
  • order. Lily felt at once that any tendency to be "stuck-up," to mark a
  • sense of differences and distinctions, would be fatal to her continuance
  • in the Gormer set. To be taken in on such terms--and into such a
  • world!--was hard enough to the lingering pride in her; but she realized,
  • with a pang of self-contempt, that to be excluded from it would, after
  • all, be harder still. For, almost at once, she had felt the insidious
  • charm of slipping back into a life where every material difficulty was
  • smoothed away. The sudden escape from a stifling hotel in a dusty
  • deserted city to the space and luxury of a great country-house fanned by
  • sea breezes, had produced a state of moral lassitude agreeable enough
  • after the nervous tension and physical discomfort of the past weeks. For
  • the moment she must yield to the refreshment her senses craved--after
  • that she would reconsider her situation, and take counsel with her
  • dignity. Her enjoyment of her surroundings was, indeed, tinged by the
  • unpleasant consideration that she was accepting the hospitality and
  • courting the approval of people she had disdained under other conditions.
  • But she was growing less sensitive on such points: a hard glaze of
  • indifference was fast forming over her delicacies and susceptibilities,
  • and each concession to expediency hardened the surface a little more.
  • On the Monday, when the party disbanded with uproarious adieux, the
  • return to town threw into stronger relief the charms of the life she was
  • leaving. The other guests were dispersing to take up the same existence
  • in a different setting: some at Newport, some at Bar Harbour, some in the
  • elaborate rusticity of an Adirondack camp. Even Gerty Farish, who
  • welcomed Lily's return with tender solicitude, would soon be preparing to
  • join the aunt with whom she spent her summers on Lake George: only Lily
  • herself remained without plan or purpose, stranded in a backwater of the
  • great current of pleasure. But Carry Fisher, who had insisted on
  • transporting her to her own house, where she herself was to perch for a
  • day or two on the way to the Brys' camp, came to the rescue with a new
  • suggestion.
  • "Look here, Lily--I'll tell you what it is: I want you to take my place
  • with Mattie Gormer this summer. They're taking a party out to Alaska next
  • month in their private car, and Mattie, who is the laziest woman alive,
  • wants me to go with them, and relieve her of the bother of arranging
  • things; but the Brys want me too--oh, yes, we've made it up: didn't I
  • tell you?--and, to put it frankly, though I like the Gormers best,
  • there's more profit for me in the Brys. The fact is, they want to try
  • Newport this summer, and if I can make it a success for them they--well,
  • they'll make it a success for me." Mrs. Fisher clasped her hands
  • enthusiastically. "Do you know, Lily, the more I think of my idea the
  • better I like it--quite as much for you as for myself. The Gormers have
  • both taken a tremendous fancy to you, and the trip to Alaska
  • is--well--the very thing I should want for you just at present."
  • Miss Bart lifted her eyes with a keen glance. "To take me out of my
  • friends' way, you mean?" she said quietly; and Mrs. Fisher responded with
  • a deprecating kiss: "To keep you out of their sight till they realize how
  • much they miss you."
  • Miss Bart went with the Gormers to Alaska; and the expedition, if it did
  • not produce the effect anticipated by her friend, had at least the
  • negative advantage of removing her from the fiery centre of criticism and
  • discussion. Gerty Farish had opposed the plan with all the energy of her
  • somewhat inarticulate nature. She had even offered to give up her visit
  • to Lake George, and remain in town with Miss Bart, if the latter would
  • renounce her journey; but Lily could disguise her real distaste for this
  • plan under a sufficiently valid reason.
  • "You dear innocent, don't you see," she protested, "that Carry is quite
  • right, and that I must take up my usual life, and go about among people
  • as much as possible? If my old friends choose to believe lies about me I
  • shall have to make new ones, that's all; and you know beggars mustn't be
  • choosers. Not that I don't like Mattie Gormer--I DO like her: she's kind
  • and honest and unaffected; and don't you suppose I feel grateful to her
  • for making me welcome at a time when, as you've yourself seen, my own
  • family have unanimously washed their hands of me?"
  • Gerty shook her head, mutely unconvinced. She felt not only that Lily was
  • cheapening herself by making use of an intimacy she would never have
  • cultivated from choice, but that, in drifting back now to her former
  • manner of life, she was forfeiting her last chance of ever escaping from
  • it. Gerty had but an obscure conception of what Lily's actual experience
  • had been: but its consequences had established a lasting hold on her pity
  • since the memorable night when she had offered up her own secret hope to
  • her friend's extremity. To characters like Gerty's such a sacrifice
  • constitutes a moral claim on the part of the person in whose behalf it
  • has been made. Having once helped Lily, she must continue to help her;
  • and helping her, must believe in her, because faith is the main-spring of
  • such natures. But even if Miss Bart, after her renewed taste of the
  • amenities of life, could have returned to the barrenness of a New York
  • August, mitigated only by poor Gerty's presence, her worldly wisdom would
  • have counselled her against such an act of abnegation. She knew that
  • Carry Fisher was right: that an opportune absence might be the first step
  • toward rehabilitation, and that, at any rate, to linger on in town out of
  • season was a fatal admission of defeat. From the Gormers' tumultuous
  • progress across their native continent, she returned with an altered view
  • of her situation. The renewed habit of luxury--the daily waking to an
  • assured absence of care and presence of material ease--gradually blunted
  • her appreciation of these values, and left her more conscious of the void
  • they could not fill. Mattie Gormer's undiscriminating good-nature, and
  • the slap-dash sociability of her friends, who treated Lily precisely as
  • they treated each other--all these characteristic notes of difference
  • began to wear upon her endurance; and the more she saw to criticize in
  • her companions, the less justification she found for making use of them.
  • The longing to get back to her former surroundings hardened to a fixed
  • idea; but with the strengthening of her purpose came the inevitable
  • perception that, to attain it, she must exact fresh concessions from her
  • pride. These, for the moment, took the unpleasant form of continuing to
  • cling to her hosts after their return from Alaska. Little as she was in
  • the key of their MILIEU, her immense social facility, her long habit of
  • adapting herself to others without suffering her own outline to be
  • blurred, the skilled manipulation of all the polished implements of her
  • craft, had won for her an important place in the Gormer group. If their
  • resonant hilarity could never be hers, she contributed a note of easy
  • elegance more valuable to Mattie Gormer than the louder passages of the
  • band. Sam Gormer and his special cronies stood indeed a little in awe of
  • her; but Mattie's following, headed by Paul Morpeth, made her feel that
  • they prized her for the very qualities they most conspicuously lacked. If
  • Morpeth, whose social indolence was as great as his artistic activity,
  • had abandoned himself to the easy current of the Gormer existence, where
  • the minor exactions of politeness were unknown or ignored, and a man
  • could either break his engagements, or keep them in a painting-jacket and
  • slippers, he still preserved his sense of differences, and his
  • appreciation of graces he had no time to cultivate. During the
  • preparations for the Brys' TABLEAUX he had been immensely struck by
  • Lily's plastic possibilities--"not the face: too self-controlled for
  • expression; but the rest of her--gad, what a model she'd make!"--and
  • though his abhorrence of the world in which he had seen her was too great
  • for him to think of seeking her there, he was fully alive to the
  • privilege of having her to look at and listen to while he lounged in
  • Mattie Gormer's dishevelled drawing-room.
  • Lily had thus formed, in the tumult of her surroundings, a little nucleus
  • of friendly relations which mitigated the crudeness of her course in
  • lingering with the Gormers after their return. Nor was she without pale
  • glimpses of her own world, especially since the breaking-up of the
  • Newport season had set the social current once more toward Long Island.
  • Kate Corby, whose tastes made her as promiscuous as Carry Fisher was
  • rendered by her necessities, occasionally descended on the Gormers,
  • where, after a first stare of surprise, she took Lily's presence almost
  • too much as a matter of course. Mrs. Fisher, too, appearing frequently in
  • the neighbourhood, drove over to impart her experiences and give Lily
  • what she called the latest report from the weather-bureau; and the
  • latter, who had never directly invited her confidence, could yet talk
  • with her more freely than with Gerty Farish, in whose presence it was
  • impossible even to admit the existence of much that Mrs. Fisher
  • conveniently took for granted.
  • Mrs. Fisher, moreover, had no embarrassing curiosity. She did not wish to
  • probe the inwardness of Lily's situation, but simply to view it from the
  • outside, and draw her conclusions accordingly; and these conclusions, at
  • the end of a confidential talk, she summed up to her friend in the
  • succinct remark: "You must marry as soon as you can."
  • Lily uttered a faint laugh--for once Mrs. Fisher lacked originality. "Do
  • you mean, like Gerty Farish, to recommend the unfailing panacea of 'a
  • good man's love'?"
  • "No--I don't think either of my candidates would answer to that
  • description," said Mrs. Fisher after a pause of reflection.
  • "Either? Are there actually two?"
  • "Well, perhaps I ought to say one and a half--for the moment."
  • Miss Bart received this with increasing amusement. "Other things being
  • equal, I think I should prefer a half-husband: who is he?"
  • "Don't fly out at me till you hear my reasons--George Dorset."
  • "Oh----" Lily murmured reproachfully; but Mrs. Fisher pressed on
  • unrebuffed. "Well, why not? They had a few weeks' honeymoon when they
  • first got back from Europe, but now things are going badly with them
  • again. Bertha has been behaving more than ever like a madwoman, and
  • George's powers of credulity are very nearly exhausted. They're at their
  • place here, you know, and I spent last Sunday with them. It was a ghastly
  • party--no one else but poor Neddy Silverton, who looks like a
  • galley-slave (they used to talk of my making that poor boy unhappy!)--and
  • after luncheon George carried me off on a long walk, and told me the end
  • would have to come soon."
  • Miss Bart made an incredulous gesture. "As far as that goes, the end will
  • never come--Bertha will always know how to get him back when she wants
  • him."
  • Mrs. Fisher continued to observe her tentatively. "Not if he has any one
  • else to turn to! Yes--that's just what it comes to: the poor creature
  • can't stand alone. And I remember him such a good fellow, full of life
  • and enthusiasm." She paused, and went on, dropping her glance from
  • Lily's: "He wouldn't stay with her ten minutes if he KNEW----"
  • "Knew----?" Miss Bart repeated.
  • "What YOU must, for instance--with the opportunities you've had! If he
  • had positive proof, I mean----"
  • Lily interrupted her with a deep blush of displeasure. "Please let us
  • drop the subject, Carry: it's too odious to me." And to divert her
  • companion's attention she added, with an attempt at lightness: "And your
  • second candidate? We must not forget him."
  • Mrs. Fisher echoed her laugh. "I wonder if you'll cry out just as loud if
  • I say--Sim Rosedale?"
  • Miss Bart did not cry out: she sat silent, gazing thoughtfully at her
  • friend. The suggestion, in truth, gave expression to a possibility which,
  • in the last weeks, had more than once recurred to her; but after a moment
  • she said carelessly: "Mr. Rosedale wants a wife who can establish him in
  • the bosom of the Van Osburghs and Trenors."
  • Mrs. Fisher caught her up eagerly. "And so YOU could--with his money!
  • Don't you see how beautifully it would work out for you both?"
  • "I don't see any way of making him see it," Lily returned, with a laugh
  • intended to dismiss the subject.
  • But in reality it lingered with her long after Mrs. Fisher had taken
  • leave. She had seen very little of Rosedale since her annexation by the
  • Gormers, for he was still steadily bent on penetrating to the inner
  • Paradise from which she was now excluded; but once or twice, when nothing
  • better offered, he had turned up for a Sunday, and on these occasions he
  • had left her in no doubt as to his view of her situation. That he still
  • admired her was, more than ever, offensively evident; for in the Gormer
  • circle, where he expanded as in his native element, there were no
  • puzzling conventions to check the full expression of his approval. But it
  • was in the quality of his admiration that she read his shrewd estimate of
  • her case. He enjoyed letting the Gormers see that he had known "Miss
  • Lily"--she was "Miss Lily" to him now--before they had had the faintest
  • social existence: enjoyed more especially impressing Paul Morpeth with
  • the distance to which their intimacy dated back. But he let it be felt
  • that that intimacy was a mere ripple on the surface of a rushing social
  • current, the kind of relaxation which a man of large interests and
  • manifold preoccupations permits himself in his hours of ease.
  • The necessity of accepting this view of their past relation, and of
  • meeting it in the key of pleasantry prevalent among her new friends, was
  • deeply humiliating to Lily. But she dared less than ever to quarrel with
  • Rosedale. She suspected that her rejection rankled among the most
  • unforgettable of his rebuffs, and the fact that he knew something of her
  • wretched transaction with Trenor, and was sure to put the basest
  • construction on it, seemed to place her hopelessly in his power. Yet at
  • Carry Fisher's suggestion a new hope had stirred in her. Much as she
  • disliked Rosedale, she no longer absolutely despised him. For he was
  • gradually attaining his object in life, and that, to Lily, was always
  • less despicable than to miss it. With the slow unalterable persistency
  • which she had always felt in him, he was making his way through the dense
  • mass of social antagonisms. Already his wealth, and the masterly use he
  • had made of it, were giving him an enviable prominence in the world of
  • affairs, and placing Wall Street under obligations which only Fifth
  • Avenue could repay. In response to these claims, his name began to figure
  • on municipal committees and charitable boards; he appeared at banquets to
  • distinguished strangers, and his candidacy at one of the fashionable
  • clubs was discussed with diminishing opposition. He had figured once or
  • twice at the Trenor dinners, and had learned to speak with just the right
  • note of disdain of the big Van Osburgh crushes; and all he now needed was
  • a wife whose affiliations would shorten the last tedious steps of his
  • ascent. It was with that object that, a year earlier, he had fixed his
  • affections on Miss Bart; but in the interval he had mounted nearer to the
  • goal, while she had lost the power to abbreviate the remaining steps of
  • the way. All this she saw with the clearness of vision that came to her
  • in moments of despondency. It was success that dazzled her--she could
  • distinguish facts plainly enough in the twilight of failure. And the
  • twilight, as she now sought to pierce it, was gradually lighted by a
  • faint spark of reassurance. Under the utilitarian motive of Rosedale's
  • wooing she had felt, clearly enough, the heat of personal inclination.
  • She would not have detested him so heartily had she not known that he
  • dared to admire her. What, then, if the passion persisted, though the
  • other motive had ceased to sustain it? She had never even tried to please
  • him--he had been drawn to her in spite of her manifest disdain. What if
  • she now chose to exert the power which, even in its passive state, he had
  • felt so strongly? What if she made him marry her for love, now that he
  • had no other reason for marrying her?
  • Chapter 6
  • As became persons of their rising consequence, the Gormers were engaged
  • in building a country-house on Long Island; and it was a part of Miss
  • Bart's duty to attend her hostess on frequent visits of inspection to the
  • new estate. There, while Mrs. Gormer plunged into problems of lighting
  • and sanitation, Lily had leisure to wander, in the bright autumn air,
  • along the tree-fringed bay to which the land declined. Little as she was
  • addicted to solitude, there had come to be moments when it seemed a
  • welcome escape from the empty noises of her life. She was weary of being
  • swept passively along a current of pleasure and business in which she had
  • no share; weary of seeing other people pursue amusement and squander
  • money, while she felt herself of no more account among them than an
  • expensive toy in the hands of a spoiled child.
  • It was in this frame of mind that, striking back from the shore one
  • morning into the windings of an unfamiliar lane, she came suddenly upon
  • the figure of George Dorset. The Dorset place was in the immediate
  • neighbourhood of the Gormers' newly-acquired estate, and in her
  • motor-flights thither with Mrs. Gormer, Lily had caught one or two
  • passing glimpses of the couple; but they moved in so different an orbit
  • that she had not considered the possibility of a direct encounter.
  • Dorset, swinging along with bent head, in moody abstraction, did not see
  • Miss Bart till he was close upon her; but the sight, instead of bringing
  • him to a halt, as she had half-expected, sent him toward her with an
  • eagerness which found expression in his opening words.
  • "Miss Bart!--You'll shake hands, won't you? I've been hoping to meet
  • you--I should have written to you if I'd dared." His face, with its
  • tossed red hair and straggling moustache, had a driven uneasy look, as
  • though life had become an unceasing race between himself and the thoughts
  • at his heels.
  • The look drew a word of compassionate greeting from Lily, and he pressed
  • on, as if encouraged by her tone: "I wanted to apologize--to ask you to
  • forgive me for the miserable part I played----"
  • She checked him with a quick gesture. "Don't let us speak of it: I was
  • very sorry for you," she said, with a tinge of disdain which, as she
  • instantly perceived, was not lost on him.
  • He flushed to his haggard eyes, flushed so cruelly that she repented the
  • thrust. "You might well be; you don't know--you must let me explain. I
  • was deceived: abominably deceived----"
  • "I am still more sorry for you, then," she interposed, without irony;
  • "but you must see that I am not exactly the person with whom the subject
  • can be discussed."
  • He met this with a look of genuine wonder. "Why not? Isn't it to you, of
  • all people, that I owe an explanation----"
  • "No explanation is necessary: the situation was perfectly clear to me."
  • "Ah----" he murmured, his head drooping again, and his irresolute hand
  • switching at the underbrush along the lane. But as Lily made a movement
  • to pass on, he broke out with fresh vehemence: "Miss Bart, for God's sake
  • don't turn from me! We used to be good friends--you were always kind to
  • me--and you don't know how I need a friend now."
  • The lamentable weakness of the words roused a motion of pity in Lily's
  • breast. She too needed friends--she had tasted the pang of loneliness;
  • and her resentment of Bertha Dorset's cruelty softened her heart to the
  • poor wretch who was after all the chief of Bertha's victims.
  • "I still wish to be kind; I feel no ill-will toward you," she said. "But
  • you must understand that after what has happened we can't be friends
  • again--we can't see each other."
  • "Ah, you ARE kind--you're merciful--you always were!" He fixed his
  • miserable gaze on her. "But why can't we be friends--why not, when I've
  • repented in dust and ashes? Isn't it hard that you should condemn me to
  • suffer for the falseness, the treachery of others? I was punished enough
  • at the time--is there to be no respite for me?"
  • "I should have thought you had found complete respite in the
  • reconciliation which was effected at my expense," Lily began, with
  • renewed impatience; but he broke in imploringly: "Don't put it in that
  • way--when that's been the worst of my punishment. My God! what could I
  • do--wasn't I powerless? You were singled out as a sacrifice: any word I
  • might have said would have been turned against you----"
  • "I have told you I don't blame you; all I ask you to understand is that,
  • after the use Bertha chose to make of me--after all that her behaviour
  • has since implied--it's impossible that you and I should meet."
  • He continued to stand before her, in his dogged weakness. "Is it--need it
  • be? Mightn't there be circumstances----?" he checked himself, slashing at
  • the wayside weeds in a wider radius. Then he began again: "Miss Bart,
  • listen--give me a minute. If we're not to meet again, at least let me
  • have a hearing now. You say we can't be friends after--after what has
  • happened. But can't I at least appeal to your pity? Can't I move you if I
  • ask you to think of me as a prisoner--a prisoner you alone can set free?"
  • Lily's inward start betrayed itself in a quick blush: was it possible
  • that this was really the sense of Carry Fisher's adumbrations?
  • "I can't see how I can possibly be of any help to you," she murmured,
  • drawing back a little from the mounting excitement of his look.
  • Her tone seemed to sober him, as it had so often done in his stormiest
  • moments. The stubborn lines of his face relaxed, and he said, with an
  • abrupt drop to docility: "You WOULD see, if you'd be as merciful as you
  • used to be: and heaven knows I've never needed it more!"
  • She paused a moment, moved in spite of herself by this reminder of her
  • influence over him. Her fibres had been softened by suffering, and the
  • sudden glimpse into his mocked and broken life disarmed her contempt for
  • his weakness.
  • "I am very sorry for you--I would help you willingly; but you must have
  • other friends, other advisers."
  • "I never had a friend like you," he answered simply. "And besides--can't
  • you see?--you're the only person"--his voice dropped to a whisper--"the
  • only person who knows."
  • Again she felt her colour change; again her heart rose in precipitate
  • throbs to meet what she felt was coming. He lifted his eyes to her
  • entreatingly. "You do see, don't you? You understand? I'm desperate--I'm
  • at the end of my tether. I want to be free, and you can free me. I know
  • you can. You don't want to keep me bound fast in hell, do you? You can't
  • want to take such a vengeance as that. You were always kind--your eyes
  • are kind now. You say you're sorry for me. Well, it rests with you to
  • show it; and heaven knows there's nothing to keep you back. You
  • understand, of course--there wouldn't be a hint of publicity--not a sound
  • or a syllable to connect you with the thing. It would never come to that,
  • you know: all I need is to be able to say definitely: 'I know this--and
  • this--and this'--and the fight would drop, and the way be cleared, and
  • the whole abominable business swept out of sight in a second."
  • He spoke pantingly, like a tired runner, with breaks of exhaustion
  • between his words; and through the breaks she caught, as through the
  • shifting rents of a fog, great golden vistas of peace and safety. For
  • there was no mistaking the definite intention behind his vague appeal;
  • she could have filled up the blanks without the help of Mrs. Fisher's
  • insinuations. Here was a man who turned to her in the extremity of his
  • loneliness and his humiliation: if she came to him at such a moment he
  • would be hers with all the force of his deluded faith. And the power to
  • make him so lay in her hand--lay there in a completeness he could not
  • even remotely conjecture. Revenge and rehabilitation might be hers at a
  • stroke--there was something dazzling in the completeness of the
  • opportunity.
  • She stood silent, gazing away from him down the autumnal stretch of the
  • deserted lane. And suddenly fear possessed her--fear of herself, and of
  • the terrible force of the temptation. All her past weaknesses were like
  • so many eager accomplices drawing her toward the path their feet had
  • already smoothed. She turned quickly, and held out her hand to Dorset.
  • "Goodbye--I'm sorry; there's nothing in the world that I can do."
  • "Nothing? Ah, don't say that," he cried; "say what's true: that you
  • abandon me like the others. You, the only creature who could have saved
  • me!"
  • "Goodbye--goodbye," she repeated hurriedly; and as she moved away she
  • heard him cry out on a last note of entreaty: "At least you'll let me see
  • you once more?"
  • Lily, on regaining the Gormer grounds, struck rapidly across the lawn
  • toward the unfinished house, where she fancied that her hostess might be
  • speculating, not too resignedly, on the cause of her delay; for, like
  • many unpunctual persons, Mrs. Gormer disliked to be kept waiting.
  • As Miss Bart reached the avenue, however, she saw a smart phaeton with a
  • high-stepping pair disappear behind the shrubbery in the direction of the
  • gate; and on the doorstep stood Mrs. Gormer, with a glow of retrospective
  • pleasure on her open countenance. At sight of Lily the glow deepened to
  • an embarrassed red, and she said with a slight laugh: "Did you see my
  • visitor? Oh, I thought you came back by the avenue. It was Mrs. George
  • Dorset--she said she'd dropped in to make a neighbourly call."
  • Lily met the announcement with her usual composure, though her experience
  • of Bertha's idiosyncrasies would not have led her to include the
  • neighbourly instinct among them; and Mrs. Gormer, relieved to see that
  • she gave no sign of surprise, went on with a deprecating laugh: "Of
  • course what really brought her was curiosity--she made me take her all
  • over the house. But no one could have been nicer--no airs, you know, and
  • so good-natured: I can quite see why people think her so fascinating."
  • This surprising event, coinciding too completely with her meeting with
  • Dorset to be regarded as contingent upon it, had yet immediately struck
  • Lily with a vague sense of foreboding. It was not in Bertha's habits to
  • be neighbourly, much less to make advances to any one outside the
  • immediate circle of her affinities. She had always consistently ignored
  • the world of outer aspirants, or had recognized its individual members
  • only when prompted by motives of self-interest; and the very
  • capriciousness of her condescensions had, as Lily was aware, given them
  • special value in the eyes of the persons she distinguished. Lily saw this
  • now in Mrs. Gormer's unconcealable complacency, and in the happy
  • irrelevance with which, for the next day or two, she quoted Bertha's
  • opinions and speculated on the origin of her gown. All the secret
  • ambitions which Mrs. Gormer's native indolence, and the attitude of her
  • companions, kept in habitual abeyance, were now germinating afresh in the
  • glow of Bertha's advances; and whatever the cause of the latter, Lily saw
  • that, if they were followed up, they were likely to have a disturbing
  • effect upon her own future.
  • She had arranged to break the length of her stay with her new friends by
  • one or two visits to other acquaintances as recent; and on her return
  • from this somewhat depressing excursion she was immediately conscious
  • that Mrs. Dorset's influence was still in the air. There had been another
  • exchange of visits, a tea at a country-club, an encounter at a hunt ball;
  • there was even a rumour of an approaching dinner, which Mattie Gormer,
  • with an unnatural effort at discretion, tried to smuggle out of the
  • conversation whenever Miss Bart took part in it.
  • The latter had already planned to return to town after a farewell Sunday
  • with her friends; and, with Gerty Farish's aid, had discovered a small
  • private hotel where she might establish herself for the winter. The
  • hotel being on the edge of a fashionable neighbourhood, the price of the
  • few square feet she was to occupy was considerably in excess of her
  • means; but she found a justification for her dislike of poorer quarters
  • in the argument that, at this particular juncture, it was of the utmost
  • importance to keep up a show of prosperity. In reality, it was impossible
  • for her, while she had the means to pay her way for a week ahead, to
  • lapse into a form of existence like Gerty Farish's. She had never been so
  • near the brink of insolvency; but she could at least manage to meet her
  • weekly hotel bill, and having settled the heaviest of her previous debts
  • out of the money she had received from Trenor, she had a still fair
  • margin of credit to go upon. The situation, however, was not agreeable
  • enough to lull her to complete unconsciousness of its insecurity. Her
  • rooms, with their cramped outlook down a sallow vista of brick walls and
  • fire-escapes, her lonely meals in the dark restaurant with its surcharged
  • ceiling and haunting smell of coffee--all these material discomforts,
  • which were yet to be accounted as so many privileges soon to be
  • withdrawn, kept constantly before her the disadvantages of her state; and
  • her mind reverted the more insistently to Mrs. Fisher's counsels. Beat
  • about the question as she would, she knew the outcome of it was that she
  • must try to marry Rosedale; and in this conviction she was fortified by
  • an unexpected visit from George Dorset.
  • She found him, on the first Sunday after her return to town, pacing her
  • narrow sitting-room to the imminent peril of the few knick-knacks with
  • which she had tried to disguise its plush exuberances; but the sight of
  • her seemed to quiet him, and he said meekly that he hadn't come to bother
  • her--that he asked only to be allowed to sit for half an hour and talk of
  • anything she liked. In reality, as she knew, he had but one subject:
  • himself and his wretchedness; and it was the need of her sympathy that
  • had drawn him back. But he began with a pretence of questioning her about
  • herself, and as she replied, she saw that, for the first time, a faint
  • realization of her plight penetrated the dense surface of his
  • self-absorption. Was it possible that her old beast of an aunt had
  • actually cut her off? That she was living alone like this because there
  • was no one else for her to go to, and that she really hadn't more than
  • enough to keep alive on till the wretched little legacy was paid? The
  • fibres of sympathy were nearly atrophied in him, but he was suffering so
  • intensely that he had a faint glimpse of what other sufferings might
  • mean--and, as she perceived, an almost simultaneous perception of the way
  • in which her particular misfortunes might serve him.
  • When at length she dismissed him, on the pretext that she must dress for
  • dinner, he lingered entreatingly on the threshold to blurt out: "It's
  • been such a comfort--do say you'll let me see you again--" But to this
  • direct appeal it was impossible to give an assent; and she said with
  • friendly decisiveness: "I'm sorry--but you know why I can't."
  • He coloured to the eyes, pushed the door shut, and stood before her
  • embarrassed but insistent. "I know how you might, if you would--if things
  • were different--and it lies with you to make them so. It's just a word to
  • say, and you put me out of my misery!"
  • Their eyes met, and for a second she trembled again with the nearness of
  • the temptation. "You're mistaken; I know nothing; I saw nothing," she
  • exclaimed, striving, by sheer force of reiteration, to build a barrier
  • between herself and her peril; and as he turned away, groaning out "You
  • sacrifice us both," she continued to repeat, as if it were a charm: "I
  • know nothing--absolutely nothing."
  • Lily had seen little of Rosedale since her illuminating talk with Mrs.
  • Fisher, but on the two or three occasions when they had met she was
  • conscious of having distinctly advanced in his favour. There could be no
  • doubt that he admired her as much as ever, and she believed it rested
  • with herself to raise his admiration to the point where it should bear
  • down the lingering counsels of expediency. The task was not an easy one;
  • but neither was it easy, in her long sleepless nights, to face the
  • thought of what George Dorset was so clearly ready to offer. Baseness
  • for baseness, she hated the other least: there were even moments when a
  • marriage with Rosedale seemed the only honourable solution of her
  • difficulties. She did not indeed let her imagination range beyond the day
  • of plighting: after that everything faded into a haze of material
  • well-being, in which the personality of her benefactor remained
  • mercifully vague. She had learned, in her long vigils, that there were
  • certain things not good to think of, certain midnight images that must at
  • any cost be exorcised--and one of these was the image of herself as
  • Rosedale's wife.
  • Carry Fisher, on the strength, as she frankly owned, of the Brys' Newport
  • success, had taken for the autumn months a small house at Tuxedo; and
  • thither Lily was bound on the Sunday after Dorset's visit. Though it was
  • nearly dinner-time when she arrived, her hostess was still out, and the
  • firelit quiet of the small silent house descended on her spirit with a
  • sense of peace and familiarity. It may be doubted if such an emotion had
  • ever before been evoked by Carry Fisher's surroundings; but, contrasted
  • to the world in which Lily had lately lived, there was an air of repose
  • and stability in the very placing of the furniture, and in the quiet
  • competence of the parlour-maid who led her up to her room. Mrs. Fisher's
  • unconventionality was, after all, a merely superficial divergence from an
  • inherited social creed, while the manners of the Gormer circle
  • represented their first attempt to formulate such a creed for themselves.
  • It was the first time since her return from Europe that Lily had found
  • herself in a congenial atmosphere, and the stirring of familiar
  • associations had almost prepared her, as she descended the stairs before
  • dinner, to enter upon a group of her old acquaintances. But this
  • expectation was instantly checked by the reflection that the friends who
  • remained loyal were precisely those who would be least willing to expose
  • her to such encounters; and it was hardly with surprise that she found,
  • instead, Mr. Rosedale kneeling domestically on the drawing-room hearth
  • before his hostess's little girl.
  • Rosedale in the paternal role was hardly a figure to soften Lily; yet she
  • could not but notice a quality of homely goodness in his advances to the
  • child. They were not, at any rate, the premeditated and perfunctory
  • endearments of the guest under his hostess's eye, for he and the little
  • girl had the room to themselves; and something in his attitude made him
  • seem a simple and kindly being compared to the small critical creature
  • who endured his homage. Yes, he would be kind--Lily, from the threshold,
  • had time to feel--kind in his gross, unscrupulous, rapacious way, the way
  • of the predatory creature with his mate. She had but a moment in which
  • to consider whether this glimpse of the fireside man mitigated her
  • repugnance, or gave it, rather, a more concrete and intimate form; for at
  • sight of her he was immediately on his feet again, the florid and
  • dominant Rosedale of Mattie Gormer's drawing-room.
  • It was no surprise to Lily to find that he had been selected as her only
  • fellow-guest. Though she and her hostess had not met since the latter's
  • tentative discussion of her future, Lily knew that the acuteness which
  • enabled Mrs. Fisher to lay a safe and pleasant course through a world of
  • antagonistic forces was not infrequently exercised for the benefit of her
  • friends. It was, in fact, characteristic of Carry that, while she
  • actively gleaned her own stores from the fields of affluence, her real
  • sympathies were on the other side--with the unlucky, the unpopular, the
  • unsuccessful, with all her hungry fellow-toilers in the shorn stubble of
  • success.
  • Mrs. Fisher's experience guarded her against the mistake of exposing
  • Lily, for the first evening, to the unmitigated impression of Rosedale's
  • personality. Kate Corby and two or three men dropped in to dinner, and
  • Lily, alive to every detail of her friend's method, saw that such
  • opportunities as had been contrived for her were to be deferred till she
  • had, as it were, gained courage to make effectual use of them. She had a
  • sense of acquiescing in this plan with the passiveness of a sufferer
  • resigned to the surgeon's touch; and this feeling of almost lethargic
  • helplessness continued when, after the departure of the guests, Mrs.
  • Fisher followed her upstairs.
  • "May I come in and smoke a cigarette over your fire? If we talk in my
  • room we shall disturb the child." Mrs. Fisher looked about her with the
  • eye of the solicitous hostess. "I hope you've managed to make yourself
  • comfortable, dear? Isn't it a jolly little house? It's such a blessing to
  • have a few quiet weeks with the baby."
  • Carry, in her rare moments of prosperity, became so expansively maternal
  • that Miss Bart sometimes wondered whether, if she could ever get time and
  • money enough, she would not end by devoting them both to her daughter.
  • "It's a well-earned rest: I'll say that for myself," she continued,
  • sinking down with a sigh of content on the pillowed lounge near the fire.
  • "Louisa Bry is a stern task-master: I often used to wish myself back with
  • the Gormers. Talk of love making people jealous and suspicious--it's
  • nothing to social ambition! Louisa used to lie awake at night wondering
  • whether the women who called on us called on ME because I was with her,
  • or on HER because she was with me; and she was always laying traps to
  • find out what I thought. Of course I had to disown my oldest friends,
  • rather than let her suspect she owed me the chance of making a single
  • acquaintance--when, all the while, that was what she had me there for,
  • and what she wrote me a handsome cheque for when the season was over!"
  • Mrs. Fisher was not a woman who talked of herself without cause, and the
  • practice of direct speech, far from precluding in her an occasional
  • resort to circuitous methods, served rather, at crucial moments, the
  • purpose of the juggler's chatter while he shifts the contents of his
  • sleeves. Through the haze of her cigarette smoke she continued to gaze
  • meditatively at Miss Bart, who, having dismissed her maid, sat before the
  • toilet-table shaking out over her shoulders the loosened undulations of
  • her hair.
  • "Your hair's wonderful, Lily. Thinner--? What does that matter, when it's
  • so light and alive? So many women's worries seem to go straight to their
  • hair--but yours looks as if there had never been an anxious thought under
  • it. I never saw you look better than you did this evening. Mattie Gormer
  • told me that Morpeth wanted to paint you--why don't you let him?"
  • Miss Bart's immediate answer was to address a critical glance to the
  • reflection of the countenance under discussion. Then she said, with a
  • slight touch of irritation: "I don't care to accept a portrait from Paul
  • Morpeth."
  • Mrs. Fisher mused. "N--no. And just now, especially--well, he can do you
  • after you're married." She waited a moment, and then went on: "By the
  • way, I had a visit from Mattie the other day. She turned up here last
  • Sunday--and with Bertha Dorset, of all people in the world!"
  • She paused again to measure the effect of this announcement on her
  • hearer, but the brush in Miss Bart's lifted hand maintained its
  • unwavering stroke from brow to nape.
  • "I never was more astonished," Mrs. Fisher pursued. "I don't know two
  • women less predestined to intimacy--from Bertha's standpoint, that is;
  • for of course poor Mattie thinks it natural enough that she should be
  • singled out--I've no doubt the rabbit always thinks it is fascinating the
  • anaconda. Well, you know I've always told you that Mattie secretly longed
  • to bore herself with the really fashionable; and now that the chance has
  • come, I see that she's capable of sacrificing all her old friends to it."
  • Lily laid aside her brush and turned a penetrating glance upon her
  • friend. "Including ME?" she suggested.
  • "Ah, my dear," murmured Mrs. Fisher, rising to push back a log from the
  • hearth.
  • "That's what Bertha means, isn't it?" Miss Bart went on steadily. "For
  • of course she always means something; and before I left Long Island I saw
  • that she was beginning to lay her toils for Mattie."
  • Mrs. Fisher sighed evasively. "She has her fast now, at any rate. To
  • think of that loud independence of Mattie's being only a subtler form of
  • snobbishness! Bertha can already make her believe anything she
  • pleases--and I'm afraid she's begun, my poor child, by insinuating
  • horrors about you."
  • Lily flushed under the shadow of her drooping hair. "The world is too
  • vile," she murmured, averting herself from Mrs. Fisher's anxious scrutiny.
  • "It's not a pretty place; and the only way to keep a footing in it is to
  • fight it on its own terms--and above all, my dear, not alone!" Mrs.
  • Fisher gathered up her floating implications in a resolute grasp.
  • "You've told me so little that I can only guess what has been happening;
  • but in the rush we all live in there's no time to keep on hating any one
  • without a cause, and if Bertha is still nasty enough to want to injure
  • you with other people it must be because she's still afraid of you. From
  • her standpoint there's only one reason for being afraid of you; and my
  • own idea is that, if you want to punish her, you hold the means in your
  • hand. I believe you can marry George Dorset tomorrow; but if you don't
  • care for that particular form of retaliation, the only thing to save you
  • from Bertha is to marry somebody else."
  • Chapter 7
  • The light projected on the situation by Mrs. Fisher had the cheerless
  • distinctness of a winter dawn. It outlined the facts with a cold
  • precision unmodified by shade or colour, and refracted, as it were, from
  • the blank walls of the surrounding limitations: she had opened windows
  • from which no sky was ever visible. But the idealist subdued to vulgar
  • necessities must employ vulgar minds to draw the inferences to which he
  • cannot stoop; and it was easier for Lily to let Mrs. Fisher formulate her
  • case than to put it plainly to herself. Once confronted with it, however,
  • she went the full length of its consequences; and these had never been
  • more clearly present to her than when, the next afternoon, she set out
  • for a walk with Rosedale.
  • It was one of those still November days when the air is haunted with the
  • light of summer, and something in the lines of the landscape, and in the
  • golden haze which bathed them, recalled to Miss Bart the September
  • afternoon when she had climbed the slopes of Bellomont with Selden. The
  • importunate memory was kept before her by its ironic contrast to her
  • present situation, since her walk with Selden had represented an
  • irresistible flight from just such a climax as the present excursion was
  • designed to bring about. But other memories importuned her also; the
  • recollection of similar situations, as skillfully led up to, but through
  • some malice of fortune, or her own unsteadiness of purpose, always
  • failing of the intended result. Well, her purpose was steady enough now.
  • She saw that the whole weary work of rehabilitation must begin again, and
  • against far greater odds, if Bertha Dorset should succeed in breaking up
  • her friendship with the Gormers; and her longing for shelter and security
  • was intensified by the passionate desire to triumph over Bertha, as only
  • wealth and predominance could triumph over her. As the wife of
  • Rosedale--the Rosedale she felt it in her power to create--she would at
  • least present an invulnerable front to her enemy.
  • She had to draw upon this thought, as upon some fiery stimulant, to keep
  • up her part in the scene toward which Rosedale was too frankly tending.
  • As she walked beside him, shrinking in every nerve from the way in which
  • his look and tone made free of her, yet telling herself that this
  • momentary endurance of his mood was the price she must pay for her
  • ultimate power over him, she tried to calculate the exact point at which
  • concession must turn to resistance, and the price HE would have to pay be
  • made equally clear to him. But his dapper self-confidence seemed
  • impenetrable to such hints, and she had a sense of something hard and
  • self-contained behind the superficial warmth of his manner.
  • They had been seated for some time in the seclusion of a rocky glen above
  • the lake, when she suddenly cut short the culmination of an impassioned
  • period by turning upon him the grave loveliness of her gaze.
  • "I DO believe what you say, Mr. Rosedale," she said quietly; "and I am
  • ready to marry you whenever you wish."
  • Rosedale, reddening to the roots of his glossy hair, received this
  • announcement with a recoil which carried him to his feet, where he halted
  • before her in an attitude of almost comic discomfiture.
  • "For I suppose that is what you do wish," she continued, in the same
  • quiet tone. "And, though I was unable to consent when you spoke to me in
  • this way before, I am ready, now that I know you so much better, to trust
  • my happiness to your hands."
  • She spoke with the noble directness which she could command on such
  • occasions, and which was like a large steady light thrown across the
  • tortuous darkness of the situation. In its inconvenient brightness
  • Rosedale seemed to waver a moment, as though conscious that every avenue
  • of escape was unpleasantly illuminated.
  • Then he gave a short laugh, and drew out a gold cigarette-case, in which,
  • with plump jewelled fingers, he groped for a gold-tipped cigarette.
  • Selecting one, he paused to contemplate it a moment before saying: "My
  • dear Miss Lily, I'm sorry if there's been any little misapprehension
  • between us-but you made me feel my suit was so hopeless that I had really
  • no intention of renewing it."
  • Lily's blood tingled with the grossness of the rebuff; but she checked
  • the first leap of her anger, and said in a tone of gentle dignity: "I
  • have no one but myself to blame if I gave you the impression that my
  • decision was final."
  • Her word-play was always too quick for him, and this reply held him in
  • puzzled silence while she extended her hand and added, with the faintest
  • inflection of sadness in her voice: "Before we bid each other goodbye, I
  • want at least to thank you for having once thought of me as you did."
  • The touch of her hand, the moving softness of her look, thrilled a
  • vulnerable fibre in Rosedale. It was her exquisite inaccessibleness, the
  • sense of distance she could convey without a hint of disdain, that made
  • it most difficult for him to give her up.
  • "Why do you talk of saying goodbye? Ain't we going to be good friends all
  • the same?" he urged, without releasing her hand.
  • She drew it away quietly. "What is your idea of being good friends?" she
  • returned with a slight smile. "Making love to me without asking me to
  • marry you?" Rosedale laughed with a recovered sense of ease.
  • "Well, that's about the size of it, I suppose. I can't help making love
  • to you--I don't see how any man could; but I don't mean to ask you to
  • marry me as long as I can keep out of it."
  • She continued to smile. "I like your frankness; but I am afraid our
  • friendship can hardly continue on those terms." She turned away, as
  • though to mark that its final term had in fact been reached, and he
  • followed her for a few steps with a baffled sense of her having after all
  • kept the game in her own hands.
  • "Miss Lily----" he began impulsively; but she walked on without seeming
  • to hear him.
  • He overtook her in a few quick strides, and laid an entreating hand on
  • her arm. "Miss Lily--don't hurry away like that. You're beastly hard on a
  • fellow; but if you don't mind speaking the truth I don't see why you
  • shouldn't allow me to do the same."
  • She had paused a moment with raised brows, drawing away instinctively
  • from his touch, though she made no effort to evade his words.
  • "I was under the impression," she rejoined, "that you had done so without
  • waiting for my permission."
  • "Well--why shouldn't you hear my reasons for doing it, then? We're
  • neither of us such new hands that a little plain speaking is going to
  • hurt us. I'm all broken up on you: there's nothing new in that. I'm more
  • in love with you than I was this time last year; but I've got to face the
  • fact that the situation is changed."
  • She continued to confront him with the same air of ironic composure.
  • "You mean to say that I'm not as desirable a match as you thought me?"
  • "Yes; that's what I do mean," he answered resolutely. "I won't go into
  • what's happened. I don't believe the stories about you--I don't WANT to
  • believe them. But they're there, and my not believing them ain't going to
  • alter the situation."
  • She flushed to her temples, but the extremity of her need checked the
  • retort on her lip and she continued to face him composedly. "If they are
  • not true," she said, "doesn't THAT alter the situation?"
  • He met this with a steady gaze of his small stock-taking eyes, which made
  • her feel herself no more than some superfine human merchandise. "I
  • believe it does in novels; but I'm certain it don't in real life. You
  • know that as well as I do: if we're speaking the truth, let's speak the
  • whole truth. Last year I was wild to marry you, and you wouldn't look at
  • me: this year--well, you appear to be willing. Now, what has changed in
  • the interval? Your situation, that's all. Then you thought you could do
  • better; now----"
  • "You think you can?" broke from her ironically.
  • "Why, yes, I do: in one way, that is." He stood before her, his hands in
  • his pockets, his chest sturdily expanded under its vivid waistcoat.
  • "It's this way, you see: I've had a pretty steady grind of it these last
  • years, working up my social position. Think it's funny I should say
  • that? Why should I mind saying I want to get into society? A man ain't
  • ashamed to say he wants to own a racing stable or a picture gallery.
  • Well, a taste for society's just another kind of hobby. Perhaps I want
  • to get even with some of the people who cold-shouldered me last year--put
  • it that way if it sounds better. Anyhow, I want to have the run of the
  • best houses; and I'm getting it too, little by little. But I know the
  • quickest way to queer yourself with the right people is to be seen with
  • the wrong ones; and that's the reason I want to avoid mistakes."
  • Miss Bart continued to stand before him in a silence that might have
  • expressed either mockery or a half-reluctant respect for his candour, and
  • after a moment's pause he went on: "There it is, you see. I'm more in
  • love with you than ever, but if I married you now I'd queer myself for
  • good and all, and everything I've worked for all these years would be
  • wasted."
  • She received this with a look from which all tinge of resentment had
  • faded. After the tissue of social falsehoods in which she had so long
  • moved it was refreshing to step into the open daylight of an avowed
  • expediency.
  • "I understand you," she said. "A year ago I should have been of use to
  • you, and now I should be an encumbrance; and I like you for telling me so
  • quite honestly." She extended her hand with a smile.
  • Again the gesture had a disturbing effect upon Mr. Rosedale's
  • self-command. "By George, you're a dead game sport, you are!" he
  • exclaimed; and as she began once more to move away, he broke out
  • suddenly--"Miss Lily--stop. You know I don't believe those stories--I
  • believe they were all got up by a woman who didn't hesitate to sacrifice
  • you to her own convenience----"
  • Lily drew away with a movement of quick disdain: it was easier to endure
  • his insolence than his commiseration.
  • "You are very kind; but I don't think we need discuss the matter farther."
  • But Rosedale's natural imperviousness to hints made it easy for him to
  • brush such resistance aside. "I don't want to discuss anything; I just
  • want to put a plain case before you," he persisted.
  • She paused in spite of herself, held by the note of a new purpose in his
  • look and tone; and he went on, keeping his eyes firmly upon her: "The
  • wonder to me is that you've waited so long to get square with that woman,
  • when you've had the power in your hands." She continued silent under the
  • rush of astonishment that his words produced, and he moved a step closer
  • to ask with low-toned directness: "Why don't you use those letters of
  • hers you bought last year?"
  • Lily stood speechless under the shock of the interrogation. In the words
  • preceding it she had conjectured, at most, an allusion to her supposed
  • influence over George Dorset; nor did the astonishing indelicacy of the
  • reference diminish the likelihood of Rosedale's resorting to it. But now
  • she saw how far short of the mark she had fallen; and the surprise of
  • learning that he had discovered the secret of the letters left her, for
  • the moment, unconscious of the special use to which he was in the act of
  • putting his knowledge.
  • Her temporary loss of self-possession gave him time to press his point;
  • and he went on quickly, as though to secure completer control of the
  • situation: "You see I know where you stand--I know how completely she's
  • in your power. That sounds like stage-talk, don't it?--but there's a lot
  • of truth in some of those old gags; and I don't suppose you bought those
  • letters simply because you're collecting autographs."
  • She continued to look at him with a deepening bewilderment: her only
  • clear impression resolved itself into a scared sense of his power.
  • "You're wondering how I found out about 'em?" he went on, answering her
  • look with a note of conscious pride. "Perhaps you've forgotten that I'm
  • the owner of the Benedick--but never mind about that now. Getting on to
  • things is a mighty useful accomplishment in business, and I've simply
  • extended it to my private affairs. For this IS partly my affair, you
  • see--at least, it depends on you to make it so. Let's look the situation
  • straight in the eye. Mrs. Dorset, for reasons we needn't go into, did you
  • a beastly bad turn last spring. Everybody knows what Mrs. Dorset is, and
  • her best friends wouldn't believe her on oath where their own interests
  • were concerned; but as long as they're out of the row it's much easier to
  • follow her lead than to set themselves against it, and you've simply been
  • sacrificed to their laziness and selfishness. Isn't that a pretty fair
  • statement of the case?--Well, some people say you've got the neatest kind
  • of an answer in your hands: that George Dorset would marry you tomorrow,
  • if you'd tell him all you know, and give him the chance to show the lady
  • the door. I daresay he would; but you don't seem to care for that
  • particular form of getting even, and, taking a purely business view of
  • the question, I think you're right. In a deal like that, nobody comes out
  • with perfectly clean hands, and the only way for you to start fresh is to
  • get Bertha Dorset to back you up, instead of trying to fight her."
  • He paused long enough to draw breath, but not to give her time for the
  • expression of her gathering resistance; and as he pressed on, expounding
  • and elucidating his idea with the directness of the man who has no doubts
  • of his cause, she found the indignation gradually freezing on her lip,
  • found herself held fast in the grasp of his argument by the mere cold
  • strength of its presentation. There was no time now to wonder how he had
  • heard of her obtaining the letters: all her world was dark outside the
  • monstrous glare of his scheme for using them. And it was not, after the
  • first moment, the horror of the idea that held her spell-bound, subdued
  • to his will; it was rather its subtle affinity to her own inmost
  • cravings. He would marry her tomorrow if she could regain Bertha Dorset's
  • friendship; and to induce the open resumption of that friendship, and the
  • tacit retractation of all that had caused its withdrawal, she had only to
  • put to the lady the latent menace contained in the packet so miraculously
  • delivered into her hands. Lily saw in a flash the advantage of this
  • course over that which poor Dorset had pressed upon her. The other plan
  • depended for its success on the infliction of an open injury, while this
  • reduced the transaction to a private understanding, of which no third
  • person need have the remotest hint. Put by Rosedale in terms of
  • business-like give-and-take, this understanding took on the harmless air
  • of a mutual accommodation, like a transfer of property or a revision of
  • boundary lines. It certainly simplified life to view it as a perpetual
  • adjustment, a play of party politics, in which every concession had its
  • recognized equivalent: Lily's tired mind was fascinated by this escape
  • from fluctuating ethical estimates into a region of concrete weights and
  • measures.
  • Rosedale, as she listened, seemed to read in her silence not only a
  • gradual acquiescence in his plan, but a dangerously far-reaching
  • perception of the chances it offered; for as she continued to stand
  • before him without speaking, he broke out, with a quick return upon
  • himself: "You see how simple it is, don't you? Well, don't be carried
  • away by the idea that it's TOO simple. It isn't exactly as if you'd
  • started in with a clean bill of health. Now we're talking let's call
  • things by their right names, and clear the whole business up. You know
  • well enough that Bertha Dorset couldn't have touched you if there hadn't
  • been--well--questions asked before--little points of interrogation, eh?
  • Bound to happen to a good-looking girl with stingy relatives, I suppose;
  • anyhow, they DID happen, and she found the ground prepared for her. Do
  • you see where I'm coming out? You don't want these little questions
  • cropping up again. It's one thing to get Bertha Dorset into line--but
  • what you want is to keep her there. You can frighten her fast enough--but
  • how are you going to keep her frightened? By showing her that you're as
  • powerful as she is. All the letters in the world won't do that for you as
  • you are now; but with a big backing behind you, you'll keep her just
  • where you want her to be. That's MY share in the business--that's what
  • I'm offering you. You can't put the thing through without me--don't run
  • away with any idea that you can. In six months you'd be back again among
  • your old worries, or worse ones; and here I am, ready to lift you out of
  • 'em tomorrow if you say so. DO you say so, Miss Lily?" he added, moving
  • suddenly nearer.
  • The words, and the movement which accompanied them, combined to startle
  • Lily out of the state of tranced subservience into which she had
  • insensibly slipped. Light comes in devious ways to the groping
  • consciousness, and it came to her now through the disgusted perception
  • that her would-be accomplice assumed, as a matter of course, the
  • likelihood of her distrusting him and perhaps trying to cheat him of his
  • share of the spoils. This glimpse of his inner mind seemed to present the
  • whole transaction in a new aspect, and she saw that the essential
  • baseness of the act lay in its freedom from risk.
  • She drew back with a quick gesture of rejection, saying, in a voice that
  • was a surprise to her own ears: "You are mistaken--quite mistaken--both
  • in the facts and in what you infer from them."
  • Rosedale stared a moment, puzzled by her sudden dash in a direction so
  • different from that toward which she had appeared to be letting him guide
  • her.
  • "Now what on earth does that mean? I thought we understood each other!"
  • he exclaimed; and to her murmur of "Ah, we do NOW," he retorted with a
  • sudden burst of violence: "I suppose it's because the letters are to HIM,
  • then? Well, I'll be damned if I see what thanks you've got from him!"
  • Chapter 8
  • The autumn days declined to winter. Once more the leisure world was in
  • transition between country and town, and Fifth Avenue, still deserted at
  • the week-end, showed from Monday to Friday a broadening stream of
  • carriages between house-fronts gradually restored to consciousness.
  • The Horse Show, some two weeks earlier, had produced a passing semblance
  • of reanimation, filling the theatres and restaurants with a human display
  • of the same costly and high-stepping kind as circled daily about its
  • ring. In Miss Bart's world the Horse Show, and the public it attracted,
  • had ostensibly come to be classed among the spectacles disdained of the
  • elect; but, as the feudal lord might sally forth to join in the dance on
  • his village green, so society, unofficially and incidentally, still
  • condescended to look in upon the scene. Mrs. Gormer, among the rest, was
  • not above seizing such an occasion for the display of herself and her
  • horses; and Lily was given one or two opportunities of appearing at her
  • friend's side in the most conspicuous box the house afforded. But this
  • lingering semblance of intimacy made her only the more conscious of a
  • change in the relation between Mattie and herself, of a dawning
  • discrimination, a gradually formed social standard, emerging from Mrs.
  • Gormer's chaotic view of life. It was inevitable that Lily herself should
  • constitute the first sacrifice to this new ideal, and she knew that, once
  • the Gormers were established in town, the whole drift of fashionable life
  • would facilitate Mattie's detachment from her. She had, in short, failed
  • to make herself indispensable; or rather, her attempt to do so had been
  • thwarted by an influence stronger than any she could exert. That
  • influence, in its last analysis, was simply the power of money: Bertha
  • Dorset's social credit was based on an impregnable bank-account.
  • Lily knew that Rosedale had overstated neither the difficulty of her own
  • position nor the completeness of the vindication he offered: once
  • Bertha's match in material resources, her superior gifts would make it
  • easy for her to dominate her adversary. An understanding of what such
  • domination would mean, and of the disadvantages accruing from her
  • rejection of it, was brought home to Lily with increasing clearness
  • during the early weeks of the winter. Hitherto, she had kept up a
  • semblance of movement outside the main flow of the social current; but
  • with the return to town, and the concentrating of scattered activities,
  • the mere fact of not slipping back naturally into her old habits of life
  • marked her as being unmistakably excluded from them. If one were not a
  • part of the season's fixed routine, one swung unsphered in a void of
  • social non-existence. Lily, for all her dissatisfied dreaming, had never
  • really conceived the possibility of revolving about a different centre:
  • it was easy enough to despise the world, but decidedly difficult to find
  • any other habitable region. Her sense of irony never quite deserted her,
  • and she could still note, with self-directed derision, the abnormal value
  • suddenly acquired by the most tiresome and insignificant details of her
  • former life. Its very drudgeries had a charm now that she was
  • involuntarily released from them: card-leaving, note-writing, enforced
  • civilities to the dull and elderly, and the smiling endurance of tedious
  • dinners--how pleasantly such obligations would have filled the emptiness
  • of her days! She did indeed leave cards in plenty; she kept herself, with
  • a smiling and valiant persistence, well in the eye of her world; nor did
  • she suffer any of those gross rebuffs which sometimes produce a wholesome
  • reaction of contempt in their victim. Society did not turn away from her,
  • it simply drifted by, preoccupied and inattentive, letting her feel, to
  • the full measure of her humbled pride, how completely she had been the
  • creature of its favour.
  • She had rejected Rosedale's suggestion with a promptness of scorn almost
  • surprising to herself: she had not lost her capacity for high flashes of
  • indignation. But she could not breathe long on the heights; there had
  • been nothing in her training to develop any continuity of moral strength:
  • what she craved, and really felt herself entitled to, was a situation in
  • which the noblest attitude should also be the easiest. Hitherto her
  • intermittent impulses of resistance had sufficed to maintain her
  • self-respect. If she slipped she recovered her footing, and it was only
  • afterward that she was aware of having recovered it each time on a
  • slightly lower level. She had rejected Rosedale's offer without conscious
  • effort; her whole being had risen against it; and she did not yet
  • perceive that, by the mere act of listening to him, she had learned to
  • live with ideas which would once have been intolerable to her.
  • To Gerty Farish, keeping watch over her with a tenderer if less
  • discerning eye than Mrs. Fisher's, the results of the struggle were
  • already distinctly visible. She did not, indeed, know what hostages Lily
  • had already given to expediency; but she saw her passionately and
  • irretrievably pledged to the ruinous policy of "keeping up." Gerty could
  • smile now at her own early dream of her friend's renovation through
  • adversity: she understood clearly enough that Lily was not of those to
  • whom privation teaches the unimportance of what they have lost. But this
  • very fact, to Gerty, made her friend the more piteously in want of aid,
  • the more exposed to the claims of a tenderness she was so little
  • conscious of needing.
  • Lily, since her return to town, had not often climbed Miss Farish's
  • stairs. There was something irritating to her in the mute interrogation
  • of Gerty's sympathy: she felt the real difficulties of her situation to
  • be incommunicable to any one whose theory of values was so different from
  • her own, and the restrictions of Gerty's life, which had once had the
  • charm of contrast, now reminded her too painfully of the limits to which
  • her own existence was shrinking. When at length, one afternoon, she put
  • into execution the belated resolve to visit her friend, this sense of
  • shrunken opportunities possessed her with unusual intensity. The walk up
  • Fifth Avenue, unfolding before her, in the brilliance of the hard winter
  • sunlight, an interminable procession of fastidiously-equipped
  • carriages--giving her, through the little squares of brougham-windows,
  • peeps of familiar profiles bent above visiting-lists, of hurried hands
  • dispensing notes and cards to attendant footmen--this glimpse of the
  • ever-revolving wheels of the great social machine made Lily more than
  • ever conscious of the steepness and narrowness of Gerty's stairs, and of
  • the cramped blind alley of life to which they led. Dull stairs destined
  • to be mounted by dull people: how many thousands of insignificant figures
  • were going up and down such stairs all over the world at that very
  • moment--figures as shabby and uninteresting as that of the middle-aged
  • lady in limp black who descended Gerty's flight as Lily climbed to it!
  • "That was poor Miss Jane Silverton--she came to talk things over with me:
  • she and her sister want to do something to support themselves," Gerty
  • explained, as Lily followed her into the sitting-room.
  • "To support themselves? Are they so hard up?" Miss Bart asked with a
  • touch of irritation: she had not come to listen to the woes of other
  • people.
  • "I'm afraid they have nothing left: Ned's debts have swallowed up
  • everything. They had such hopes, you know, when he broke away from Carry
  • Fisher; they thought Bertha Dorset would be such a good influence,
  • because she doesn't care for cards, and--well, she talked quite
  • beautifully to poor Miss Jane about feeling as if Ned were her younger
  • brother, and wanting to carry him off on the yacht, so that he might have
  • a chance to drop cards and racing, and take up his literary work again."
  • Miss Farish paused with a sigh which reflected the perplexity of her
  • departing visitor. "But that isn't all; it isn't even the worst. It seems
  • that Ned has quarrelled with the Dorsets; or at least Bertha won't allow
  • him to see her, and he is so unhappy about it that he has taken to
  • gambling again, and going about with all sorts of queer people. And
  • cousin Grace Van Osburgh accuses him of having had a very bad influence
  • on Freddy, who left Harvard last spring, and has been a great deal with
  • Ned ever since. She sent for Miss Jane, and made a dreadful scene; and
  • Jack Stepney and Herbert Melson, who were there too, told Miss Jane that
  • Freddy was threatening to marry some dreadful woman to whom Ned had
  • introduced him, and that they could do nothing with him because now he's
  • of age he has his own money. You can fancy how poor Miss Jane felt--she
  • came to me at once, and seemed to think that if I could get her something
  • to do she could earn enough to pay Ned's debts and send him away--I'm
  • afraid she has no idea how long it would take her to pay for one of his
  • evenings at bridge. And he was horribly in debt when he came back from
  • the cruise--I can't see why he should have spent so much more money under
  • Bertha's influence than Carry's: can you?"
  • Lily met this query with an impatient gesture. "My dear Gerty, I always
  • understand how people can spend much more money--never how they can spend
  • any less!"
  • She loosened her furs and settled herself in Gerty's easy-chair, while
  • her friend busied herself with the tea-cups.
  • "But what can they do--the Miss Silvertons? How do they mean to support
  • themselves?" she asked, conscious that the note of irritation still
  • persisted in her voice. It was the very last topic she had meant to
  • discuss--it really did not interest her in the least--but she was seized
  • by a sudden perverse curiosity to know how the two colourless shrinking
  • victims of young Silverton's sentimental experiments meant to cope with
  • the grim necessity which lurked so close to her own threshold.
  • "I don't know--I am trying to find something for them. Miss Jane reads
  • aloud very nicely--but it's so hard to find any one who is willing to be
  • read to. And Miss Annie paints a little----"
  • "Oh, I know--apple-blossoms on blotting-paper; just the kind of thing I
  • shall be doing myself before long!" exclaimed Lily, starting up with a
  • vehemence of movement that threatened destruction to Miss Farish's
  • fragile tea-table.
  • Lily bent over to steady the cups; then she sank back into her seat.
  • "I'd forgotten there was no room to dash about in--how beautifully one
  • does have to behave in a small flat! Oh, Gerty, I wasn't meant to be
  • good," she sighed out incoherently.
  • Gerty lifted an apprehensive look to her pale face, in which the eyes
  • shone with a peculiar sleepless lustre.
  • "You look horribly tired, Lily; take your tea, and let me give you this
  • cushion to lean against."
  • Miss Bart accepted the cup of tea, but put back the cushion with an
  • impatient hand.
  • "Don't give me that! I don't want to lean back--I shall go to sleep if I
  • do."
  • "Well, why not, dear? I'll be as quiet as a mouse," Gerty urged
  • affectionately.
  • "No--no; don't be quiet; talk to me--keep me awake! I don't sleep at
  • night, and in the afternoon a dreadful drowsiness creeps over me."
  • "You don't sleep at night? Since when?"
  • "I don't know--I can't remember." She rose and put the empty cup on the
  • tea-tray. "Another, and stronger, please; if I don't keep awake now I
  • shall see horrors tonight--perfect horrors!"
  • "But they'll be worse if you drink too much tea."
  • "No, no--give it to me; and don't preach, please," Lily returned
  • imperiously. Her voice had a dangerous edge, and Gerty noticed that her
  • hand shook as she held it out to receive the second cup.
  • "But you look so tired: I'm sure you must be ill----"
  • Miss Bart set down her cup with a start. "Do I look ill? Does my face
  • show it?" She rose and walked quickly toward the little mirror above the
  • writing-table. "What a horrid looking-glass--it's all blotched and
  • discoloured. Any one would look ghastly in it!" She turned back, fixing
  • her plaintive eyes on Gerty. "You stupid dear, why do you say such odious
  • things to me? It's enough to make one ill to be told one looks so! And
  • looking ill means looking ugly." She caught Gerty's wrists, and drew her
  • close to the window. "After all, I'd rather know the truth. Look me
  • straight in the face, Gerty, and tell me: am I perfectly frightful?"
  • "You're perfectly beautiful now, Lily: your eyes are shining, and your
  • cheeks have grown so pink all of a sudden----"
  • "Ah, they WERE pale, then--ghastly pale, when I came in? Why don't you
  • tell me frankly that I'm a wreck? My eyes are bright now because I'm so
  • nervous--but in the mornings they look like lead. And I can see the lines
  • coming in my face--the lines of worry and disappointment and failure!
  • Every sleepless night leaves a new one--and how can I sleep, when I have
  • such dreadful things to think about?"
  • "Dreadful things--what things?" asked Gerty, gently detaching her wrists
  • from her friend's feverish fingers.
  • "What things? Well, poverty, for one--and I don't know any that's more
  • dreadful." Lily turned away and sank with sudden weariness into the
  • easy-chair near the tea-table. "You asked me just now if I could
  • understand why Ned Silverton spent so much money. Of course I
  • understand--he spends it on living with the rich. You think we live ON
  • the rich, rather than with them: and so we do, in a sense--but it's a
  • privilege we have to pay for! We eat their dinners, and drink their wine,
  • and smoke their cigarettes, and use their carriages and their opera-boxes
  • and their private cars--yes, but there's a tax to pay on every one of
  • those luxuries. The man pays it by big tips to the servants, by playing
  • cards beyond his means, by flowers and presents--and--and--lots of other
  • things that cost; the girl pays it by tips and cards too--oh, yes, I've
  • had to take up bridge again--and by going to the best dress-makers, and
  • having just the right dress for every occasion, and always keeping
  • herself fresh and exquisite and amusing!"
  • She leaned back for a moment, closing her eyes, and as she sat there, her
  • pale lips slightly parted, and the lids dropped above her fagged
  • brilliant gaze, Gerty had a startled perception of the change in her
  • face--of the way in which an ashen daylight seemed suddenly to extinguish
  • its artificial brightness. She looked up, and the vision vanished.
  • "It doesn't sound very amusing, does it? And it isn't--I'm sick to death
  • of it! And yet the thought of giving it all up nearly kills me--it's what
  • keeps me awake at night, and makes me so crazy for your strong tea. For I
  • can't go on in this way much longer, you know--I'm nearly at the end of
  • my tether. And then what can I do--how on earth am I to keep myself
  • alive? I see myself reduced to the fate of that poor Silverton
  • woman--slinking about to employment agencies, and trying to sell painted
  • blotting-pads to Women's Exchanges! And there are thousands and thousands
  • of women trying to do the same thing already, and not one of the number
  • who has less idea how to earn a dollar than I have!"
  • She rose again with a hurried glance at the clock. "It's late, and I must
  • be off--I have an appointment with Carry Fisher. Don't look so worried,
  • you dear thing--don't think too much about the nonsense I've been
  • talking." She was before the mirror again, adjusting her hair with a
  • light hand, drawing down her veil, and giving a dexterous touch to her
  • furs. "Of course, you know, it hasn't come to the employment agencies and
  • the painted blotting-pads yet; but I'm rather hard-up just for the
  • moment, and if I could find something to do--notes to write and
  • visiting-lists to make up, or that kind of thing--it would tide me over
  • till the legacy is paid. And Carry has promised to find somebody who
  • wants a kind of social secretary--you know she makes a specialty of the
  • helpless rich."
  • Miss Bart had not revealed to Gerty the full extent of her anxiety. She
  • was in fact in urgent and immediate need of money: money to meet the
  • vulgar weekly claims which could neither be deferred nor evaded. To give
  • up her apartment, and shrink to the obscurity of a boarding-house, or the
  • provisional hospitality of a bed in Gerty Farish's sitting-room, was an
  • expedient which could only postpone the problem confronting her; and it
  • seemed wiser as well as more agreeable to remain where she was and find
  • some means of earning her living. The possibility of having to do this
  • was one which she had never before seriously considered, and the
  • discovery that, as a bread-winner, she was likely to prove as helpless
  • and ineffectual as poor Miss Silverton, was a severe shock to her
  • self-confidence.
  • Having been accustomed to take herself at the popular valuation, as a
  • person of energy and resource, naturally fitted to dominate any situation
  • in which she found herself, she vaguely imagined that such gifts would be
  • of value to seekers after social guidance; but there was unfortunately no
  • specific head under which the art of saying and doing the right thing
  • could be offered in the market, and even Mrs. Fisher's resourcefulness
  • failed before the difficulty of discovering a workable vein in the vague
  • wealth of Lily's graces. Mrs. Fisher was full of indirect expedients for
  • enabling her friends to earn a living, and could conscientiously assert
  • that she had put several opportunities of this kind before Lily; but more
  • legitimate methods of bread-winning were as much out of her line as they
  • were beyond the capacity of the sufferers she was generally called upon
  • to assist. Lily's failure to profit by the chances already afforded her
  • might, moreover, have justified the abandonment of farther effort on her
  • behalf; but Mrs. Fisher's inexhaustible good-nature made her an adept at
  • creating artificial demands in response to an actual supply. In the
  • pursuance of this end she at once started on a voyage of discovery in
  • Miss Bart's behalf; and as the result of her explorations she now
  • summoned the latter with the announcement that she had "found something."
  • Left to herself, Gerty mused distressfully upon her friend's plight, and
  • her own inability to relieve it. It was clear to her that Lily, for the
  • present, had no wish for the kind of help she could give. Miss Farish
  • could see no hope for her friend but in a life completely reorganized and
  • detached from its old associations; whereas all Lily's energies were
  • centred in the determined effort to hold fast to those associations, to
  • keep herself visibly identified with them, as long as the illusion could
  • be maintained. Pitiable as such an attitude seemed to Gerty, she could
  • not judge it as harshly as Selden, for instance, might have done. She had
  • not forgotten the night of emotion when she and Lily had lain in each
  • other's arms, and she had seemed to feel her very heart's blood passing
  • into her friend. The sacrifice she had made had seemed unavailing enough;
  • no trace remained in Lily of the subduing influences of that hour; but
  • Gerty's tenderness, disciplined by long years of contact with obscure and
  • inarticulate suffering, could wait on its object with a silent
  • forbearance which took no account of time. She could not, however, deny
  • herself the solace of taking anxious counsel with Lawrence Selden, with
  • whom, since his return from Europe, she had renewed her old relation of
  • cousinly confidence.
  • Selden himself had never been aware of any change in their relation. He
  • found Gerty as he had left her, simple, undemanding and devoted, but with
  • a quickened intelligence of the heart which he recognized without seeking
  • to explain it. To Gerty herself it would once have seemed impossible that
  • she should ever again talk freely with him of Lily Bart; but what had
  • passed in the secrecy of her own breast seemed to resolve itself, when
  • the mist of the struggle cleared, into a breaking down of the bounds of
  • self, a deflecting of the wasted personal emotion into the general
  • current of human understanding.
  • It was not till some two weeks after her visit from Lily that Gerty had
  • the opportunity of communicating her fears to Selden. The latter, having
  • presented himself on a Sunday afternoon, had lingered on through the
  • dowdy animation of his cousin's tea-hour, conscious of something in her
  • voice and eye which solicited a word apart; and as soon as the last
  • visitor was gone Gerty opened her case by asking how lately he had seen
  • Miss Bart.
  • Selden's perceptible pause gave her time for a slight stir of surprise.
  • "I haven't seen her at all--I've perpetually missed seeing her since she
  • came back."
  • This unexpected admission made Gerty pause too; and she was still
  • hesitating on the brink of her subject when he relieved her by adding:
  • "I've wanted to see her--but she seems to have been absorbed by the
  • Gormer set since her return from Europe."
  • "That's all the more reason: she's been very unhappy."
  • "Unhappy at being with the Gormers?"
  • "Oh, I don't defend her intimacy with the Gormers; but that too is at an
  • end now, I think. You know people have been very unkind since Bertha
  • Dorset quarrelled with her."
  • "Ah----" Selden exclaimed, rising abruptly to walk to the window, where
  • he remained with his eyes on the darkening street while his cousin
  • continued to explain: "Judy Trenor and her own family have deserted her
  • too--and all because Bertha Dorset has said such horrible things. And she
  • is very poor--you know Mrs. Peniston cut her off with a small legacy,
  • after giving her to understand that she was to have everything."
  • "Yes--I know," Selden assented curtly, turning back into the room, but
  • only to stir about with restless steps in the circumscribed space between
  • door and window. "Yes--she's been abominably treated; but it's
  • unfortunately the precise thing that a man who wants to show his sympathy
  • can't say to her."
  • His words caused Gerty a slight chill of disappointment. "There would be
  • other ways of showing your sympathy," she suggested.
  • Selden, with a slight laugh, sat down beside her on the little sofa which
  • projected from the hearth. "What are you thinking of, you incorrigible
  • missionary?" he asked.
  • Gerty's colour rose, and her blush was for a moment her only answer.
  • Then she made it more explicit by saying: "I am thinking of the fact that
  • you and she used to be great friends--that she used to care immensely for
  • what you thought of her--and that, if she takes your staying away as a
  • sign of what you think now, I can imagine its adding a great deal to her
  • unhappiness."
  • "My dear child, don't add to it still more--at least to your conception
  • of it--by attributing to her all sorts of susceptibilities of your own."
  • Selden, for his life, could not keep a note of dryness out of his voice;
  • but he met Gerty's look of perplexity by saying more mildly: "But, though
  • you immensely exaggerate the importance of anything I could do for Miss
  • Bart, you can't exaggerate my readiness to do it--if you ask me to." He
  • laid his hand for a moment on hers, and there passed between them, on the
  • current of the rare contact, one of those exchanges of meaning which fill
  • the hidden reservoirs of affection. Gerty had the feeling that he
  • measured the cost of her request as plainly as she read the significance
  • of his reply; and the sense of all that was suddenly clear between them
  • made her next words easier to find.
  • "I do ask you, then; I ask you because she once told me that you had been
  • a help to her, and because she needs help now as she has never needed it
  • before. You know how dependent she has always been on ease and
  • luxury--how she has hated what was shabby and ugly and uncomfortable. She
  • can't help it--she was brought up with those ideas, and has never been
  • able to find her way out of them. But now all the things she cared for
  • have been taken from her, and the people who taught her to care for them
  • have abandoned her too; and it seems to me that if some one could reach
  • out a hand and show her the other side--show her how much is left in life
  • and in herself----" Gerty broke off, abashed at the sound of her own
  • eloquence, and impeded by the difficulty of giving precise expression to
  • her vague yearning for her friend's retrieval. "I can't help her myself:
  • she's passed out of my reach," she continued. "I think she's afraid of
  • being a burden to me. When she was last here, two weeks ago, she seemed
  • dreadfully worried about her future: she said Carry Fisher was trying to
  • find something for her to do. A few days later she wrote me that she had
  • taken a position as private secretary, and that I was not to be anxious,
  • for everything was all right, and she would come in and tell me about it
  • when she had time; but she has never come, and I don't like to go to her,
  • because I am afraid of forcing myself on her when I'm not wanted. Once,
  • when we were children, and I had rushed up after a long separation, and
  • thrown my arms about her, she said: 'Please don't kiss me unless I ask
  • you to, Gerty'--and she DID ask me, a minute later; but since then I've
  • always waited to be asked."
  • Selden had listened in silence, with the concentrated look which his thin
  • dark face could assume when he wished to guard it against any involuntary
  • change of expression. When his cousin ended, he said with a slight smile:
  • "Since you've learned the wisdom of waiting, I don't see why you urge me
  • to rush in--" but the troubled appeal of her eyes made him add, as he
  • rose to take leave: "Still, I'll do what you wish, and not hold you
  • responsible for my failure."
  • Selden's avoidance of Miss Bart had not been as unintentional as he had
  • allowed his cousin to think. At first, indeed, while the memory of their
  • last hour at Monte Carlo still held the full heat of his indignation, he
  • had anxiously watched for her return; but she had disappointed him by
  • lingering in England, and when she finally reappeared it happened that
  • business had called him to the West, whence he came back only to learn
  • that she was starting for Alaska with the Gormers. The revelation of this
  • suddenly-established intimacy effectually chilled his desire to see her.
  • If, at a moment when her whole life seemed to be breaking up, she could
  • cheerfully commit its reconstruction to the Gormers, there was no reason
  • why such accidents should ever strike her as irreparable. Every step she
  • took seemed in fact to carry her farther from the region where, once or
  • twice, he and she had met for an illumined moment; and the recognition of
  • this fact, when its first pang had been surmounted, produced in him a
  • sense of negative relief. It was much simpler for him to judge Miss Bart
  • by her habitual conduct than by the rare deviations from it which had
  • thrown her so disturbingly in his way; and every act of hers which made
  • the recurrence of such deviations more unlikely, confirmed the sense of
  • relief with which he returned to the conventional view of her.
  • But Gerty Farish's words had sufficed to make him see how little this
  • view was really his, and how impossible it was for him to live quietly
  • with the thought of Lily Bart. To hear that she was in need of help--even
  • such vague help as he could offer--was to be at once repossessed by that
  • thought; and by the time he reached the street he had sufficiently
  • convinced himself of the urgency of his cousin's appeal to turn his steps
  • directly toward Lily's hotel.
  • There his zeal met a check in the unforeseen news that Miss Bart had
  • moved away; but, on his pressing his enquiries, the clerk remembered that
  • she had left an address, for which he presently began to search through
  • his books.
  • It was certainly strange that she should have taken this step without
  • letting Gerty Farish know of her decision; and Selden waited with a vague
  • sense of uneasiness while the address was sought for. The process lasted
  • long enough for uneasiness to turn to apprehension; but when at length a
  • slip of paper was handed him, and he read on it: "Care of Mrs. Norma
  • Hatch, Emporium Hotel," his apprehension passed into an incredulous
  • stare, and this into the gesture of disgust with which he tore the paper
  • in two, and turned to walk quickly homeward.
  • Chapter 9
  • When Lily woke on the morning after her translation to the Emporium
  • Hotel, her first feeling was one of purely physical satisfaction. The
  • force of contrast gave an added keenness to the luxury of lying once more
  • in a soft-pillowed bed, and looking across a spacious sunlit room at a
  • breakfast-table set invitingly near the fire. Analysis and introspection
  • might come later; but for the moment she was not even troubled by the
  • excesses of the upholstery or the restless convolutions of the furniture.
  • The sense of being once more lapped and folded in ease, as in some dense
  • mild medium impenetrable to discomfort, effectually stilled the faintest
  • note of criticism.
  • When, the afternoon before, she had presented herself to the lady to whom
  • Carry Fisher had directed her, she had been conscious of entering a new
  • world. Carry's vague presentment of Mrs. Norma Hatch (whose reversion to
  • her Christian name was explained as the result of her latest divorce),
  • left her under the implication of coming "from the West," with the not
  • unusual extenuation of having brought a great deal of money with her. She
  • was, in short, rich, helpless, unplaced: the very subject for Lily's
  • hand. Mrs. Fisher had not specified the line her friend was to take; she
  • owned herself unacquainted with Mrs. Hatch, whom she "knew about" through
  • Melville Stancy, a lawyer in his leisure moments, and the Falstaff of a
  • certain section of festive club life. Socially, Mr. Stancy might have
  • been said to form a connecting link between the Gormer world and the more
  • dimly-lit region on which Miss Bart now found herself entering. It was,
  • however, only figuratively that the illumination of Mrs. Hatch's world
  • could be described as dim: in actual fact, Lily found her seated in a
  • blaze of electric light, impartially projected from various ornamental
  • excrescences on a vast concavity of pink damask and gilding, from which
  • she rose like Venus from her shell. The analogy was justified by the
  • appearance of the lady, whose large-eyed prettiness had the fixity of
  • something impaled and shown under glass. This did not preclude the
  • immediate discovery that she was some years younger than her visitor, and
  • that under her showiness, her ease, the aggression of her dress and
  • voice, there persisted that ineradicable innocence which, in ladies of
  • her nationality, so curiously coexists with startling extremes of
  • experience.
  • The environment in which Lily found herself was as strange to her as its
  • inhabitants. She was unacquainted with the world of the fashionable New
  • York hotel--a world over-heated, over-upholstered, and over-fitted with
  • mechanical appliances for the gratification of fantastic requirements,
  • while the comforts of a civilized life were as unattainable as in a
  • desert. Through this atmosphere of torrid splendour moved wan beings as
  • richly upholstered as the furniture, beings without definite pursuits or
  • permanent relations, who drifted on a languid tide of curiosity from
  • restaurant to concert-hall, from palm-garden to music-room, from "art
  • exhibit" to dress-maker's opening. High-stepping horses or elaborately
  • equipped motors waited to carry these ladies into vague metropolitan
  • distances, whence they returned, still more wan from the weight of their
  • sables, to be sucked back into the stifling inertia of the hotel routine.
  • Somewhere behind them, in the background of their lives, there was
  • doubtless a real past, peopled by real human activities: they themselves
  • were probably the product of strong ambitions, persistent energies,
  • diversified contacts with the wholesome roughness of life; yet they had
  • no more real existence than the poet's shades in limbo.
  • Lily had not been long in this pallid world without discovering that Mrs.
  • Hatch was its most substantial figure. That lady, though still floating
  • in the void, showed faint symptoms of developing an outline; and in this
  • endeavour she was actively seconded by Mr. Melville Stancy. It was Mr.
  • Stancy, a man of large resounding presence, suggestive of convivial
  • occasions and of a chivalry finding expression in "first-night" boxes and
  • thousand dollar bonbonnieres, who had transplanted Mrs. Hatch from the
  • scene of her first development to the higher stage of hotel life in the
  • metropolis. It was he who had selected the horses with which she had
  • taken the blue ribbon at the Show, had introduced her to the photographer
  • whose portraits of her formed the recurring ornament of "Sunday
  • Supplements," and had got together the group which constituted her social
  • world. It was a small group still, with heterogeneous figures suspended
  • in large unpeopled spaces; but Lily did not take long to learn that its
  • regulation was no longer in Mr. Stancy's hands. As often happens, the
  • pupil had outstripped the teacher, and Mrs. Hatch was already aware of
  • heights of elegance as well as depths of luxury beyond the world of the
  • Emporium. This discovery at once produced in her a craving for higher
  • guidance, for the adroit feminine hand which should give the right turn
  • to her correspondence, the right "look" to her hats, the right succession
  • to the items of her MENUS. It was, in short, as the regulator of a
  • germinating social life that Miss Bart's guidance was required; her
  • ostensible duties as secretary being restricted by the fact that Mrs.
  • Hatch, as yet, knew hardly any one to write to.
  • The daily details of Mrs. Hatch's existence were as strange to Lily as
  • its general tenor. The lady's habits were marked by an Oriental indolence
  • and disorder peculiarly trying to her companion. Mrs. Hatch and her
  • friends seemed to float together outside the bounds of time and space. No
  • definite hours were kept; no fixed obligations existed: night and day
  • flowed into one another in a blur of confused and retarded engagements,
  • so that one had the impression of lunching at the tea-hour, while dinner
  • was often merged in the noisy after-theatre supper which prolonged Mrs.
  • Hatch's vigil till daylight.
  • Through this jumble of futile activities came and went a strange throng
  • of hangers-on--manicures, beauty-doctors, hair-dressers, teachers of
  • bridge, of French, of "physical development": figures sometimes
  • indistinguishable, by their appearance, or by Mrs. Hatch's relation to
  • them, from the visitors constituting her recognized society. But
  • strangest of all to Lily was the encounter, in this latter group, of
  • several of her acquaintances. She had supposed, and not without relief,
  • that she was passing, for the moment, completely out of her own circle;
  • but she found that Mr. Stancy, one side of whose sprawling existence
  • overlapped the edge of Mrs. Fisher's world, had drawn several of its
  • brightest ornaments into the circle of the Emporium. To find Ned
  • Silverton among the habitual frequenters of Mrs. Hatch's drawing-room was
  • one of Lily's first astonishments; but she soon discovered that he was
  • not Mr. Stancy's most important recruit. It was on little Freddy Van
  • Osburgh, the small slim heir of the Van Osburgh millions, that the
  • attention of Mrs. Hatch's group was centred. Freddy, barely out of
  • college, had risen above the horizon since Lily's eclipse, and she now
  • saw with surprise what an effulgence he shed on the outer twilight of
  • Mrs. Hatch's existence. This, then, was one of the things that young men
  • "went in" for when released from the official social routine; this was
  • the kind of "previous engagement" that so frequently caused them to
  • disappoint the hopes of anxious hostesses. Lily had an odd sense of being
  • behind the social tapestry, on the side where the threads were knotted
  • and the loose ends hung. For a moment she found a certain amusement in
  • the show, and in her own share of it: the situation had an ease and
  • unconventionality distinctly refreshing after her experience of the irony
  • of conventions. But these flashes of amusement were but brief reactions
  • from the long disgust of her days. Compared with the vast gilded void of
  • Mrs. Hatch's existence, the life of Lily's former friends seemed packed
  • with ordered activities. Even the most irresponsible pretty woman of her
  • acquaintance had her inherited obligations, her conventional
  • benevolences, her share in the working of the great civic machine; and
  • all hung together in the solidarity of these traditional functions. The
  • performance of specific duties would have simplified Miss Bart's
  • position; but the vague attendance on Mrs. Hatch was not without its
  • perplexities.
  • It was not her employer who created these perplexities. Mrs. Hatch showed
  • from the first an almost touching desire for Lily's approval. Far from
  • asserting the superiority of wealth, her beautiful eyes seemed to urge
  • the plea of inexperience: she wanted to do what was "nice," to be taught
  • how to be "lovely." The difficulty was to find any point of contact
  • between her ideals and Lily's.
  • Mrs. Hatch swam in a haze of indeterminate enthusiasms, of aspirations
  • culled from the stage, the newspapers, the fashion journals, and a gaudy
  • world of sport still more completely beyond her companion's ken. To
  • separate from these confused conceptions those most likely to advance the
  • lady on her way, was Lily's obvious duty; but its performance was
  • hampered by rapidly-growing doubts. Lily was in fact becoming more and
  • more aware of a certain ambiguity in her situation. It was not that she
  • had, in the conventional sense, any doubt of Mrs. Hatch's
  • irreproachableness. The lady's offences were always against taste rather
  • than conduct; her divorce record seemed due to geographical rather than
  • ethical conditions; and her worst laxities were likely to proceed from a
  • wandering and extravagant good-nature. But if Lily did not mind her
  • detaining her manicure for luncheon, or offering the "Beauty-Doctor" a
  • seat in Freddy Van Osburgh's box at the play, she was not equally at ease
  • in regard to some less apparent lapses from convention. Ned Silverton's
  • relation to Stancy seemed, for instance, closer and less clear than any
  • natural affinities would warrant; and both appeared united in the effort
  • to cultivate Freddy Van Osburgh's growing taste for Mrs. Hatch. There was
  • as yet nothing definable in the situation, which might well resolve
  • itself into a huge joke on the part of the other two; but Lily had a
  • vague sense that the subject of their experiment was too young, too rich
  • and too credulous. Her embarrassment was increased by the fact that
  • Freddy seemed to regard her as cooperating with himself in the social
  • development of Mrs. Hatch: a view that suggested, on his part, a
  • permanent interest in the lady's future. There were moments when Lily
  • found an ironic amusement in this aspect of the case. The thought of
  • launching such a missile as Mrs. Hatch at the perfidious bosom of society
  • was not without its charm: Miss Bart had even beguiled her leisure with
  • visions of the fair Norma introduced for the first time to a family
  • banquet at the Van Osburghs'. But the thought of being personally
  • connected with the transaction was less agreeable; and her momentary
  • flashes of amusement were followed by increasing periods of doubt.
  • The sense of these doubts was uppermost when, late one afternoon, she was
  • surprised by a visit from Lawrence Selden. He found her alone in the
  • wilderness of pink damask, for in Mrs. Hatch's world the tea-hour was not
  • dedicated to social rites, and the lady was in the hands of her masseuse.
  • Selden's entrance had caused Lily an inward start of embarrassment; but
  • his air of constraint had the effect of restoring her self-possession,
  • and she took at once the tone of surprise and pleasure, wondering frankly
  • that he should have traced her to so unlikely a place, and asking what
  • had inspired him to make the search.
  • Selden met this with an unusual seriousness: she had never seen him so
  • little master of the situation, so plainly at the mercy of any
  • obstructions she might put in his way. "I wanted to see you," he said;
  • and she could not resist observing in reply that he had kept his wishes
  • under remarkable control. She had in truth felt his long absence as one
  • of the chief bitternesses of the last months: his desertion had wounded
  • sensibilities far below the surface of her pride.
  • Selden met the challenge with directness. "Why should I have come, unless
  • I thought I could be of use to you? It is my only excuse for imagining
  • you could want me."
  • This struck her as a clumsy evasion, and the thought gave a flash of
  • keenness to her answer. "Then you have come now because you think you can
  • be of use to me?"
  • He hesitated again. "Yes: in the modest capacity of a person to talk
  • things over with."
  • For a clever man it was certainly a stupid beginning; and the idea that
  • his awkwardness was due to the fear of her attaching a personal
  • significance to his visit, chilled her pleasure in seeing him. Even under
  • the most adverse conditions, that pleasure always made itself felt: she
  • might hate him, but she had never been able to wish him out of the room.
  • She was very near hating him now; yet the sound of his voice, the way the
  • light fell on his thin dark hair, the way he sat and moved and wore his
  • clothes--she was conscious that even these trivial things were inwoven
  • with her deepest life. In his presence a sudden stillness came upon her,
  • and the turmoil of her spirit ceased; but an impulse of resistance to
  • this stealing influence now prompted her to say: "It's very good of you
  • to present yourself in that capacity; but what makes you think I have
  • anything particular to talk about?"
  • Though she kept the even tone of light intercourse, the question was
  • framed in a way to remind him that his good offices were unsought; and
  • for a moment Selden was checked by it. The situation between them was one
  • which could have been cleared up only by a sudden explosion of feeling;
  • and their whole training and habit of mind were against the chances of
  • such an explosion. Selden's calmness seemed rather to harden into
  • resistance, and Miss Bart's into a surface of glittering irony, as they
  • faced each other from the opposite corners of one of Mrs. Hatch's
  • elephantine sofas. The sofa in question, and the apartment peopled by its
  • monstrous mates, served at length to suggest the turn of Selden's reply.
  • "Gerty told me that you were acting as Mrs. Hatch's secretary; and I knew
  • she was anxious to hear how you were getting on."
  • Miss Bart received this explanation without perceptible softening. "Why
  • didn't she look me up herself, then?" she asked.
  • "Because, as you didn't send her your address, she was afraid of being
  • importunate." Selden continued with a smile: "You see no such scruples
  • restrained me; but then I haven't as much to risk if I incur your
  • displeasure."
  • Lily answered his smile. "You haven't incurred it as yet; but I have an
  • idea that you are going to."
  • "That rests with you, doesn't it? You see my initiative doesn't go beyond
  • putting myself at your disposal."
  • "But in what capacity? What am I to do with you?" she asked in the same
  • light tone.
  • Selden again glanced about Mrs. Hatch's drawing-room; then he said, with
  • a decision which he seemed to have gathered from this final inspection:
  • "You are to let me take you away from here."
  • Lily flushed at the suddenness of the attack; then she stiffened under it
  • and said coldly: "And may I ask where you mean me to go?"
  • "Back to Gerty in the first place, if you will; the essential thing is
  • that it should be away from here."
  • The unusual harshness of his tone might have shown her how much the words
  • cost him; but she was in no state to measure his feelings while her own
  • were in a flame of revolt. To neglect her, perhaps even to avoid her, at
  • a time when she had most need of her friends, and then suddenly and
  • unwarrantably to break into her life with this strange assumption of
  • authority, was to rouse in her every instinct of pride and self-defence.
  • "I am very much obliged to you," she said, "for taking such an interest
  • in my plans; but I am quite contented where I am, and have no intention
  • of leaving."
  • Selden had risen, and was standing before her in an attitude of
  • uncontrollable expectancy.
  • "That simply means that you don't know where you are!" he exclaimed.
  • Lily rose also, with a quick flash of anger. "If you have come here to
  • say disagreeable things about Mrs. Hatch----"
  • "It is only with your relation to Mrs. Hatch that I am concerned."
  • "My relation to Mrs. Hatch is one I have no reason to be ashamed of. She
  • has helped me to earn a living when my old friends were quite resigned to
  • seeing me starve."
  • "Nonsense! Starvation is not the only alternative. You know you can
  • always find a home with Gerty till you are independent again."
  • "You show such an intimate acquaintance with my affairs that I suppose
  • you mean--till my aunt's legacy is paid?"
  • "I do mean that; Gerty told me of it," Selden acknowledged without
  • embarrassment. He was too much in earnest now to feel any false
  • constraint in speaking his mind.
  • "But Gerty does not happen to know," Miss Bart rejoined, "that I owe
  • every penny of that legacy."
  • "Good God!" Selden exclaimed, startled out of his composure by the
  • abruptness of the statement.
  • "Every penny of it, and more too," Lily repeated; "and you now perhaps
  • see why I prefer to remain with Mrs. Hatch rather than take advantage of
  • Gerty's kindness. I have no money left, except my small income, and I
  • must earn something more to keep myself alive."
  • Selden hesitated a moment; then he rejoined in a quieter tone: "But with
  • your income and Gerty's--since you allow me to go so far into the details
  • of the situation--you and she could surely contrive a life together which
  • would put you beyond the need of having to support yourself. Gerty, I
  • know, is eager to make such an arrangement, and would be quite happy in
  • it----"
  • "But I should not," Miss Bart interposed. "There are many reasons why it
  • would be neither kind to Gerty nor wise for myself." She paused a moment,
  • and as he seemed to await a farther explanation, added with a quick lift
  • of her head: "You will perhaps excuse me from giving you these reasons."
  • "I have no claim to know them," Selden answered, ignoring her tone; "no
  • claim to offer any comment or suggestion beyond the one I have already
  • made. And my right to make that is simply the universal right of a man to
  • enlighten a woman when he sees her unconsciously placed in a false
  • position."
  • Lily smiled. "I suppose," she rejoined, "that by a false position you
  • mean one outside of what we call society; but you must remember that I
  • had been excluded from those sacred precincts long before I met Mrs.
  • Hatch. As far as I can see, there is very little real difference in being
  • inside or out, and I remember your once telling me that it was only those
  • inside who took the difference seriously."
  • She had not been without intention in making this allusion to their
  • memorable talk at Bellomont, and she waited with an odd tremor of the
  • nerves to see what response it would bring; but the result of the
  • experiment was disappointing. Selden did not allow the allusion to
  • deflect him from his point; he merely said with completer fulness of
  • emphasis: "The question of being inside or out is, as you say, a small
  • one, and it happens to have nothing to do with the case, except in so far
  • as Mrs. Hatch's desire to be inside may put you in the position I call
  • false."
  • In spite of the moderation of his tone, each word he spoke had the effect
  • of confirming Lily's resistance. The very apprehensions he aroused
  • hardened her against him: she had been on the alert for the note of
  • personal sympathy, for any sign of recovered power over him; and his
  • attitude of sober impartiality, the absence of all response to her
  • appeal, turned her hurt pride to blind resentment of his interference.
  • The conviction that he had been sent by Gerty, and that, whatever straits
  • he conceived her to be in, he would never voluntarily have come to her
  • aid, strengthened her resolve not to admit him a hair's breadth farther
  • into her confidence. However doubtful she might feel her situation to be,
  • she would rather persist in darkness than owe her enlightenment to Selden.
  • "I don't know," she said, when he had ceased to speak, "why you imagine
  • me to be situated as you describe; but as you have always told me that
  • the sole object of a bringing-up like mine was to teach a girl to get
  • what she wants, why not assume that that is precisely what I am doing?"
  • The smile with which she summed up her case was like a clear barrier
  • raised against farther confidences: its brightness held him at such a
  • distance that he had a sense of being almost out of hearing as he
  • rejoined: "I am not sure that I have ever called you a successful example
  • of that kind of bringing-up."
  • Her colour rose a little at the implication, but she steeled herself with
  • a light laugh. "Ah, wait a little longer--give me a little more time
  • before you decide!" And as he wavered before her, still watching for a
  • break in the impenetrable front she presented: "Don't give me up; I may
  • still do credit to my training!" she affirmed.
  • Chapter 10
  • "Look at those spangles, Miss Bart--every one of 'em sewed on crooked."
  • The tall forewoman, a pinched perpendicular figure, dropped the condemned
  • structure of wire and net on the table at Lily's side, and passed on to
  • the next figure in the line.
  • There were twenty of them in the work-room, their fagged profiles, under
  • exaggerated hair, bowed in the harsh north light above the utensils of
  • their art; for it was something more than an industry, surely, this
  • creation of ever-varied settings for the face of fortunate womanhood.
  • Their own faces were sallow with the unwholesomeness of hot air and
  • sedentary toil, rather than with any actual signs of want: they were
  • employed in a fashionable millinery establishment, and were fairly well
  • clothed and well paid; but the youngest among them was as dull and
  • colourless as the middle-aged. In the whole work-room there was only one
  • skin beneath which the blood still visibly played; and that now burned
  • with vexation as Miss Bart, under the lash of the forewoman's comment,
  • began to strip the hat-frame of its over-lapping spangles.
  • To Gerty Farish's hopeful spirit a solution appeared to have been reached
  • when she remembered how beautifully Lily could trim hats. Instances of
  • young lady-milliners establishing themselves under fashionable patronage,
  • and imparting to their "creations" that indefinable touch which the
  • professional hand can never give, had flattered Gerty's visions of the
  • future, and convinced even Lily that her separation from Mrs. Norma Hatch
  • need not reduce her to dependence on her friends.
  • The parting had occurred a few weeks after Selden's visit, and would have
  • taken place sooner had it not been for the resistance set up in Lily by
  • his ill-starred offer of advice. The sense of being involved in a
  • transaction she would not have cared to examine too closely had soon
  • afterward defined itself in the light of a hint from Mr. Stancy that, if
  • she "saw them through," she would have no reason to be sorry. The
  • implication that such loyalty would meet with a direct reward had
  • hastened her flight, and flung her back, ashamed and penitent, on the
  • broad bosom of Gerty's sympathy. She did not, however, propose to lie
  • there prone, and Gerty's inspiration about the hats at once revived her
  • hopes of profitable activity. Here was, after all, something that her
  • charming listless hands could really do; she had no doubt of their
  • capacity for knotting a ribbon or placing a flower to advantage. And of
  • course only these finishing touches would be expected of her: subordinate
  • fingers, blunt, grey, needle-pricked fingers, would prepare the shapes
  • and stitch the linings, while she presided over the charming little front
  • shop--a shop all white panels, mirrors, and moss-green hangings--where
  • her finished creations, hats, wreaths, aigrettes and the rest, perched on
  • their stands like birds just poising for flight.
  • But at the very outset of Gerty's campaign this vision of the
  • green-and-white shop had been dispelled. Other young ladies of fashion
  • had been thus "set-up," selling their hats by the mere attraction of a
  • name and the reputed knack of tying a bow; but these privileged beings
  • could command a faith in their powers materially expressed by the
  • readiness to pay their shop-rent and advance a handsome sum for current
  • expenses. Where was Lily to find such support? And even could it have
  • been found, how were the ladies on whose approval she depended to be
  • induced to give her their patronage? Gerty learned that whatever sympathy
  • her friend's case might have excited a few months since had been
  • imperilled, if not lost, by her association with Mrs. Hatch. Once again,
  • Lily had withdrawn from an ambiguous situation in time to save her
  • self-respect, but too late for public vindication. Freddy Van Osburgh
  • was not to marry Mrs. Hatch; he had been rescued at the eleventh
  • hour--some said by the efforts of Gus Trenor and Rosedale--and despatched
  • to Europe with old Ned Van Alstyne; but the risk he had run would always
  • be ascribed to Miss Bart's connivance, and would somehow serve as a
  • summing-up and corroboration of the vague general distrust of her. It was
  • a relief to those who had hung back from her to find themselves thus
  • justified, and they were inclined to insist a little on her connection
  • with the Hatch case in order to show that they had been right.
  • Gerty's quest, at any rate, brought up against a solid wall of
  • resistance; and even when Carry Fisher, momentarily penitent for her
  • share in the Hatch affair, joined her efforts to Miss Farish's, they met
  • with no better success. Gerty had tried to veil her failure in tender
  • ambiguities; but Carry, always the soul of candour, put the case squarely
  • to her friend.
  • "I went straight to Judy Trenor; she has fewer prejudices than the
  • others, and besides she's always hated Bertha Dorset. But what HAVE you
  • done to her, Lily? At the very first word about giving you a start she
  • flamed out about some money you'd got from Gus; I never knew her so hot
  • before. You know she'll let him do anything but spend money on his
  • friends: the only reason she's decent to me now is that she knows I'm not
  • hard up.--He speculated for you, you say? Well, what's the harm? He had
  • no business to lose. He DIDN'T lose? Then what on earth--but I never
  • COULD understand you, Lily!"
  • The end of it was that, after anxious enquiry and much deliberation, Mrs.
  • Fisher and Gerty, for once oddly united in their effort to help their
  • friend, decided on placing her in the work-room of Mme. Regina's renowned
  • millinery establishment. Even this arrangement was not effected without
  • considerable negotiation, for Mme. Regina had a strong prejudice against
  • untrained assistance, and was induced to yield only by the fact that she
  • owed the patronage of Mrs. Bry and Mrs. Gormer to Carry Fisher's
  • influence. She had been willing from the first to employ Lily in the
  • show-room: as a displayer of hats, a fashionable beauty might be a
  • valuable asset. But to this suggestion Miss Bart opposed a negative which
  • Gerty emphatically supported, while Mrs. Fisher, inwardly unconvinced,
  • but resigned to this latest proof of Lily's unreason, agreed that perhaps
  • in the end it would be more useful that she should learn the trade. To
  • Regina's work-room Lily was therefore committed by her friends, and there
  • Mrs. Fisher left her with a sigh of relief, while Gerty's watchfulness
  • continued to hover over her at a distance.
  • Lily had taken up her work early in January: it was now two months later,
  • and she was still being rebuked for her inability to sew spangles on a
  • hat-frame. As she returned to her work she heard a titter pass down the
  • tables. She knew she was an object of criticism and amusement to the
  • other work-women. They were, of course, aware of her history--the exact
  • situation of every girl in the room was known and freely discussed by all
  • the others--but the knowledge did not produce in them any awkward sense
  • of class distinction: it merely explained why her untutored fingers were
  • still blundering over the rudiments of the trade. Lily had no desire
  • that they should recognize any social difference in her; but she had
  • hoped to be received as their equal, and perhaps before long to show
  • herself their superior by a special deftness of touch, and it was
  • humiliating to find that, after two months of drudgery, she still
  • betrayed her lack of early training. Remote was the day when she might
  • aspire to exercise the talents she felt confident of possessing; only
  • experienced workers were entrusted with the delicate art of shaping and
  • trimming the hat, and the forewoman still held her inexorably to the
  • routine of preparatory work.
  • She began to rip the spangles from the frame, listening absently to the
  • buzz of talk which rose and fell with the coming and going of Miss
  • Haines's active figure. The air was closer than usual, because Miss
  • Haines, who had a cold, had not allowed a window to be opened even during
  • the noon recess; and Lily's head was so heavy with the weight of a
  • sleepless night that the chatter of her companions had the incoherence of
  • a dream.
  • "I TOLD her he'd never look at her again; and he didn't. I wouldn't have,
  • either--I think she acted real mean to him. He took her to the Arion
  • Ball, and had a hack for her both ways.... She's taken ten bottles, and
  • her headaches don't seem no better--but she's written a testimonial to
  • say the first bottle cured her, and she got five dollars and her picture
  • in the paper.... Mrs. Trenor's hat? The one with the green Paradise?
  • Here, Miss Haines--it'll be ready right off.... That was one of the
  • Trenor girls here yesterday with Mrs. George Dorset. How'd I know? Why,
  • Madam sent for me to alter the flower in that Virot hat--the blue tulle:
  • she's tall and slight, with her hair fuzzed out--a good deal like Mamie
  • Leach, on'y thinner...."
  • On and on it flowed, a current of meaningless sound, on which,
  • startlingly enough, a familiar name now and then floated to the surface.
  • It was the strangest part of Lily's strange experience, the hearing of
  • these names, the seeing the fragmentary and distorted image of the world
  • she had lived in reflected in the mirror of the working-girls' minds. She
  • had never before suspected the mixture of insatiable curiosity and
  • contemptuous freedom with which she and her kind were discussed in this
  • underworld of toilers who lived on their vanity and self-indulgence.
  • Every girl in Mme. Regina's work-room knew to whom the headgear in her
  • hands was destined, and had her opinion of its future wearer, and a
  • definite knowledge of the latter's place in the social system. That Lily
  • was a star fallen from that sky did not, after the first stir of
  • curiosity had subsided, materially add to their interest in her. She had
  • fallen, she had "gone under," and true to the ideal of their race, they
  • were awed only by success--by the gross tangible image of material
  • achievement. The consciousness of her different point of view merely kept
  • them at a little distance from her, as though she were a foreigner with
  • whom it was an effort to talk.
  • "Miss Bart, if you can't sew those spangles on more regular I guess you'd
  • better give the hat to Miss Kilroy."
  • Lily looked down ruefully at her handiwork. The forewoman was right: the
  • sewing on of the spangles was inexcusably bad. What made her so much more
  • clumsy than usual? Was it a growing distaste for her task, or actual
  • physical disability? She felt tired and confused: it was an effort to put
  • her thoughts together. She rose and handed the hat to Miss Kilroy, who
  • took it with a suppressed smile.
  • "I'm sorry; I'm afraid I am not well," she said to the forewoman.
  • Miss Haines offered no comment. From the first she had augured ill of
  • Mme. Regina's consenting to include a fashionable apprentice among her
  • workers. In that temple of art no raw beginners were wanted, and Miss
  • Haines would have been more than human had she not taken a certain
  • pleasure in seeing her forebodings confirmed.
  • "You'd better go back to binding edges," she said drily. Lily slipped out
  • last among the band of liberated work-women. She did not care to be
  • mingled in their noisy dispersal: once in the street, she always felt an
  • irresistible return to her old standpoint, an instinctive shrinking from
  • all that was unpolished and promiscuous. In the days--how distant they
  • now seemed!--when she had visited the Girls' Club with Gerty Farish, she
  • had felt an enlightened interest in the working-classes; but that was
  • because she looked down on them from above, from the happy altitude of
  • her grace and her beneficence. Now that she was on a level with them, the
  • point of view was less interesting.
  • She felt a touch on her arm, and met the penitent eye of Miss Kilroy.
  • "Miss Bart, I guess you can sew those spangles on as well as I can when
  • you're feeling right. Miss Haines didn't act fair to you."
  • Lily's colour rose at the unexpected advance: it was a long time since
  • real kindness had looked at her from any eyes but Gerty's.
  • "Oh, thank you: I'm not particularly well, but Miss Haines was right. I
  • AM clumsy."
  • "Well, it's mean work for anybody with a headache." Miss Kilroy paused
  • irresolutely. "You ought to go right home and lay down. Ever try
  • orangeine?"
  • "Thank you." Lily held out her hand. "It's very kind of you--I mean to go
  • home."
  • She looked gratefully at Miss Kilroy, but neither knew what more to say.
  • Lily was aware that the other was on the point of offering to go home
  • with her, but she wanted to be alone and silent--even kindness, the sort
  • of kindness that Miss Kilroy could give, would have jarred on her just
  • then.
  • "Thank you," she repeated as she turned away.
  • She struck westward through the dreary March twilight, toward the street
  • where her boarding-house stood. She had resolutely refused Gerty's offer
  • of hospitality. Something of her mother's fierce shrinking from
  • observation and sympathy was beginning to develop in her, and the
  • promiscuity of small quarters and close intimacy seemed, on the whole,
  • less endurable than the solitude of a hall bedroom in a house where she
  • could come and go unremarked among other workers. For a while she had
  • been sustained by this desire for privacy and independence; but now,
  • perhaps from increasing physical weariness, the lassitude brought about
  • by hours of unwonted confinement, she was beginning to feel acutely the
  • ugliness and discomfort of her surroundings. The day's task done, she
  • dreaded to return to her narrow room, with its blotched wallpaper and
  • shabby paint; and she hated every step of the walk thither, through the
  • degradation of a New York street in the last stages of decline from
  • fashion to commerce.
  • But what she dreaded most of all was having to pass the chemist's at the
  • corner of Sixth Avenue. She had meant to take another street: she had
  • usually done so of late. But today her steps were irresistibly drawn
  • toward the flaring plate-glass corner; she tried to take the lower
  • crossing, but a laden dray crowded her back, and she struck across the
  • street obliquely, reaching the sidewalk just opposite the chemist's door.
  • Over the counter she caught the eye of the clerk who had waited on her
  • before, and slipped the prescription into his hand. There could be no
  • question about the prescription: it was a copy of one of Mrs. Hatch's,
  • obligingly furnished by that lady's chemist. Lily was confident that the
  • clerk would fill it without hesitation; yet the nervous dread of a
  • refusal, or even of an expression of doubt, communicated itself to her
  • restless hands as she affected to examine the bottles of perfume stacked
  • on the glass case before her.
  • The clerk had read the prescription without comment; but in the act of
  • handing out the bottle he paused.
  • "You don't want to increase the dose, you know," he remarked. Lily's
  • heart contracted.
  • What did he mean by looking at her in that way?
  • "Of course not," she murmured, holding out her hand.
  • "That's all right: it's a queer-acting drug. A drop or two more, and off
  • you go--the doctors don't know why."
  • The dread lest he should question her, or keep the bottle back, choked
  • the murmur of acquiescence in her throat; and when at length she emerged
  • safely from the shop she was almost dizzy with the intensity of her
  • relief. The mere touch of the packet thrilled her tired nerves with the
  • delicious promise of a night of sleep, and in the reaction from her
  • momentary fear she felt as if the first fumes of drowsiness were already
  • stealing over her.
  • In her confusion she stumbled against a man who was hurrying down the
  • last steps of the elevated station. He drew back, and she heard her name
  • uttered with surprise. It was Rosedale, fur-coated, glossy and
  • prosperous--but why did she seem to see him so far off, and as if through
  • a mist of splintered crystals? Before she could account for the
  • phenomenon she found herself shaking hands with him. They had parted with
  • scorn on her side and anger upon his; but all trace of these emotions
  • seemed to vanish as their hands met, and she was only aware of a confused
  • wish that she might continue to hold fast to him.
  • "Why, what's the matter, Miss Lily? You're not well!" he exclaimed; and
  • she forced her lips into a pallid smile of reassurance.
  • "I'm a little tired--it's nothing. Stay with me a moment, please," she
  • faltered. That she should be asking this service of Rosedale!
  • He glanced at the dirty and unpropitious corner on which they stood, with
  • the shriek of the "elevated" and the tumult of trams and waggons
  • contending hideously in their ears.
  • "We can't stay here; but let me take you somewhere for a cup of tea. The
  • LONGWORTH is only a few yards off, and there'll be no one there at this
  • hour."
  • A cup of tea in quiet, somewhere out of the noise and ugliness, seemed
  • for the moment the one solace she could bear. A few steps brought them to
  • the ladies' door of the hotel he had named, and a moment later he was
  • seated opposite to her, and the waiter had placed the tea-tray between
  • them.
  • "Not a drop of brandy or whiskey first? You look regularly done up, Miss
  • Lily. Well, take your tea strong, then; and, waiter, get a cushion for
  • the lady's back."
  • Lily smiled faintly at the injunction to take her tea strong. It was the
  • temptation she was always struggling to resist. Her craving for the keen
  • stimulant was forever conflicting with that other craving for sleep--the
  • midnight craving which only the little phial in her hand could still. But
  • today, at any rate, the tea could hardly be too strong: she counted on it
  • to pour warmth and resolution into her empty veins.
  • As she leaned back before him, her lids drooping in utter lassitude,
  • though the first warm draught already tinged her face with returning
  • life, Rosedale was seized afresh by the poignant surprise of her beauty.
  • The dark pencilling of fatigue under her eyes, the morbid blue-veined
  • pallour of the temples, brought out the brightness of her hair and lips,
  • as though all her ebbing vitality were centred there. Against the dull
  • chocolate-coloured background of the restaurant, the purity of her head
  • stood out as it had never done in the most brightly-lit ball-room. He
  • looked at her with a startled uncomfortable feeling, as though her beauty
  • were a forgotten enemy that had lain in ambush and now sprang out on him
  • unawares.
  • To clear the air he tried to take an easy tone with her. "Why, Miss Lily,
  • I haven't seen you for an age. I didn't know what had become of you."
  • As he spoke, he was checked by an embarrassing sense of the complications
  • to which this might lead. Though he had not seen her he had heard of her;
  • he knew of her connection with Mrs. Hatch, and of the talk resulting from
  • it. Mrs. Hatch's MILIEU was one which he had once assiduously frequented,
  • and now as devoutly shunned.
  • Lily, to whom the tea had restored her usual clearness of mind, saw what
  • was in his thoughts and said with a slight smile: "You would not be
  • likely to know about me. I have joined the working classes."
  • He stared in genuine wonder. "You don't mean--? Why, what on earth are
  • you doing?"
  • "Learning to be a milliner--at least TRYING to learn," she hastily
  • qualified the statement.
  • Rosedale suppressed a low whistle of surprise. "Come off--you ain't
  • serious, are you?"
  • "Perfectly serious. I'm obliged to work for my living."
  • "But I understood--I thought you were with Norma Hatch."
  • "You heard I had gone to her as her secretary?"
  • "Something of the kind, I believe." He leaned forward to refill her cup.
  • Lily guessed the possibilities of embarrassment which the topic held for
  • him, and raising her eyes to his, she said suddenly: "I left her two
  • months ago."
  • Rosedale continued to fumble awkwardly with the tea-pot, and she felt
  • sure that he had heard what had been said of her. But what was there that
  • Rosedale did not hear?
  • "Wasn't it a soft berth?" he enquired, with an attempt at lightness.
  • "Too soft--one might have sunk in too deep." Lily rested one arm on the
  • edge of the table, and sat looking at him more intently than she had ever
  • looked before. An uncontrollable impulse was urging her to put her case
  • to this man, from whose curiosity she had always so fiercely defended
  • herself.
  • "You know Mrs. Hatch, I think? Well, perhaps you can understand that she
  • might make things too easy for one."
  • Rosedale looked faintly puzzled, and she remembered that allusiveness was
  • lost on him.
  • "It was no place for you, anyhow," he agreed, so suffused and immersed in
  • the light of her full gaze that he found himself being drawn into strange
  • depths of intimacy. He who had had to subsist on mere fugitive glances,
  • looks winged in flight and swiftly lost under covert, now found her eyes
  • settling on him with a brooding intensity that fairly dazzled him.
  • "I left," Lily continued, "lest people should say I was helping Mrs.
  • Hatch to marry Freddy Van Osburgh--who is not in the least too good for
  • her--and as they still continue to say it, I see that I might as well
  • have stayed where I was."
  • "Oh, Freddy----" Rosedale brushed aside the topic with an air of its
  • unimportance which gave a sense of the immense perspective he had
  • acquired. "Freddy don't count--but I knew YOU weren't mixed up in that.
  • It ain't your style."
  • Lily coloured slightly: she could not conceal from herself that the words
  • gave her pleasure. She would have liked to sit there, drinking more tea,
  • and continuing to talk of herself to Rosedale. But the old habit of
  • observing the conventions reminded her that it was time to bring their
  • colloquy to an end, and she made a faint motion to push back her chair.
  • Rosedale stopped her with a protesting gesture. "Wait a minute--don't go
  • yet; sit quiet and rest a little longer. You look thoroughly played out.
  • And you haven't told me----" He broke off, conscious of going farther
  • than he had meant. She saw the struggle and understood it; understood
  • also the nature of the spell to which he yielded as, with his eyes on her
  • face, he began again abruptly: "What on earth did you mean by saying just
  • now that you were learning to be a milliner?"
  • "Just what I said. I am an apprentice at Regina's."
  • "Good Lord--YOU? But what for? I knew your aunt had turned you down: Mrs.
  • Fisher told me about it. But I understood you got a legacy from her----"
  • "I got ten thousand dollars; but the legacy is not to be paid till next
  • summer."
  • "Well, but--look here: you could BORROW on it any time you wanted."
  • She shook her head gravely. "No; for I owe it already."
  • "Owe it? The whole ten thousand?"
  • "Every penny." She paused, and then continued abruptly, with her eyes on
  • his face: "I think Gus Trenor spoke to you once about having made some
  • money for me in stocks."
  • She waited, and Rosedale, congested with embarrassment, muttered that he
  • remembered something of the kind.
  • "He made about nine thousand dollars," Lily pursued, in the same tone of
  • eager communicativeness. "At the time, I understood that he was
  • speculating with my own money: it was incredibly stupid of me, but I knew
  • nothing of business. Afterward I found out that he had NOT used my
  • money--that what he said he had made for me he had really given me. It
  • was meant in kindness, of course; but it was not the sort of obligation
  • one could remain under. Unfortunately I had spent the money before I
  • discovered my mistake; and so my legacy will have to go to pay it back.
  • That is the reason why I am trying to learn a trade."
  • She made the statement clearly, deliberately, with pauses between the
  • sentences, so that each should have time to sink deeply into her hearer's
  • mind. She had a passionate desire that some one should know the truth
  • about this transaction, and also that the rumour of her intention to
  • repay the money should reach Judy Trenor's ears. And it had suddenly
  • occurred to her that Rosedale, who had surprised Trenor's confidence, was
  • the fitting person to receive and transmit her version of the facts. She
  • had even felt a momentary exhilaration at the thought of thus relieving
  • herself of her detested secret; but the sensation gradually faded in the
  • telling, and as she ended her pallour was suffused with a deep blush of
  • misery.
  • Rosedale continued to stare at her in wonder; but the wonder took the
  • turn she had least expected.
  • "But see here--if that's the case, it cleans you out altogether?"
  • He put it to her as if she had not grasped the consequences of her act;
  • as if her incorrigible ignorance of business were about to precipitate
  • her into a fresh act of folly.
  • "Altogether--yes," she calmly agreed.
  • He sat silent, his thick hands clasped on the table, his little puzzled
  • eyes exploring the recesses of the deserted restaurant.
  • "See here--that's fine," he exclaimed abruptly.
  • Lily rose from her seat with a deprecating laugh. "Oh, no--it's merely a
  • bore," she asserted, gathering together the ends of her feather scarf.
  • Rosedale remained seated, too intent on his thoughts to notice her
  • movement. "Miss Lily, if you want any backing--I like pluck----" broke
  • from him disconnectedly.
  • "Thank you." She held out her hand. "Your tea has given me a tremendous
  • backing. I feel equal to anything now."
  • Her gesture seemed to show a definite intention of dismissal, but her
  • companion had tossed a bill to the waiter, and was slipping his short
  • arms into his expensive overcoat.
  • "Wait a minute--you've got to let me walk home with you," he said.
  • Lily uttered no protest, and when he had paused to make sure of his
  • change they emerged from the hotel and crossed Sixth Avenue again. As she
  • led the way westward past a long line of areas which, through the
  • distortion of their paintless rails, revealed with increasing candour the
  • DISJECTA MEMBRA of bygone dinners, Lily felt that Rosedale was taking
  • contemptuous note of the neighbourhood; and before the doorstep at which
  • she finally paused he looked up with an air of incredulous disgust.
  • "This isn't the place? Some one told me you were living with Miss Farish."
  • "No: I am boarding here. I have lived too long on my friends."
  • He continued to scan the blistered brown stone front, the windows draped
  • with discoloured lace, and the Pompeian decoration of the muddy
  • vestibule; then he looked back at her face and said with a visible
  • effort: "You'll let me come and see you some day?"
  • She smiled, recognizing the heroism of the offer to the point of being
  • frankly touched by it. "Thank you--I shall be very glad," she made
  • answer, in the first sincere words she had ever spoken to him.
  • That evening in her own room Miss Bart--who had fled early from the heavy
  • fumes of the basement dinner-table--sat musing upon the impulse which had
  • led her to unbosom herself to Rosedale. Beneath it she discovered an
  • increasing sense of loneliness--a dread of returning to the solitude of
  • her room, while she could be anywhere else, or in any company but her
  • own. Circumstances, of late, had combined to cut her off more and more
  • from her few remaining friends. On Carry Fisher's part the withdrawal was
  • perhaps not quite involuntary. Having made her final effort on Lily's
  • behalf, and landed her safely in Mme. Regina's work-room, Mrs. Fisher
  • seemed disposed to rest from her labours; and Lily, understanding the
  • reason, could not condemn her. Carry had in fact come dangerously near to
  • being involved in the episode of Mrs. Norma Hatch, and it had taken some
  • verbal ingenuity to extricate herself. She frankly owned to having
  • brought Lily and Mrs. Hatch together, but then she did not know Mrs.
  • Hatch--she had expressly warned Lily that she did not know Mrs.
  • Hatch--and besides, she was not Lily's keeper, and really the girl was
  • old enough to take care of herself. Carry did not put her own case so
  • brutally, but she allowed it to be thus put for her by her latest bosom
  • friend, Mrs. Jack Stepney: Mrs. Stepney, trembling over the narrowness of
  • her only brother's escape, but eager to vindicate Mrs. Fisher, at whose
  • house she could count on the "jolly parties" which had become a necessity
  • to her since marriage had emancipated her from the Van Osburgh point of
  • view.
  • Lily understood the situation and could make allowances for it. Carry
  • had been a good friend to her in difficult days, and perhaps only a
  • friendship like Gerty's could be proof against such an increasing strain.
  • Gerty's friendship did indeed hold fast; yet Lily was beginning to avoid
  • her also. For she could not go to Gerty's without risk of meeting Selden;
  • and to meet him now would be pure pain. It was pain enough even to think
  • of him, whether she considered him in the distinctness of her waking
  • thoughts, or felt the obsession of his presence through the blur of her
  • tormented nights. That was one of the reasons why she had turned again to
  • Mrs. Hatch's prescription. In the uneasy snatches of her natural dreams
  • he came to her sometimes in the old guise of fellowship and tenderness;
  • and she would rise from the sweet delusion mocked and emptied of her
  • courage. But in the sleep which the phial procured she sank far below
  • such half-waking visitations, sank into depths of dreamless annihilation
  • from which she woke each morning with an obliterated past.
  • Gradually, to be sure, the stress of the old thoughts would return; but
  • at least they did not importune her waking hour. The drug gave her a
  • momentary illusion of complete renewal, from which she drew strength to
  • take up her daily work. The strength was more and more needed as the
  • perplexities of her future increased. She knew that to Gerty and Mrs.
  • Fisher she was only passing through a temporary period of probation,
  • since they believed that the apprenticeship she was serving at Mme.
  • Regina's would enable her, when Mrs. Peniston's legacy was paid, to
  • realize the vision of the green-and-white shop with the fuller competence
  • acquired by her preliminary training. But to Lily herself, aware that the
  • legacy could not be put to such a use, the preliminary training seemed a
  • wasted effort. She understood clearly enough that, even if she could ever
  • learn to compete with hands formed from childhood for their special work,
  • the small pay she received would not be a sufficient addition to her
  • income to compensate her for such drudgery. And the realization of this
  • fact brought her recurringly face to face with the temptation to use the
  • legacy in establishing her business. Once installed, and in command of
  • her own work-women, she believed she had sufficient tact and ability to
  • attract a fashionable CLIENTELE; and if the business succeeded she could
  • gradually lay aside money enough to discharge her debt to Trenor. But the
  • task might take years to accomplish, even if she continued to stint
  • herself to the utmost; and meanwhile her pride would be crushed under the
  • weight of an intolerable obligation.
  • These were her superficial considerations; but under them lurked the
  • secret dread that the obligation might not always remain intolerable.
  • She knew she could not count on her continuity of purpose, and what
  • really frightened her was the thought that she might gradually
  • accommodate herself to remaining indefinitely in Trenor's debt, as she
  • had accommodated herself to the part allotted her on the Sabrina, and as
  • she had so nearly drifted into acquiescing with Stancy's scheme for the
  • advancement of Mrs. Hatch. Her danger lay, as she knew, in her old
  • incurable dread of discomfort and poverty; in the fear of that mounting
  • tide of dinginess against which her mother had so passionately warned
  • her. And now a new vista of peril opened before her. She understood that
  • Rosedale was ready to lend her money; and the longing to take advantage
  • of his offer began to haunt her insidiously. It was of course impossible
  • to accept a loan from Rosedale; but proximate possibilities hovered
  • temptingly before her. She was quite sure that he would come and see her
  • again, and almost sure that, if he did, she could bring him to the point
  • of offering to marry her on the terms she had previously rejected. Would
  • she still reject them if they were offered? More and more, with every
  • fresh mischance befalling her, did the pursuing furies seem to take the
  • shape of Bertha Dorset; and close at hand, safely locked among her
  • papers, lay the means of ending their pursuit. The temptation, which her
  • scorn of Rosedale had once enabled her to reject, now insistently
  • returned upon her; and how much strength was left her to oppose it?
  • What little there was must at any rate be husbanded to the utmost; she
  • could not trust herself again to the perils of a sleepless night.
  • Through the long hours of silence the dark spirit of fatigue and
  • loneliness crouched upon her breast, leaving her so drained of bodily
  • strength that her morning thoughts swam in a haze of weakness. The only
  • hope of renewal lay in the little bottle at her bed-side; and how much
  • longer that hope would last she dared not conjecture.
  • Chapter 11
  • Lily, lingering for a moment on the corner, looked out on the afternoon
  • spectacle of Fifth Avenue. It was a day in late April, and the sweetness
  • of spring was in the air. It mitigated the ugliness of the long crowded
  • thoroughfare, blurred the gaunt roof-lines, threw a mauve veil over the
  • discouraging perspective of the side streets, and gave a touch of poetry
  • to the delicate haze of green that marked the entrance to the Park.
  • As Lily stood there, she recognized several familiar faces in the passing
  • carriages. The season was over, and its ruling forces had disbanded; but
  • a few still lingered, delaying their departure for Europe, or passing
  • through town on their return from the South. Among them was Mrs. Van
  • Osburgh, swaying majestically in her C-spring barouche, with Mrs. Percy
  • Gryce at her side, and the new heir to the Gryce millions enthroned
  • before them on his nurse's knees. They were succeeded by Mrs. Hatch's
  • electric victoria, in which that lady reclined in the lonely splendour of
  • a spring toilet obviously designed for company; and a moment or two later
  • came Judy Trenor, accompanied by Lady Skiddaw, who had come over for her
  • annual tarpon fishing and a dip into "the street."
  • This fleeting glimpse of her past served to emphasize the sense of
  • aimlessness with which Lily at length turned toward home. She had nothing
  • to do for the rest of the day, nor for the days to come; for the season
  • was over in millinery as well as in society, and a week earlier Mme.
  • Regina had notified her that her services were no longer required. Mme.
  • Regina always reduced her staff on the first of May, and Miss Bart's
  • attendance had of late been so irregular--she had so often been unwell,
  • and had done so little work when she came--that it was only as a favour
  • that her dismissal had hitherto been deferred.
  • Lily did not question the justice of the decision. She was conscious of
  • having been forgetful, awkward and slow to learn. It was bitter to
  • acknowledge her inferiority even to herself, but the fact had been
  • brought home to her that as a bread-winner she could never compete with
  • professional ability. Since she had been brought up to be ornamental,
  • she could hardly blame herself for failing to serve any practical
  • purpose; but the discovery put an end to her consoling sense of universal
  • efficiency.
  • As she turned homeward her thoughts shrank in anticipation from the fact
  • that there would be nothing to get up for the next morning. The luxury of
  • lying late in bed was a pleasure belonging to the life of ease; it had no
  • part in the utilitarian existence of the boarding-house. She liked to
  • leave her room early, and to return to it as late as possible; and she
  • was walking slowly now in order to postpone the detested approach to her
  • doorstep.
  • But the doorstep, as she drew near it, acquired a sudden interest from
  • the fact that it was occupied--and indeed filled--by the conspicuous
  • figure of Mr. Rosedale, whose presence seemed to take on an added
  • amplitude from the meanness of his surroundings.
  • The sight stirred Lily with an irresistible sense of triumph. Rosedale,
  • a day or two after their chance meeting, had called to enquire if she had
  • recovered from her indisposition; but since then she had not seen or
  • heard from him, and his absence seemed to betoken a struggle to keep
  • away, to let her pass once more out of his life. If this were the case,
  • his return showed that the struggle had been unsuccessful, for Lily knew
  • he was not the man to waste his time in an ineffectual sentimental
  • dalliance. He was too busy, too practical, and above all too much
  • preoccupied with his own advancement, to indulge in such unprofitable
  • asides.
  • In the peacock-blue parlour, with its bunches of dried pampas grass, and
  • discoloured steel engravings of sentimental episodes, he looked about him
  • with unconcealed disgust, laying his hat distrustfully on the dusty
  • console adorned with a Rogers statuette.
  • Lily sat down on one of the plush and rosewood sofas, and he deposited
  • himself in a rocking-chair draped with a starched antimacassar which
  • scraped unpleasantly against the pink fold of skin above his collar.
  • "My goodness--you can't go on living here!" he exclaimed.
  • Lily smiled at his tone. "I am not sure that I can; but I have gone over
  • my expenses very carefully, and I rather think I shall be able to manage
  • it."
  • "Be able to manage it? That's not what I mean--it's no place for you!"
  • "It's what I mean; for I have been out of work for the last week."
  • "Out of work--out of work! What a way for you to talk! The idea of your
  • having to work--it's preposterous." He brought out his sentences in short
  • violent jerks, as though they were forced up from a deep inner crater of
  • indignation. "It's a farce--a crazy farce," he repeated, his eyes fixed
  • on the long vista of the room reflected in the blotched glass between the
  • windows.
  • Lily continued to meet his expostulations with a smile. "I don't know why
  • I should regard myself as an exception----" she began.
  • "Because you ARE; that's why; and your being in a place like this is a
  • damnable outrage. I can't talk of it calmly."
  • She had in truth never seen him so shaken out of his usual glibness; and
  • there was something almost moving to her in his inarticulate struggle
  • with his emotions.
  • He rose with a start which left the rocking-chair quivering on its beam
  • ends, and placed himself squarely before her.
  • "Look here, Miss Lily, I'm going to Europe next week: going over to Paris
  • and London for a couple of months--and I can't leave you like this. I
  • can't do it. I know it's none of my business--you've let me understand
  • that often enough; but things are worse with you now than they have been
  • before, and you must see that you've got to accept help from somebody.
  • You spoke to me the other day about some debt to Trenor. I know what you
  • mean--and I respect you for feeling as you do about it."
  • A blush of surprise rose to Lily's pale face, but before she could
  • interrupt him he had continued eagerly: "Well, I'll lend you the money to
  • pay Trenor; and I won't--I--see here, don't take me up till I've
  • finished. What I mean is, it'll be a plain business arrangement, such as
  • one man would make with another. Now, what have you got to say against
  • that?"
  • Lily's blush deepened to a glow in which humiliation and gratitude were
  • mingled; and both sentiments revealed themselves in the unexpected
  • gentleness of her reply.
  • "Only this: that it is exactly what Gus Trenor proposed; and that I can
  • never again be sure of understanding the plainest business arrangement."
  • Then, realizing that this answer contained a germ of injustice, she
  • added, even more kindly: "Not that I don't appreciate your kindness--that
  • I'm not grateful for it. But a business arrangement between us would in
  • any case be impossible, because I shall have no security to give when my
  • debt to Gus Trenor has been paid."
  • Rosedale received this statement in silence: he seemed to feel the note
  • of finality in her voice, yet to be unable to accept it as closing the
  • question between them.
  • In the silence Lily had a clear perception of what was passing through
  • his mind. Whatever perplexity he felt as to the inexorableness of her
  • course--however little he penetrated its motive--she saw that it
  • unmistakably tended to strengthen her hold over him. It was as though the
  • sense in her of unexplained scruples and resistances had the same
  • attraction as the delicacy of feature, the fastidiousness of manner,
  • which gave her an external rarity, an air of being impossible to match.
  • As he advanced in social experience this uniqueness had acquired a
  • greater value for him, as though he were a collector who had learned to
  • distinguish minor differences of design and quality in some long-coveted
  • object.
  • Lily, perceiving all this, understood that he would marry her at once, on
  • the sole condition of a reconciliation with Mrs. Dorset; and the
  • temptation was the less easy to put aside because, little by little,
  • circumstances were breaking down her dislike for Rosedale. The dislike,
  • indeed, still subsisted; but it was penetrated here and there by the
  • perception of mitigating qualities in him: of a certain gross kindliness,
  • a rather helpless fidelity of sentiment, which seemed to be struggling
  • through the hard surface of his material ambitions.
  • Reading his dismissal in her eyes, he held out his hand with a gesture
  • which conveyed something of this inarticulate conflict.
  • "If you'd only let me, I'd set you up over them all--I'd put you where
  • you could wipe your feet on 'em!" he declared; and it touched her oddly
  • to see that his new passion had not altered his old standard of values.
  • Lily took no sleeping-drops that night. She lay awake viewing her
  • situation in the crude light which Rosedale's visit had shed on it. In
  • fending off the offer he was so plainly ready to renew, had she not
  • sacrificed to one of those abstract notions of honour that might be
  • called the conventionalities of the moral life? What debt did she owe to
  • a social order which had condemned and banished her without trial? She
  • had never been heard in her own defence; she was innocent of the charge
  • on which she had been found guilty; and the irregularity of her
  • conviction might seem to justify the use of methods as irregular in
  • recovering her lost rights. Bertha Dorset, to save herself, had not
  • scrupled to ruin her by an open falsehood; why should she hesitate to
  • make private use of the facts that chance had put in her way? After all,
  • half the opprobrium of such an act lies in the name attached to it. Call
  • it blackmail and it becomes unthinkable; but explain that it injures no
  • one, and that the rights regained by it were unjustly forfeited, and he
  • must be a formalist indeed who can find no plea in its defence.
  • The arguments pleading for it with Lily were the old unanswerable ones of
  • the personal situation: the sense of injury, the sense of failure, the
  • passionate craving for a fair chance against the selfish despotism of
  • society. She had learned by experience that she had neither the aptitude
  • nor the moral constancy to remake her life on new lines; to become a
  • worker among workers, and let the world of luxury and pleasure sweep by
  • her unregarded. She could not hold herself much to blame for this
  • ineffectiveness, and she was perhaps less to blame than she believed.
  • Inherited tendencies had combined with early training to make her the
  • highly specialized product she was: an organism as helpless out of its
  • narrow range as the sea-anemone torn from the rock. She had been
  • fashioned to adorn and delight; to what other end does nature round the
  • rose-leaf and paint the humming-bird's breast? And was it her fault that
  • the purely decorative mission is less easily and harmoniously fulfilled
  • among social beings than in the world of nature? That it is apt to be
  • hampered by material necessities or complicated by moral scruples?
  • These last were the two antagonistic forces which fought out their battle
  • in her breast during the long watches of the night; and when she rose the
  • next morning she hardly knew where the victory lay. She was exhausted by
  • the reaction of a night without sleep, coming after many nights of rest
  • artificially obtained; and in the distorting light of fatigue the future
  • stretched out before her grey, interminable and desolate.
  • She lay late in bed, refusing the coffee and fried eggs which the
  • friendly Irish servant thrust through her door, and hating the intimate
  • domestic noises of the house and the cries and rumblings of the street.
  • Her week of idleness had brought home to her with exaggerated force these
  • small aggravations of the boarding-house world, and she yearned for that
  • other luxurious world, whose machinery is so carefully concealed that one
  • scene flows into another without perceptible agency.
  • At length she rose and dressed. Since she had left Mme. Regina's she had
  • spent her days in the streets, partly to escape from the uncongenial
  • promiscuities of the boarding-house, and partly in the hope that physical
  • fatigue would help her to sleep. But once out of the house, she could not
  • decide where to go; for she had avoided Gerty since her dismissal from
  • the milliner's, and she was not sure of a welcome anywhere else.
  • The morning was in harsh contrast to the previous day. A cold grey sky
  • threatened rain, and a high wind drove the dust in wild spirals up and
  • down the streets. Lily walked up Fifth Avenue toward the Park, hoping to
  • find a sheltered nook where she might sit; but the wind chilled her, and
  • after an hour's wandering under the tossing boughs she yielded to her
  • increasing weariness, and took refuge in a little restaurant in
  • Fifty-ninth Street. She was not hungry, and had meant to go without
  • luncheon; but she was too tired to return home, and the long perspective
  • of white tables showed alluringly through the windows.
  • The room was full of women and girls, all too much engaged in the rapid
  • absorption of tea and pie to remark her entrance. A hum of shrill voices
  • reverberated against the low ceiling, leaving Lily shut out in a little
  • circle of silence. She felt a sudden pang of profound loneliness. She had
  • lost the sense of time, and it seemed to her as though she had not spoken
  • to any one for days. Her eyes sought the faces about her, craving a
  • responsive glance, some sign of an intuition of her trouble. But the
  • sallow preoccupied women, with their bags and note-books and rolls of
  • music, were all engrossed in their own affairs, and even those who sat by
  • themselves were busy running over proof-sheets or devouring magazines
  • between their hurried gulps of tea. Lily alone was stranded in a great
  • waste of disoccupation.
  • She drank several cups of the tea which was served with her portion of
  • stewed oysters, and her brain felt clearer and livelier when she emerged
  • once more into the street. She realized now that, as she sat in the
  • restaurant, she had unconsciously arrived at a final decision. The
  • discovery gave her an immediate illusion of activity: it was exhilarating
  • to think that she had actually a reason for hurrying home. To prolong
  • her enjoyment of the sensation she decided to walk; but the distance was
  • so great that she found herself glancing nervously at the clocks on the
  • way. One of the surprises of her unoccupied state was the discovery that
  • time, when it is left to itself and no definite demands are made on it,
  • cannot be trusted to move at any recognized pace. Usually it loiters;
  • but just when one has come to count upon its slowness, it may suddenly
  • break into a wild irrational gallop.
  • She found, however, on reaching home, that the hour was still early
  • enough for her to sit down and rest a few minutes before putting her plan
  • into execution. The delay did not perceptibly weaken her resolve. She
  • was frightened and yet stimulated by the reserved force of resolution
  • which she felt within herself: she saw it was going to be easier, a great
  • deal easier, than she had imagined.
  • At five o'clock she rose, unlocked her trunk, and took out a sealed
  • packet which she slipped into the bosom of her dress. Even the contact
  • with the packet did not shake her nerves as she had half-expected it
  • would. She seemed encased in a strong armour of indifference, as though
  • the vigorous exertion of her will had finally benumbed her finer
  • sensibilities.
  • She dressed herself once more for the street, locked her door and went
  • out. When she emerged on the pavement, the day was still high, but a
  • threat of rain darkened the sky and cold gusts shook the signs projecting
  • from the basement shops along the street. She reached Fifth Avenue and
  • began to walk slowly northward. She was sufficiently familiar with Mrs.
  • Dorset's habits to know that she could always be found at home after
  • five. She might not, indeed, be accessible to visitors, especially to a
  • visitor so unwelcome, and against whom it was quite possible that she had
  • guarded herself by special orders; but Lily had written a note which she
  • meant to send up with her name, and which she thought would secure her
  • admission.
  • She had allowed herself time to walk to Mrs. Dorset's, thinking that the
  • quick movement through the cold evening air would help to steady her
  • nerves; but she really felt no need of being tranquillized. Her survey of
  • the situation remained calm and unwavering.
  • As she reached Fiftieth Street the clouds broke abruptly, and a rush of
  • cold rain slanted into her face. She had no umbrella and the moisture
  • quickly penetrated her thin spring dress. She was still half a mile from
  • her destination, and she decided to walk across to Madison Avenue and
  • take the electric car. As she turned into the side street, a vague memory
  • stirred in her. The row of budding trees, the new brick and limestone
  • house-fronts, the Georgian flat-house with flowerboxes on its balconies,
  • were merged together into the setting of a familiar scene. It was down
  • this street that she had walked with Selden, that September day two years
  • ago; a few yards ahead was the doorway they had entered together. The
  • recollection loosened a throng of benumbed sensations--longings, regrets,
  • imaginings, the throbbing brood of the only spring her heart had ever
  • known. It was strange to find herself passing his house on such an
  • errand. She seemed suddenly to see her action as he would see it--and the
  • fact of his own connection with it, the fact that, to attain her end, she
  • must trade on his name, and profit by a secret of his past, chilled her
  • blood with shame. What a long way she had travelled since the day of
  • their first talk together! Even then her feet had been set in the path
  • she was now following--even then she had resisted the hand he had held
  • out.
  • All her resentment of his fancied coldness was swept away in this
  • overwhelming rush of recollection. Twice he had been ready to help
  • her--to help her by loving her, as he had said--and if, the third time,
  • he had seemed to fail her, whom but herself could she accuse? . . .
  • Well, that part of her life was over; she did not know why her thoughts
  • still clung to it. But the sudden longing to see him remained; it grew to
  • hunger as she paused on the pavement opposite his door. The street was
  • dark and empty, swept by the rain. She had a vision of his quiet room, of
  • the bookshelves, and the fire on the hearth. She looked up and saw a
  • light in his window; then she crossed the street and entered the house.
  • Chapter 12
  • The library looked as she had pictured it. The green-shaded lamps made
  • tranquil circles of light in the gathering dusk, a little fire flickered
  • on the hearth, and Selden's easy-chair, which stood near it, had been
  • pushed aside when he rose to admit her.
  • He had checked his first movement of surprise, and stood silent, waiting
  • for her to speak, while she paused a moment on the threshold, assailed by
  • a rush of memories.
  • The scene was unchanged. She recognized the row of shelves from which he
  • had taken down his La Bruyere, and the worn arm of the chair he had
  • leaned against while she examined the precious volume. But then the wide
  • September light had filled the room, making it seem a part of the outer
  • world: now the shaded lamps and the warm hearth, detaching it from the
  • gathering darkness of the street, gave it a sweeter touch of intimacy.
  • Becoming gradually aware of the surprise under Selden's silence, Lily
  • turned to him and said simply: "I came to tell you that I was sorry for
  • the way we parted--for what I said to you that day at Mrs. Hatch's."
  • The words rose to her lips spontaneously. Even on her way up the stairs,
  • she had not thought of preparing a pretext for her visit, but she now
  • felt an intense longing to dispel the cloud of misunderstanding that hung
  • between them.
  • Selden returned her look with a smile. "I was sorry too that we should
  • have parted in that way; but I am not sure I didn't bring it on myself.
  • Luckily I had foreseen the risk I was taking----"
  • "So that you really didn't care----?" broke from her with a flash of her
  • old irony.
  • "So that I was prepared for the consequences," he corrected
  • good-humouredly. "But we'll talk of all this later. Do come and sit by
  • the fire. I can recommend that arm-chair, if you'll let me put a cushion
  • behind you."
  • While he spoke she had moved slowly to the middle of the room, and paused
  • near his writing-table, where the lamp, striking upward, cast exaggerated
  • shadows on the pallour of her delicately-hollowed face.
  • "You look tired--do sit down," he repeated gently.
  • She did not seem to hear the request. "I wanted you to know that I left
  • Mrs. Hatch immediately after I saw you," she said, as though continuing
  • her confession.
  • "Yes--yes; I know," he assented, with a rising tinge of embarrassment.
  • "And that I did so because you told me to. Before you came I had already
  • begun to see that it would be impossible to remain with her--for the
  • reasons you gave me; but I wouldn't admit it--I wouldn't let you see that
  • I understood what you meant."
  • "Ah, I might have trusted you to find your own way out--don't overwhelm
  • me with the sense of my officiousness!"
  • His light tone, in which, had her nerves been steadier, she would have
  • recognized the mere effort to bridge over an awkward moment, jarred on
  • her passionate desire to be understood. In her strange state of
  • extra-lucidity, which gave her the sense of being already at the heart of
  • the situation, it seemed incredible that any one should think it
  • necessary to linger in the conventional outskirts of word-play and
  • evasion.
  • "It was not that--I was not ungrateful," she insisted. But the power of
  • expression failed her suddenly; she felt a tremor in her throat, and two
  • tears gathered and fell slowly from her eyes.
  • Selden moved forward and took her hand. "You are very tired. Why won't
  • you sit down and let me make you comfortable?"
  • He drew her to the arm-chair near the fire, and placed a cushion behind
  • her shoulders.
  • "And now you must let me make you some tea: you know I always have that
  • amount of hospitality at my command."
  • She shook her head, and two more tears ran over. But she did not weep
  • easily, and the long habit of self-control reasserted itself, though she
  • was still too tremulous to speak.
  • "You know I can coax the water to boil in five minutes," Selden
  • continued, speaking as though she were a troubled child.
  • His words recalled the vision of that other afternoon when they had sat
  • together over his tea-table and talked jestingly of her future. There
  • were moments when that day seemed more remote than any other event in her
  • life; and yet she could always relive it in its minutest detail.
  • She made a gesture of refusal. "No: I drink too much tea. I would rather
  • sit quiet--I must go in a moment," she added confusedly.
  • Selden continued to stand near her, leaning against the mantelpiece. The
  • tinge of constraint was beginning to be more distinctly perceptible under
  • the friendly ease of his manner. Her self-absorption had not allowed her
  • to perceive it at first; but now that her consciousness was once more
  • putting forth its eager feelers, she saw that her presence was becoming
  • an embarrassment to him. Such a situation can be saved only by an
  • immediate outrush of feeling; and on Selden's side the determining
  • impulse was still lacking.
  • The discovery did not disturb Lily as it might once have done. She had
  • passed beyond the phase of well-bred reciprocity, in which every
  • demonstration must be scrupulously proportioned to the emotion it
  • elicits, and generosity of feeling is the only ostentation condemned.
  • But the sense of loneliness returned with redoubled force as she saw
  • herself forever shut out from Selden's inmost self. She had come to him
  • with no definite purpose; the mere longing to see him had directed her;
  • but the secret hope she had carried with her suddenly revealed itself in
  • its death-pang.
  • "I must go," she repeated, making a motion to rise from her chair. "But I
  • may not see you again for a long time, and I wanted to tell you that I
  • have never forgotten the things you said to me at Bellomont, and that
  • sometimes--sometimes when I seemed farthest from remembering them--they
  • have helped me, and kept me from mistakes; kept me from really becoming
  • what many people have thought me."
  • Strive as she would to put some order in her thoughts, the words would
  • not come more clearly; yet she felt that she could not leave him without
  • trying to make him understand that she had saved herself whole from the
  • seeming ruin of her life.
  • A change had come over Selden's face as she spoke. Its guarded look had
  • yielded to an expression still untinged by personal emotion, but full of
  • a gentle understanding.
  • "I am glad to have you tell me that; but nothing I have said has really
  • made the difference. The difference is in yourself--it will always be
  • there. And since it IS there, it can't really matter to you what people
  • think: you are so sure that your friends will always understand you."
  • "Ah, don't say that--don't say that what you have told me has made no
  • difference. It seems to shut me out--to leave me all alone with the other
  • people." She had risen and stood before him, once more completely
  • mastered by the inner urgency of the moment. The consciousness of his
  • half-divined reluctance had vanished. Whether he wished it or not, he
  • must see her wholly for once before they parted.
  • Her voice had gathered strength, and she looked him gravely in the eyes
  • as she continued. "Once--twice--you gave me the chance to escape from my
  • life, and I refused it: refused it because I was a coward. Afterward I
  • saw my mistake--I saw I could never be happy with what had contented me
  • before. But it was too late: you had judged me--I understood. It was too
  • late for happiness--but not too late to be helped by the thought of what
  • I had missed. That is all I have lived on--don't take it from me now!
  • Even in my worst moments it has been like a little light in the darkness.
  • Some women are strong enough to be good by themselves, but I needed the
  • help of your belief in me. Perhaps I might have resisted a great
  • temptation, but the little ones would have pulled me down. And then I
  • remembered--I remembered your saying that such a life could never satisfy
  • me; and I was ashamed to admit to myself that it could. That is what you
  • did for me--that is what I wanted to thank you for. I wanted to tell you
  • that I have always remembered; and that I have tried--tried hard . . ."
  • She broke off suddenly. Her tears had risen again, and in drawing out her
  • handkerchief her fingers touched the packet in the folds of her dress. A
  • wave of colour suffused her, and the words died on her lips. Then she
  • lifted her eyes to his and went on in an altered voice.
  • "I have tried hard--but life is difficult, and I am a very useless
  • person. I can hardly be said to have an independent existence. I was just
  • a screw or a cog in the great machine I called life, and when I dropped
  • out of it I found I was of no use anywhere else. What can one do when one
  • finds that one only fits into one hole? One must get back to it or be
  • thrown out into the rubbish heap--and you don't know what it's like in
  • the rubbish heap!"
  • Her lips wavered into a smile--she had been distracted by the whimsical
  • remembrance of the confidences she had made to him, two years earlier, in
  • that very room. Then she had been planning to marry Percy Gryce--what was
  • it she was planning now?
  • The blood had risen strongly under Selden's dark skin, but his emotion
  • showed itself only in an added seriousness of manner.
  • "You have something to tell me--do you mean to marry?" he said abruptly.
  • Lily's eyes did not falter, but a look of wonder, of puzzled
  • self-interrogation, formed itself slowly in their depths. In the light of
  • his question, she had paused to ask herself if her decision had really
  • been taken when she entered the room.
  • "You always told me I should have to come to it sooner or later!" she
  • said with a faint smile.
  • "And you have come to it now?"
  • "I shall have to come to it--presently. But there is something else I
  • must come to first." She paused again, trying to transmit to her voice
  • the steadiness of her recovered smile. "There is some one I must say
  • goodbye to. Oh, not YOU--we are sure to see each other again--but the
  • Lily Bart you knew. I have kept her with me all this time, but now we are
  • going to part, and I have brought her back to you--I am going to leave
  • her here. When I go out presently she will not go with me. I shall like
  • to think that she has stayed with you--and she'll be no trouble, she'll
  • take up no room."
  • She went toward him, and put out her hand, still smiling. "Will you let
  • her stay with you?" she asked.
  • He caught her hand, and she felt in his the vibration of feeling that had
  • not yet risen to his lips. "Lily--can't I help you?" he exclaimed.
  • She looked at him gently. "Do you remember what you said to me once?
  • That you could help me only by loving me? Well--you did love me for a
  • moment; and it helped me. It has always helped me. But the moment is
  • gone--it was I who let it go. And one must go on living. Goodbye."
  • She laid her other hand on his, and they looked at each other with a kind
  • of solemnity, as though they stood in the presence of death. Something
  • in truth lay dead between them--the love she had killed in him and could
  • no longer call to life. But something lived between them also, and leaped
  • up in her like an imperishable flame: it was the love his love had
  • kindled, the passion of her soul for his.
  • In its light everything else dwindled and fell away from her. She
  • understood now that she could not go forth and leave her old self with
  • him: that self must indeed live on in his presence, but it must still
  • continue to be hers.
  • Selden had retained her hand, and continued to scrutinize her with a
  • strange sense of foreboding. The external aspect of the situation had
  • vanished for him as completely as for her: he felt it only as one of
  • those rare moments which lift the veil from their faces as they pass.
  • "Lily," he said in a low voice, "you mustn't speak in this way. I can't
  • let you go without knowing what you mean to do. Things may change--but
  • they don't pass. You can never go out of my life."
  • She met his eyes with an illumined look. "No," she said. "I see that now.
  • Let us always be friends. Then I shall feel safe, whatever happens."
  • "Whatever happens? What do you mean? What is going to happen?"
  • She turned away quietly and walked toward the hearth.
  • "Nothing at present--except that I am very cold, and that before I go you
  • must make up the fire for me."
  • She knelt on the hearth-rug, stretching her hands to the embers. Puzzled
  • by the sudden change in her tone, he mechanically gathered a handful of
  • wood from the basket and tossed it on the fire. As he did so, he noticed
  • how thin her hands looked against the rising light of the flames. He saw
  • too, under the loose lines of her dress, how the curves of her figure had
  • shrunk to angularity; he remembered long afterward how the red play of
  • the flame sharpened the depression of her nostrils, and intensified the
  • blackness of the shadows which struck up from her cheekbones to her eyes.
  • She knelt there for a few moments in silence; a silence which he dared
  • not break. When she rose he fancied that he saw her draw something from
  • her dress and drop it into the fire; but he hardly noticed the gesture at
  • the time. His faculties seemed tranced, and he was still groping for the
  • word to break the spell. She went up to him and laid her hands on his
  • shoulders. "Goodbye," she said, and as he bent over her she touched his
  • forehead with her lips.
  • Chapter 13
  • The street-lamps were lit, but the rain had ceased, and there was a
  • momentary revival of light in the upper sky. Lily walked on unconscious
  • of her surroundings. She was still treading the buoyant ether which
  • emanates from the high moments of life. But gradually it shrank away from
  • her and she felt the dull pavement beneath her feet. The sense of
  • weariness returned with accumulated force, and for a moment she felt that
  • she could walk no farther. She had reached the corner of Forty-first
  • Street and Fifth Avenue, and she remembered that in Bryant Park there
  • were seats where she might rest.
  • That melancholy pleasure-ground was almost deserted when she entered it,
  • and she sank down on an empty bench in the glare of an electric
  • street-lamp. The warmth of the fire had passed out of her veins, and she
  • told herself that she must not sit long in the penetrating dampness which
  • struck up from the wet asphalt. But her will-power seemed to have spent
  • itself in a last great effort, and she was lost in the blank reaction
  • which follows on an unwonted expenditure of energy. And besides, what was
  • there to go home to? Nothing but the silence of her cheerless room--that
  • silence of the night which may be more racking to tired nerves than the
  • most discordant noises: that, and the bottle of chloral by her bed. The
  • thought of the chloral was the only spot of light in the dark prospect:
  • she could feel its lulling influence stealing over her already. But she
  • was troubled by the thought that it was losing its power--she dared not
  • go back to it too soon. Of late the sleep it had brought her had been
  • more broken and less profound; there had been nights when she was
  • perpetually floating up through it to consciousness. What if the effect
  • of the drug should gradually fail, as all narcotics were said to fail?
  • She remembered the chemist's warning against increasing the dose; and she
  • had heard before of the capricious and incalculable action of the drug.
  • Her dread of returning to a sleepless night was so great that she
  • lingered on, hoping that excessive weariness would reinforce the waning
  • power of the chloral.
  • Night had now closed in, and the roar of traffic in Forty-second Street
  • was dying out. As complete darkness fell on the square the lingering
  • occupants of the benches rose and dispersed; but now and then a stray
  • figure, hurrying homeward, struck across the path where Lily sat, looming
  • black for a moment in the white circle of electric light. One or two of
  • these passers-by slackened their pace to glance curiously at her lonely
  • figure; but she was hardly conscious of their scrutiny.
  • Suddenly, however, she became aware that one of the passing shadows
  • remained stationary between her line of vision and the gleaming asphalt;
  • and raising her eyes she saw a young woman bending over her.
  • "Excuse me--are you sick?--Why, it's Miss Bart!" a half-familiar voice
  • exclaimed.
  • Lily looked up. The speaker was a poorly-dressed young woman with a
  • bundle under her arm. Her face had the air of unwholesome refinement
  • which ill-health and over-work may produce, but its common prettiness was
  • redeemed by the strong and generous curve of the lips.
  • "You don't remember me," she continued, brightening with the pleasure of
  • recognition, "but I'd know you anywhere, I've thought of you such a lot.
  • I guess my folks all know your name by heart. I was one of the girls at
  • Miss Farish's club--you helped me to go to the country that time I had
  • lung-trouble. My name's Nettie Struther. It was Nettie Crane then--but I
  • daresay you don't remember that either."
  • Yes: Lily was beginning to remember. The episode of Nettie Crane's timely
  • rescue from disease had been one of the most satisfying incidents of her
  • connection with Gerty's charitable work. She had furnished the girl with
  • the means to go to a sanatorium in the mountains: it struck her now with
  • a peculiar irony that the money she had used had been Gus Trenor's.
  • She tried to reply, to assure the speaker that she had not forgotten; but
  • her voice failed in the effort, and she felt herself sinking under a
  • great wave of physical weakness. Nettie Struther, with a startled
  • exclamation, sat down and slipped a shabbily-clad arm behind her back.
  • "Why, Miss Bart, you ARE sick. Just lean on me a little till you feel
  • better."
  • A faint glow of returning strength seemed to pass into Lily from the
  • pressure of the supporting arm.
  • "I'm only tired--it is nothing," she found voice to say in a moment; and
  • then, as she met the timid appeal of her companion's eyes, she added
  • involuntarily: "I have been unhappy--in great trouble."
  • "YOU in trouble? I've always thought of you as being so high up, where
  • everything was just grand. Sometimes, when I felt real mean, and got to
  • wondering why things were so queerly fixed in the world, I used to
  • remember that you were having a lovely time, anyhow, and that seemed to
  • show there was a kind of justice somewhere. But you mustn't sit here too
  • long--it's fearfully damp. Don't you feel strong enough to walk on a
  • little ways now?" she broke off.
  • "Yes--yes; I must go home," Lily murmured, rising.
  • Her eyes rested wonderingly on the thin shabby figure at her side. She
  • had known Nettie Crane as one of the discouraged victims of over-work and
  • anaemic parentage: one of the superfluous fragments of life destined to
  • be swept prematurely into that social refuse-heap of which Lily had so
  • lately expressed her dread. But Nettie Struther's frail envelope was now
  • alive with hope and energy: whatever fate the future reserved for her,
  • she would not be cast into the refuse-heap without a struggle.
  • "I am very glad to have seen you," Lily continued, summoning a smile to
  • her unsteady lips. "It'll be my turn to think of you as happy--and the
  • world will seem a less unjust place to me too."
  • "Oh, but I can't leave you like this--you're not fit to go home alone.
  • And I can't go with you either!" Nettie Struther wailed with a start of
  • recollection. "You see, it's my husband's night-shift--he's a
  • motor-man--and the friend I leave the baby with has to step upstairs to
  • get HER husband's supper at seven. I didn't tell you I had a baby, did I?
  • She'll be four months old day after tomorrow, and to look at her you
  • wouldn't think I'd ever had a sick day. I'd give anything to show you the
  • baby, Miss Bart, and we live right down the street here--it's only three
  • blocks off." She lifted her eyes tentatively to Lily's face, and then
  • added with a burst of courage: "Why won't you get right into the cars and
  • come home with me while I get baby's supper? It's real warm in our
  • kitchen, and you can rest there, and I'll take YOU home as soon as ever
  • she drops off to sleep."
  • It WAS warm in the kitchen, which, when Nettie Struther's match had made
  • a flame leap from the gas-jet above the table, revealed itself to Lily as
  • extraordinarily small and almost miraculously clean. A fire shone through
  • the polished flanks of the iron stove, and near it stood a crib in which
  • a baby was sitting upright, with incipient anxiety struggling for
  • expression on a countenance still placid with sleep.
  • Having passionately celebrated her reunion with her offspring, and
  • excused herself in cryptic language for the lateness of her return,
  • Nettie restored the baby to the crib and shyly invited Miss Bart to the
  • rocking-chair near the stove.
  • "We've got a parlour too," she explained with pardonable pride; "but I
  • guess it's warmer in here, and I don't want to leave you alone while I'm
  • getting baby's supper."
  • On receiving Lily's assurance that she much preferred the friendly
  • proximity of the kitchen fire, Mrs. Struther proceeded to prepare a
  • bottle of infantile food, which she tenderly applied to the baby's
  • impatient lips; and while the ensuing degustation went on, she seated
  • herself with a beaming countenance beside her visitor.
  • "You're sure you won't let me warm up a drop of coffee for you, Miss
  • Bart? There's some of baby's fresh milk left over--well, maybe you'd
  • rather just sit quiet and rest a little while. It's too lovely having you
  • here. I've thought of it so often that I can't believe it's really come
  • true. I've said to George again and again: 'I just wish Miss Bart could
  • see me NOW--' and I used to watch for your name in the papers, and we'd
  • talk over what you were doing, and read the descriptions of the dresses
  • you wore. I haven't seen your name for a long time, though, and I began
  • to be afraid you were sick, and it worried me so that George said I'd get
  • sick myself, fretting about it." Her lips broke into a reminiscent smile.
  • "Well, I can't afford to be sick again, that's a fact: the last spell
  • nearly finished me. When you sent me off that time I never thought I'd
  • come back alive, and I didn't much care if I did. You see I didn't know
  • about George and the baby then."
  • She paused to readjust the bottle to the child's bubbling mouth.
  • "You precious--don't you be in too much of a hurry! Was it mad with
  • mommer for getting its supper so late? Marry Anto'nette--that's what we
  • call her: after the French queen in that play at the Garden--I told
  • George the actress reminded me of you, and that made me fancy the
  • name . . . I never thought I'd get married, you know, and I'd never have
  • had the heart to go on working just for myself."
  • She broke off again, and meeting the encouragement in Lily's eyes, went
  • on, with a flush rising under her anaemic skin: "You see I wasn't only
  • just SICK that time you sent me off--I was dreadfully unhappy too. I'd
  • known a gentleman where I was employed--I don't know as you remember I
  • did type-writing in a big importing firm--and--well--I thought we were to
  • be married: he'd gone steady with me six months and given me his mother's
  • wedding ring. But I presume he was too stylish for me--he travelled for
  • the firm, and had seen a great deal of society. Work girls aren't looked
  • after the way you are, and they don't always know how to look after
  • themselves. I didn't . . . and it pretty near killed me when he went away
  • and left off writing . . .
  • "It was then I came down sick--I thought it was the end of everything. I
  • guess it would have been if you hadn't sent me off. But when I found I
  • was getting well I began to take heart in spite of myself. And then,
  • when I got back home, George came round and asked me to marry him. At
  • first I thought I couldn't, because we'd been brought up together, and I
  • knew he knew about me. But after a while I began to see that that made it
  • easier. I never could have told another man, and I'd never have married
  • without telling; but if George cared for me enough to have me as I was, I
  • didn't see why I shouldn't begin over again--and I did."
  • The strength of the victory shone forth from her as she lifted her
  • irradiated face from the child on her knees. "But, mercy, I didn't mean
  • to go on like this about myself, with you sitting there looking so fagged
  • out. Only it's so lovely having you here, and letting you see just how
  • you've helped me." The baby had sunk back blissfully replete, and Mrs.
  • Struther softly rose to lay the bottle aside. Then she paused before Miss
  • Bart.
  • "I only wish I could help YOU--but I suppose there's nothing on earth I
  • could do," she murmured wistfully.
  • Lily, instead of answering, rose with a smile and held out her arms; and
  • the mother, understanding the gesture, laid her child in them.
  • The baby, feeling herself detached from her habitual anchorage, made an
  • instinctive motion of resistance; but the soothing influences of
  • digestion prevailed, and Lily felt the soft weight sink trustfully
  • against her breast. The child's confidence in its safety thrilled her
  • with a sense of warmth and returning life, and she bent over, wondering
  • at the rosy blur of the little face, the empty clearness of the eyes, the
  • vague tendrilly motions of the folding and unfolding fingers. At first
  • the burden in her arms seemed as light as a pink cloud or a heap of down,
  • but as she continued to hold it the weight increased, sinking deeper, and
  • penetrating her with a strange sense of weakness, as though the child
  • entered into her and became a part of herself.
  • She looked up, and saw Nettie's eyes resting on her with tenderness and
  • exultation.
  • "Wouldn't it be too lovely for anything if she could grow up to be just
  • like you? Of course I know she never COULD--but mothers are always
  • dreaming the craziest things for their children."
  • Lily clasped the child close for a moment and laid her back in her
  • mother's arms.
  • "Oh, she must not do that--I should be afraid to come and see her too
  • often!" she said with a smile; and then, resisting Mrs. Struther's
  • anxious offer of companionship, and reiterating the promise that of
  • course she would come back soon, and make George's acquaintance, and see
  • the baby in her bath, she passed out of the kitchen and went alone down
  • the tenement stairs.
  • As she reached the street she realized that she felt stronger and
  • happier: the little episode had done her good. It was the first time she
  • had ever come across the results of her spasmodic benevolence, and the
  • surprised sense of human fellowship took the mortal chill from her heart.
  • It was not till she entered her own door that she felt the reaction of a
  • deeper loneliness. It was long after seven o'clock, and the light and
  • odours proceeding from the basement made it manifest that the
  • boarding-house dinner had begun. She hastened up to her room, lit the
  • gas, and began to dress. She did not mean to pamper herself any longer,
  • to go without food because her surroundings made it unpalatable. Since it
  • was her fate to live in a boarding-house, she must learn to fall in with
  • the conditions of the life. Nevertheless she was glad that, when she
  • descended to the heat and glare of the dining-room, the repast was nearly
  • over.
  • In her own room again, she was seized with a sudden fever of activity.
  • For weeks past she had been too listless and indifferent to set her
  • possessions in order, but now she began to examine systematically the
  • contents of her drawers and cupboard. She had a few handsome dresses
  • left--survivals of her last phase of splendour, on the Sabrina and in
  • London--but when she had been obliged to part with her maid she had given
  • the woman a generous share of her cast-off apparel. The remaining
  • dresses, though they had lost their freshness, still kept the long
  • unerring lines, the sweep and amplitude of the great artist's stroke, and
  • as she spread them out on the bed the scenes in which they had been worn
  • rose vividly before her. An association lurked in every fold: each fall
  • of lace and gleam of embroidery was like a letter in the record of her
  • past. She was startled to find how the atmosphere of her old life
  • enveloped her. But, after all, it was the life she had been made for:
  • every dawning tendency in her had been carefully directed toward it, all
  • her interests and activities had been taught to centre around it. She
  • was like some rare flower grown for exhibition, a flower from which every
  • bud had been nipped except the crowning blossom of her beauty.
  • Last of all, she drew forth from the bottom of her trunk a heap of white
  • drapery which fell shapelessly across her arm. It was the Reynolds dress
  • she had worn in the Bry TABLEAUX. It had been impossible for her to give
  • it away, but she had never seen it since that night, and the long
  • flexible folds, as she shook them out, gave forth an odour of violets
  • which came to her like a breath from the flower-edged fountain where she
  • had stood with Lawrence Selden and disowned her fate. She put back the
  • dresses one by one, laying away with each some gleam of light, some note
  • of laughter, some stray waft from the rosy shores of pleasure. She was
  • still in a state of highly-wrought impressionability, and every hint of
  • the past sent a lingering tremor along her nerves.
  • She had just closed her trunk on the white folds of the Reynolds dress
  • when she heard a tap at her door, and the red fist of the Irish
  • maid-servant thrust in a belated letter. Carrying it to the light, Lily
  • read with surprise the address stamped on the upper corner of the
  • envelope. It was a business communication from the office of her aunt's
  • executors, and she wondered what unexpected development had caused them
  • to break silence before the appointed time. She opened the envelope and a
  • cheque fluttered to the floor. As she stooped to pick it up the blood
  • rushed to her face. The cheque represented the full amount of Mrs.
  • Peniston's legacy, and the letter accompanying it explained that the
  • executors, having adjusted the business of the estate with less delay
  • than they had expected, had decided to anticipate the date fixed for the
  • payment of the bequests.
  • Lily sat down beside the desk at the foot of her bed, and spreading out
  • the cheque, read over and over the TEN THOUSAND DOLLARS written across it
  • in a steely business hand. Ten months earlier the amount it stood for had
  • represented the depths of penury; but her standard of values had changed
  • in the interval, and now visions of wealth lurked in every flourish of
  • the pen. As she continued to gaze at it, she felt the glitter of the
  • visions mounting to her brain, and after a while she lifted the lid of
  • the desk and slipped the magic formula out of sight. It was easier to
  • think without those five figures dancing before her eyes; and she had a
  • great deal of thinking to do before she slept.
  • She opened her cheque-book, and plunged into such anxious calculations as
  • had prolonged her vigil at Bellomont on the night when she had decided to
  • marry Percy Gryce. Poverty simplifies book-keeping, and her financial
  • situation was easier to ascertain than it had been then; but she had not
  • yet learned the control of money, and during her transient phase of
  • luxury at the Emporium she had slipped back into habits of extravagance
  • which still impaired her slender balance. A careful examination of her
  • cheque-book, and of the unpaid bills in her desk, showed that, when the
  • latter had been settled, she would have barely enough to live on for the
  • next three or four months; and even after that, if she were to continue
  • her present way of living, without earning any additional money, all
  • incidental expenses must be reduced to the vanishing point. She hid her
  • eyes with a shudder, beholding herself at the entrance of that
  • ever-narrowing perspective down which she had seen Miss Silverton's dowdy
  • figure take its despondent way.
  • It was no longer, however, from the vision of material poverty that she
  • turned with the greatest shrinking. She had a sense of deeper
  • empoverishment--of an inner destitution compared to which outward
  • conditions dwindled into insignificance. It was indeed miserable to be
  • poor--to look forward to a shabby, anxious middle-age, leading by dreary
  • degrees of economy and self-denial to gradual absorption in the dingy
  • communal existence of the boarding-house. But there was something more
  • miserable still--it was the clutch of solitude at her heart, the sense of
  • being swept like a stray uprooted growth down the heedless current of the
  • years. That was the feeling which possessed her now--the feeling of being
  • something rootless and ephemeral, mere spin-drift of the whirling surface
  • of existence, without anything to which the poor little tentacles of self
  • could cling before the awful flood submerged them. And as she looked back
  • she saw that there had never been a time when she had had any real
  • relation to life. Her parents too had been rootless, blown hither and
  • thither on every wind of fashion, without any personal existence to
  • shelter them from its shifting gusts. She herself had grown up without
  • any one spot of earth being dearer to her than another: there was no
  • centre of early pieties, of grave endearing traditions, to which her
  • heart could revert and from which it could draw strength for itself and
  • tenderness for others. In whatever form a slowly-accumulated past lives
  • in the blood--whether in the concrete image of the old house stored with
  • visual memories, or in the conception of the house not built with hands,
  • but made up of inherited passions and loyalties--it has the same power of
  • broadening and deepening the individual existence, of attaching it by
  • mysterious links of kinship to all the mighty sum of human striving.
  • Such a vision of the solidarity of life had never before come to Lily.
  • She had had a premonition of it in the blind motions of her
  • mating-instinct; but they had been checked by the disintegrating
  • influences of the life about her. All the men and women she knew were
  • like atoms whirling away from each other in some wild centrifugal dance:
  • her first glimpse of the continuity of life had come to her that evening
  • in Nettie Struther's kitchen.
  • The poor little working-girl who had found strength to gather up the
  • fragments of her life, and build herself a shelter with them, seemed to
  • Lily to have reached the central truth of existence. It was a meagre
  • enough life, on the grim edge of poverty, with scant margin for
  • possibilities of sickness or mischance, but it had the frail audacious
  • permanence of a bird's nest built on the edge of a cliff--a mere wisp of
  • leaves and straw, yet so put together that the lives entrusted to it may
  • hang safely over the abyss.
  • Yes--but it had taken two to build the nest; the man's faith as well as
  • the woman's courage. Lily remembered Nettie's words: I KNEW HE KNEW ABOUT
  • ME. Her husband's faith in her had made her renewal possible--it is so
  • easy for a woman to become what the man she loves believes her to be!
  • Well--Selden had twice been ready to stake his faith on Lily Bart; but
  • the third trial had been too severe for his endurance. The very quality
  • of his love had made it the more impossible to recall to life. If it had
  • been a simple instinct of the blood, the power of her beauty might have
  • revived it. But the fact that it struck deeper, that it was inextricably
  • wound up with inherited habits of thought and feeling, made it as
  • impossible to restore to growth as a deep-rooted plant torn from its bed.
  • Selden had given her of his best; but he was as incapable as herself of
  • an uncritical return to former states of feeling.
  • There remained to her, as she had told him, the uplifting memory of his
  • faith in her; but she had not reached the age when a woman can live on
  • her memories. As she held Nettie Struther's child in her arms the frozen
  • currents of youth had loosed themselves and run warm in her veins: the
  • old life-hunger possessed her, and all her being clamoured for its share
  • of personal happiness. Yes--it was happiness she still wanted, and the
  • glimpse she had caught of it made everything else of no account. One by
  • one she had detached herself from the baser possibilities, and she saw
  • that nothing now remained to her but the emptiness of renunciation.
  • It was growing late, and an immense weariness once more possessed her.
  • It was not the stealing sense of sleep, but a vivid wakeful fatigue, a
  • wan lucidity of mind against which all the possibilities of the future
  • were shadowed forth gigantically. She was appalled by the intense
  • cleanness of the vision; she seemed to have broken through the merciful
  • veil which intervenes between intention and action, and to see exactly
  • what she would do in all the long days to come. There was the cheque in
  • her desk, for instance--she meant to use it in paying her debt to Trenor;
  • but she foresaw that when the morning came she would put off doing so,
  • would slip into gradual tolerance of the debt. The thought terrified
  • her--she dreaded to fall from the height of her last moment with Lawrence
  • Selden. But how could she trust herself to keep her footing? She knew the
  • strength of the opposing impulses-she could feel the countless hands of
  • habit dragging her back into some fresh compromise with fate. She felt an
  • intense longing to prolong, to perpetuate, the momentary exaltation of
  • her spirit. If only life could end now--end on this tragic yet sweet
  • vision of lost possibilities, which gave her a sense of kinship with all
  • the loving and foregoing in the world!
  • She reached out suddenly and, drawing the cheque from her writing-desk,
  • enclosed it in an envelope which she addressed to her bank. She then
  • wrote out a cheque for Trenor, and placing it, without an accompanying
  • word, in an envelope inscribed with his name, laid the two letters side
  • by side on her desk. After that she continued to sit at the table,
  • sorting her papers and writing, till the intense silence of the house
  • reminded her of the lateness of the hour. In the street the noise of
  • wheels had ceased, and the rumble of the "elevated" came only at long
  • intervals through the deep unnatural hush. In the mysterious nocturnal
  • separation from all outward signs of life, she felt herself more
  • strangely confronted with her fate. The sensation made her brain reel,
  • and she tried to shut out consciousness by pressing her hands against her
  • eyes. But the terrible silence and emptiness seemed to symbolize her
  • future--she felt as though the house, the street, the world were all
  • empty, and she alone left sentient in a lifeless universe.
  • But this was the verge of delirium . . . she had never hung so near the
  • dizzy brink of the unreal. Sleep was what she wanted--she remembered that
  • she had not closed her eyes for two nights. The little bottle was at her
  • bed-side, waiting to lay its spell upon her. She rose and undressed
  • hastily, hungering now for the touch of her pillow. She felt so
  • profoundly tired that she thought she must fall asleep at once; but as
  • soon as she had lain down every nerve started once more into separate
  • wakefulness. It was as though a great blaze of electric light had been
  • turned on in her head, and her poor little anguished self shrank and
  • cowered in it, without knowing where to take refuge.
  • She had not imagined that such a multiplication of wakefulness was
  • possible: her whole past was reenacting itself at a hundred different
  • points of consciousness. Where was the drug that could still this legion
  • of insurgent nerves? The sense of exhaustion would have been sweet
  • compared to this shrill beat of activities; but weariness had dropped
  • from her as though some cruel stimulant had been forced into her veins.
  • She could bear it--yes, she could bear it; but what strength would be
  • left her the next day? Perspective had disappeared--the next day pressed
  • close upon her, and on its heels came the days that were to follow--they
  • swarmed about her like a shrieking mob. She must shut them out for a few
  • hours; she must take a brief bath of oblivion. She put out her hand, and
  • measured the soothing drops into a glass; but as she did so, she knew
  • they would be powerless against the supernatural lucidity of her brain.
  • She had long since raised the dose to its highest limit, but tonight she
  • felt she must increase it. She knew she took a slight risk in doing
  • so--she remembered the chemist's warning. If sleep came at all, it might
  • be a sleep without waking. But after all that was but one chance in a
  • hundred: the action of the drug was incalculable, and the addition of a
  • few drops to the regular dose would probably do no more than procure for
  • her the rest she so desperately needed....
  • She did not, in truth, consider the question very closely--the physical
  • craving for sleep was her only sustained sensation. Her mind shrank from
  • the glare of thought as instinctively as eyes contract in a blaze of
  • light--darkness, darkness was what she must have at any cost. She raised
  • herself in bed and swallowed the contents of the glass; then she blew out
  • her candle and lay down.
  • She lay very still, waiting with a sensuous pleasure for the first
  • effects of the soporific. She knew in advance what form they would
  • take--the gradual cessation of the inner throb, the soft approach of
  • passiveness, as though an invisible hand made magic passes over her in
  • the darkness. The very slowness and hesitancy of the effect increased its
  • fascination: it was delicious to lean over and look down into the dim
  • abysses of unconsciousness. Tonight the drug seemed to work more slowly
  • than usual: each passionate pulse had to be stilled in turn, and it was
  • long before she felt them dropping into abeyance, like sentinels falling
  • asleep at their posts. But gradually the sense of complete subjugation
  • came over her, and she wondered languidly what had made her feel so
  • uneasy and excited. She saw now that there was nothing to be excited
  • about--she had returned to her normal view of life. Tomorrow would not be
  • so difficult after all: she felt sure that she would have the strength to
  • meet it. She did not quite remember what it was that she had been afraid
  • to meet, but the uncertainty no longer troubled her. She had been
  • unhappy, and now she was happy--she had felt herself alone, and now the
  • sense of loneliness had vanished.
  • She stirred once, and turned on her side, and as she did so, she suddenly
  • understood why she did not feel herself alone. It was odd--but Nettie
  • Struther's child was lying on her arm: she felt the pressure of its
  • little head against her shoulder. She did not know how it had come there,
  • but she felt no great surprise at the fact, only a gentle penetrating
  • thrill of warmth and pleasure. She settled herself into an easier
  • position, hollowing her arm to pillow the round downy head, and holding
  • her breath lest a sound should disturb the sleeping child.
  • As she lay there she said to herself that there was something she must
  • tell Selden, some word she had found that should make life clear between
  • them. She tried to repeat the word, which lingered vague and luminous on
  • the far edge of thought--she was afraid of not remembering it when she
  • woke; and if she could only remember it and say it to him, she felt that
  • everything would be well.
  • Slowly the thought of the word faded, and sleep began to enfold her. She
  • struggled faintly against it, feeling that she ought to keep awake on
  • account of the baby; but even this feeling was gradually lost in an
  • indistinct sense of drowsy peace, through which, of a sudden, a dark
  • flash of loneliness and terror tore its way.
  • She started up again, cold and trembling with the shock: for a moment she
  • seemed to have lost her hold of the child. But no--she was mistaken--the
  • tender pressure of its body was still close to hers: the recovered warmth
  • flowed through her once more, she yielded to it, sank into it, and slept.
  • Chapter 14
  • The next morning rose mild and bright, with a promise of summer in the
  • air. The sunlight slanted joyously down Lily's street, mellowed the
  • blistered house-front, gilded the paintless railings of the door-step,
  • and struck prismatic glories from the panes of her darkened window.
  • When such a day coincides with the inner mood there is intoxication in
  • its breath; and Selden, hastening along the street through the squalor of
  • its morning confidences, felt himself thrilling with a youthful sense of
  • adventure. He had cut loose from the familiar shores of habit, and
  • launched himself on uncharted seas of emotion; all the old tests and
  • measures were left behind, and his course was to be shaped by new stars.
  • That course, for the moment, led merely to Miss Bart's boarding-house;
  • but its shabby door-step had suddenly become the threshold of the
  • untried. As he approached he looked up at the triple row of windows,
  • wondering boyishly which one of them was hers. It was nine o'clock, and
  • the house, being tenanted by workers, already showed an awakened front to
  • the street. He remembered afterward having noticed that only one blind
  • was down. He noticed too that there was a pot of pansies on one of the
  • window sills, and at once concluded that the window must be hers: it was
  • inevitable that he should connect her with the one touch of beauty in the
  • dingy scene.
  • Nine o'clock was an early hour for a visit, but Selden had passed beyond
  • all such conventional observances. He only knew that he must see Lily
  • Bart at once--he had found the word he meant to say to her, and it could
  • not wait another moment to be said. It was strange that it had not come
  • to his lips sooner--that he had let her pass from him the evening before
  • without being able to speak it. But what did that matter, now that a new
  • day had come? It was not a word for twilight, but for the morning.
  • Selden ran eagerly up the steps and pulled the bell; and even in his
  • state of self-absorption it came as a sharp surprise to him that the door
  • should open so promptly. It was still more of a surprise to see, as he
  • entered, that it had been opened by Gerty Farish--and that behind her, in
  • an agitated blur, several other figures ominously loomed.
  • "Lawrence!" Gerty cried in a strange voice, "how could you get here so
  • quickly?"--and the trembling hand she laid on him seemed instantly to
  • close about his heart.
  • He noticed the other faces, vague with fear and conjecture--he saw the
  • landlady's imposing bulk sway professionally toward him; but he shrank
  • back, putting up his hand, while his eyes mechanically mounted the steep
  • black walnut stairs, up which he was immediately aware that his cousin
  • was about to lead him.
  • A voice in the background said that the doctor might be back at any
  • minute--and that nothing, upstairs, was to be disturbed. Some one else
  • exclaimed: "It was the greatest mercy--" then Selden felt that Gerty had
  • taken him gently by the hand, and that they were to be suffered to go up
  • alone.
  • In silence they mounted the three flights, and walked along the passage
  • to a closed door. Gerty opened the door, and Selden went in after her.
  • Though the blind was down, the irresistible sunlight poured a tempered
  • golden flood into the room, and in its light Selden saw a narrow bed
  • along the wall, and on the bed, with motionless hands and calm
  • unrecognizing face, the semblance of Lily Bart.
  • That it was her real self, every pulse in him ardently denied. Her real
  • self had lain warm on his heart but a few hours earlier--what had he to
  • do with this estranged and tranquil face which, for the first time,
  • neither paled nor brightened at his coming?
  • Gerty, strangely tranquil too, with the conscious self-control of one who
  • has ministered to much pain, stood by the bed, speaking gently, as if
  • transmitting a final message.
  • "The doctor found a bottle of chloral--she had been sleeping badly for a
  • long time, and she must have taken an overdose by mistake.... There is no
  • doubt of that--no doubt--there will be no question--he has been very
  • kind. I told him that you and I would like to be left alone with her--to
  • go over her things before any one else comes. I know it is what she would
  • have wished."
  • Selden was hardly conscious of what she said. He stood looking down on
  • the sleeping face which seemed to lie like a delicate impalpable mask
  • over the living lineaments he had known. He felt that the real Lily was
  • still there, close to him, yet invisible and inaccessible; and the
  • tenuity of the barrier between them mocked him with a sense of
  • helplessness. There had never been more than a little impalpable barrier
  • between them--and yet he had suffered it to keep them apart! And now,
  • though it seemed slighter and frailer than ever, it had suddenly hardened
  • to adamant, and he might beat his life out against it in vain.
  • He had dropped on his knees beside the bed, but a touch from Gerty
  • aroused him. He stood up, and as their eyes met he was struck by the
  • extraordinary light in his cousin's face.
  • "You understand what the doctor has gone for? He has promised that there
  • shall be no trouble--but of course the formalities must be gone through.
  • And I asked him to give us time to look through her things first----"
  • He nodded, and she glanced about the small bare room. "It won't take
  • long," she concluded.
  • "No--it won't take long," he agreed.
  • She held his hand in hers a moment longer, and then, with a last look at
  • the bed, moved silently toward the door. On the threshold she paused to
  • add: "You will find me downstairs if you want me."
  • Selden roused himself to detain her. "But why are you going? She would
  • have wished----"
  • Gerty shook her head with a smile. "No: this is what she would have
  • wished----" and as she spoke a light broke through Selden's stony misery,
  • and he saw deep into the hidden things of love.
  • The door closed on Gerty, and he stood alone with the motionless sleeper
  • on the bed. His impulse was to return to her side, to fall on his knees,
  • and rest his throbbing head against the peaceful cheek on the pillow.
  • They had never been at peace together, they two; and now he felt himself
  • drawn downward into the strange mysterious depths of her tranquillity.
  • But he remembered Gerty's warning words--he knew that, though time had
  • ceased in this room, its feet were hastening relentlessly toward the
  • door. Gerty had given him this supreme half-hour, and he must use it as
  • she willed.
  • He turned and looked about him, sternly compelling himself to regain his
  • consciousness of outward things. There was very little furniture in the
  • room. The shabby chest of drawers was spread with a lace cover, and set
  • out with a few gold-topped boxes and bottles, a rose-coloured
  • pin-cushion, a glass tray strewn with tortoise-shell hair-pins--he shrank
  • from the poignant intimacy of these trifles, and from the blank surface
  • of the toilet-mirror above them.
  • These were the only traces of luxury, of that clinging to the minute
  • observance of personal seemliness, which showed what her other
  • renunciations must have cost. There was no other token of her personality
  • about the room, unless it showed itself in the scrupulous neatness of the
  • scant articles of furniture: a washing-stand, two chairs, a small
  • writing-desk, and the little table near the bed. On this table stood the
  • empty bottle and glass, and from these also he averted his eyes.
  • The desk was closed, but on its slanting lid lay two letters which he
  • took up. One bore the address of a bank, and as it was stamped and
  • sealed, Selden, after a moment's hesitation, laid it aside. On the other
  • letter he read Gus Trenor's name; and the flap of the envelope was still
  • ungummed.
  • Temptation leapt on him like the stab of a knife. He staggered under it,
  • steadying himself against the desk. Why had she been writing to
  • Trenor--writing, presumably, just after their parting of the previous
  • evening? The thought unhallowed the memory of that last hour, made a mock
  • of the word he had come to speak, and defiled even the reconciling
  • silence upon which it fell. He felt himself flung back on all the ugly
  • uncertainties from which he thought he had cast loose forever. After all,
  • what did he know of her life? Only as much as she had chosen to show him,
  • and measured by the world's estimate, how little that was! By what
  • right--the letter in his hand seemed to ask--by what right was it he who
  • now passed into her confidence through the gate which death had left
  • unbarred? His heart cried out that it was by right of their last hour
  • together, the hour when she herself had placed the key in his hand.
  • Yes--but what if the letter to Trenor had been written afterward?
  • He put it from him with sudden loathing, and setting his lips, addressed
  • himself resolutely to what remained of his task. After all, that task
  • would be easier to perform, now that his personal stake in it was
  • annulled.
  • He raised the lid of the desk, and saw within it a cheque-book and a few
  • packets of bills and letters, arranged with the orderly precision which
  • characterized all her personal habits. He looked through the letters
  • first, because it was the most difficult part of the work. They proved to
  • be few and unimportant, but among them he found, with a strange commotion
  • of the heart, the note he had written her the day after the Brys'
  • entertainment.
  • "When may I come to you?"--his words overwhelmed him with a realization
  • of the cowardice which had driven him from her at the very moment of
  • attainment. Yes--he had always feared his fate, and he was too honest to
  • disown his cowardice now; for had not all his old doubts started to life
  • again at the mere sight of Trenor's name?
  • He laid the note in his card-case, folding it away carefully, as
  • something made precious by the fact that she had held it so; then,
  • growing once more aware of the lapse of time, he continued his
  • examination of the papers.
  • To his surprise, he found that all the bills were receipted; there was
  • not an unpaid account among them. He opened the cheque-book, and saw
  • that, the very night before, a cheque of ten thousand dollars from Mrs.
  • Peniston's executors had been entered in it. The legacy, then, had been
  • paid sooner than Gerty had led him to expect. But, turning another page
  • or two, he discovered with astonishment that, in spite of this recent
  • accession of funds, the balance had already declined to a few dollars. A
  • rapid glance at the stubs of the last cheques, all of which bore the date
  • of the previous day, showed that between four or five hundred dollars of
  • the legacy had been spent in the settlement of bills, while the remaining
  • thousands were comprehended in one cheque, made out, at the same time, to
  • Charles Augustus Trenor.
  • Selden laid the book aside, and sank into the chair beside the desk. He
  • leaned his elbows on it, and hid his face in his hands. The bitter waters
  • of life surged high about him, their sterile taste was on his lips. Did
  • the cheque to Trenor explain the mystery or deepen it? At first his mind
  • refused to act--he felt only the taint of such a transaction between a
  • man like Trenor and a girl like Lily Bart. Then, gradually, his troubled
  • vision cleared, old hints and rumours came back to him, and out of the
  • very insinuations he had feared to probe, he constructed an explanation
  • of the mystery. It was true, then, that she had taken money from Trenor;
  • but true also, as the contents of the little desk declared, that the
  • obligation had been intolerable to her, and that at the first opportunity
  • she had freed herself from it, though the act left her face to face with
  • bare unmitigated poverty.
  • That was all he knew--all he could hope to unravel of the story. The
  • mute lips on the pillow refused him more than this--unless indeed they
  • had told him the rest in the kiss they had left upon his forehead. Yes,
  • he could now read into that farewell all that his heart craved to find
  • there; he could even draw from it courage not to accuse himself for
  • having failed to reach the height of his opportunity.
  • He saw that all the conditions of life had conspired to keep them apart;
  • since his very detachment from the external influences which swayed her
  • had increased his spiritual fastidiousness, and made it more difficult
  • for him to live and love uncritically. But at least he HAD loved her--had
  • been willing to stake his future on his faith in her--and if the moment
  • had been fated to pass from them before they could seize it, he saw now
  • that, for both, it had been saved whole out of the ruin of their lives.
  • It was this moment of love, this fleeting victory over themselves, which
  • had kept them from atrophy and extinction; which, in her, had reached out
  • to him in every struggle against the influence of her surroundings, and
  • in him, had kept alive the faith that now drew him penitent and
  • reconciled to her side.
  • He knelt by the bed and bent over her, draining their last moment to its
  • lees; and in the silence there passed between them the word which made
  • all clear.
  • THE END
  • Notes:
  • 1. I have modernized this text by modernizing the contractions: do n't
  • becomes don't, etc.
  • 2. I have retained the British spelling of words like favour and colour.
  • 3. I found and corrected one instance of the name "Gertie," which I
  • changed to "Gerty" to be consistent with rest of the book.
  • Linda Ruoff
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of House of Mirth, by Edith Wharton
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HOUSE OF MIRTH ***
  • ***** This file should be named 284.txt or 284.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/2/8/284/
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  • donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.